summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 06:41:51 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 06:41:51 -0800
commitd24e45616b7f66aa7f70ecd7db17b9af3647bc48 (patch)
tree5a7d87dd7840a15ca139ca1b933e0898eb26fffb
parent6772139f80cd38fd254ad77dbd747e9e59f5303b (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/67238-0.txt8918
-rw-r--r--old/67238-0.zipbin142240 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h.zipbin7081505 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/67238-h.htm11616
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/cover.jpgbin253343 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig1.jpgbin211922 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig10.jpgbin203759 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig11.jpgbin193443 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig12.jpgbin51314 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig13.jpgbin48375 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig14.jpgbin203151 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig15.jpgbin155043 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig16.jpgbin201810 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig17.jpgbin215222 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig18.jpgbin230042 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig19.jpgbin229014 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig2.jpgbin31175 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig20.jpgbin104448 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig21.jpgbin235260 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig22.jpgbin131208 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig23.jpgbin227585 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig24.jpgbin214183 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig25.jpgbin240290 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig26.jpgbin112075 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig27.jpgbin136071 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig28.jpgbin148062 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig29.jpgbin221219 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig3.jpgbin168329 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig30.jpgbin233563 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig31.jpgbin196037 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig32.jpgbin118079 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig33.jpgbin236071 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig34.jpgbin219649 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig35.jpgbin229777 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig36.jpgbin225594 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig37.jpgbin122724 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig38.jpgbin220340 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig4.jpgbin181893 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig5.jpgbin223338 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig6.jpgbin166268 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig7.jpgbin223067 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig8.jpgbin220629 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67238-h/images/fig9.jpgbin226376 -> 0 bytes
46 files changed, 17 insertions, 20534 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..23f66b1
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #67238 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67238)
diff --git a/old/67238-0.txt b/old/67238-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 8b27969..0000000
--- a/old/67238-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8918 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Still--William, by Richmal Crompton
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Still--William
-
-Author: Richmal Crompton
-
-Release Date: January 23, 2022 [eBook #67238]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Alan, deaurider and the Online Distributed Proofreading
- Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STILL--WILLIAM ***
-
-
-
-
-
- STILL--WILLIAM
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: “NOW YOU MUTH PLAY WITH ME,” LISPED VIOLET ELIZABETH,
-SWEETLY.
-
-“I DON’T PLAY LITTLE GIRL’S GAMES,” ANSWERED THE DISGUSTED WILLIAM.]
-
-
-
-
- STILL--WILLIAM
-
- BY
- RICHMAL CROMPTON
-
- [Illustration]
-
- ILLUSTRATED BY
-
- THOMAS HENRY
-
- LONDON
- GEORGE NEWNES, LIMITED
- SOUTHAMPTON ST., STRAND, W.C.
-
-
-
-
- _First published_ _April 1925_
- _Reprinted_ _October 1925_
- _Reprinted_ _February 1926_
- _Reprinted_ _August 1926_
- _Reprinted_ _December 1926_
- _Reprinted_ _May 1927_
- _Reprinted_ _December 1927_
- _Reprinted_ _June 1928_
- _Reprinted_ _April 1929_
- _Reprinted_ _November 1929_
- _Reprinted_ _October 1930_
-
- _Made and Printed in Great Britain by
- Wyman & Sons, Ltd., London, Fakenham and Reading._
-
-
-
-
- TO
-
- COLONEL R. E. CROMPTON, C.B., R.E.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I. THE BISHOP’S HANDKERCHIEF 13
-
- II. HENRI LEARNS THE LANGUAGE 28
-
- III. THE SWEET LITTLE GIRL IN WHITE 43
-
- IV. WILLIAM TURNS OVER A NEW LEAF 64
-
- V. A BIT OF BLACKMAIL 85
-
- VI. WILLIAM THE MONEY-MAKER 97
-
- VII. “THE HAUNTED HOUSE” 118
-
- VIII. WILLIAM THE MATCH-MAKER 133
-
- IX. WILLIAM’S TRUTHFUL CHRISTMAS 157
-
- X. AN AFTERNOON WITH WILLIAM 177
-
- XI. WILLIAM SPOILS THE PARTY 186
-
- XII. THE CAT AND THE MOUSE 208
-
- XIII. WILLIAM AND UNCLE GEORGE 217
-
- XIV. WILLIAM AND SAINT VALENTINE 234
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-THE BISHOP’S HANDKERCHIEF
-
-
-Until now William had taken no interest in his handkerchiefs as toilet
-accessories. They were greyish (once white) squares useful for blotting
-ink or carrying frogs or making lifelike rats to divert the long hours
-of afternoon school, but otherwise he had had no pride or interest in
-them.
-
-But last week, Ginger (a member of the circle known to themselves
-as the Outlaws of which William was the leader) had received a
-handkerchief as a birthday present from an aunt in London. William, on
-hearing the news, had jeered, but the sight of the handkerchief had
-silenced him.
-
-It was a large handkerchief, larger than William had conceived it
-possible for handkerchiefs to be. It was made of silk, and contained
-all the colours of the rainbow. Round the edge green dragons sported
-upon a red ground. Ginger displayed it at first deprecatingly, fully
-prepared for scorn and merriment, and for some moments the fate of the
-handkerchief hung in the balance. But there was something about the
-handkerchief that impressed them.
-
-“Kinder--funny,” said Henry critically.
-
-“Jolly big, isn’t it?” said Douglas uncertainly.
-
-“’S more like a _sheet_,” said William, wavering between scorn and
-admiration.
-
-Ginger was relieved. At any rate they had taken it seriously. They had
-not wept tears of mirth over it. That afternoon he drew it out of his
-pocket with a flourish and airily wiped his nose with it. The next
-morning Henry appeared with a handkerchief almost exactly like it, and
-the day after that Douglas had one. William felt his prestige lowered.
-He--the born leader--was the only one of the select circle who did not
-possess a coloured silk handkerchief.
-
-That evening he approached his mother.
-
-“I don’t think white ones is much use,” he said.
-
-“Don’t scrape your feet on the carpet, William,” said his mother
-placidly. “I thought white ones were the only tame kind--not that I
-think your father will let you have any more. You know what he said
-when they got all over the floor and bit his finger.”
-
-“I’m not talkin’ about _rats_,” said William. “I’m talkin’ about
-handkerchiefs.”
-
-“Oh--handkerchiefs! White ones are far the best. They launder properly.
-They come out a good colour--at least yours don’t, but that’s because
-you get them so black--but there’s nothing better than white linen.”
-
-“Pers’nally,” said William with a judicial air, “I think silk’s better
-than linen an’ white’s so tirin’ to look at. I think a kind of colour’s
-better for your eyes. My eyes do ache a bit sometimes. I think it’s
-prob’ly with keep lookin’ at white handkerchiefs.”
-
-“Don’t be silly, William. I’m not going to buy you silk handkerchiefs
-to get covered with mud and ink and coal as yours do.”
-
-Mrs. Brown calmly cut off her darning wool as she spoke, and took
-another sock from the pile by her chair. William sighed.
-
-“Oh, I wouldn’t do those things with a _silk_ one,” he said earnestly.
-“It’s only because they’re _cotton_ ones I do those things.”
-
-“Linen,” corrected Mrs. Brown.
-
-“Linen an’ cotton’s the same,” said William, “it’s not _silk_. I
-jus’ want a _silk_ one with colours an’ so on, that’s all. That’s
-all I want. It’s not much. Just a _silk_ handkerchief with colours.
-Surely----”
-
-“I’m _not_ going to buy you another _thing_, William,” said Mrs. Brown
-firmly. “I had to get you a new suit and new collars only last month,
-and your overcoat’s dreadful, because you _will_ crawl through the
-ditch in it----”
-
-William resented this cowardly change of attack.
-
-“I’m not talkin’ about suits an’ collars an’ overcoats an’ so on----”
-he said; “I’m talkin’ about _handkerchiefs_. I simply ask you if----”
-
-“If you want a silk handkerchief, William,” said Mrs. Brown decisively,
-“you’ll have to buy one.”
-
-“Well!” said William, aghast at the unfairness of the remark--“Well,
-jus’ fancy you sayin’ that to me when you know I’ve not got any money,
-when you _know_ I’m not even _going_ to have any money for years an’
-years an’ years.”
-
-“You shouldn’t have broken the landing-window,” said Mrs. Brown.
-
-William was pained and disappointed. He had no illusions about his
-father and elder brother, but he had expected more feeling and sympathy
-from his mother.
-
-Determinedly, but not very hopefully, he went to his father, who was
-reading a newspaper in the library.
-
-“You know, father,” said William confidingly, taking his seat upon the
-newspaper rack, “I think white ones is all right for children--and
-so on. Wot I mean to say is that when you get older coloured ones is
-better.”
-
-“Really?” said his father politely.
-
-“Yes,” said William, encouraged. “They wouldn’t show dirt so,
-either--not like white ones do. An’ they’re bigger, too. They’d be
-cheaper in the end. They wouldn’t cost so much for laundry--an’ so on.”
-
-“Exactly,” murmured his father, turning over to the next page.
-
-“Well,” said William boldly, “if you’d very kin’ly buy me some, or one
-would do, or I could buy them or it if you’d jus’ give me----”
-
-“As I haven’t the remotest idea what you’re talking about,” said his
-father, “I don’t see how I can. Would you be so very kind as to remove
-yourself from the newspaper rack for a minute and let me get the
-evening paper? I’m so sorry to trouble you. Thank you so much.”
-
-“Handkerchiefs!” said William impatiently. “I keep telling you. It’s
-_handkerchiefs_. I jus’ want a nice silk-coloured one, ’cause I think
-it would last longer and be cheaper in the wash. That’s all. I think
-the ones I have makes such a lot of trouble for the laundry. I jus’----”
-
-“Though deeply moved by your consideration for other people,” said Mr.
-Brown, as he ran his eye down the financial column, “I may as well save
-you any further waste of your valuable time and eloquence by informing
-you at once that you won’t get a halfpenny out of me if you talk till
-midnight.”
-
-William went with silent disgust and slow dignity from the room.
-
-Next he investigated Robert’s bedroom. He opened Robert’s
-dressing-table drawer and turned over his handkerchiefs. He caught his
-breath with surprise and pleasure. There it was beneath all Robert’s
-other handkerchiefs--larger, silkier, more multi-coloured than Ginger’s
-or Douglas’s or Henry’s. He gazed at it in ecstatic joy. He slipped it
-into his pocket and, standing before the looking-glass, took it out
-with a flourish, shaking its lustrous folds. He was absorbed in this
-occupation when Robert entered. Robert looked at him with elder-brother
-disapproval.
-
-“I told you that if I caught you playing monkey tricks in my room
-again----” he began threateningly, glancing suspiciously at the bed, in
-the “apple-pie” arrangements of which William was an expert.
-
-“I’m not, Robert,” said William with disarming innocence. “Honest I’m
-not. I jus’ wanted to borrow a handkerchief. I thought you wun’t mind
-lendin’ me a handkerchief.”
-
-“Well, I would,” said Robert shortly, “so you can jolly well clear out.”
-
-“It was this one I thought you wun’t mind lendin’ me,” said William. “I
-wun’t take one of your nice white ones, but I thought you wun’t mind me
-having this ole coloured dirty-looking one.”
-
-“Did you? Well, give it back to me.”
-
-Reluctantly William handed it back to Robert.
-
-“How much’ll you give it me for?” he said shortly.
-
-“Well, how much have you?” said Robert ruthlessly.
-
-“Nothin’--not jus’ at present,” admitted William. “But I’d _do_
-something for you for it. I’d do anythin’ you want done for it. You
-just tell me what to do for it, an’ I’ll _do_ it.”
-
-“Well, you can--you can get the Bishop’s handkerchief for me, and then
-I’ll give mine to you.”
-
-The trouble with Robert was that he imagined himself a wit.
-
-The trouble with William was that he took things literally.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Bishop was expected in the village the next day. It was the great
-event of the summer. He was a distant relation of the Vicar’s. He was
-to open the Sale of Work, address a large meeting on temperance, spend
-the night at the vicarage, and depart the next morning.
-
-The Bishop was a fatherly, simple-minded old man of seventy. He enjoyed
-the Sale of Work except for one thing. Wherever he looked he met the
-gaze of a freckled untidy frowning small boy. He could not understand
-it. The boy seemed to be everywhere. The boy seemed to follow him
-about. He came to the conclusion that it must be his imagination, but
-it made him feel vaguely uneasy.
-
-Then he addressed the meeting on Temperance, his audience consisting
-chiefly of adults. But, in the very front seat, the same earnest
-frowning boy fixed him with a determined gaze. When the Bishop first
-encountered this gaze he became slightly disconcerted, and lost his
-place in his notes. Then he tried to forget the disturbing presence
-and address his remarks to the middle of the hall. But there was
-something hypnotic in the small boy’s gaze. In the end the Bishop
-yielded to it. He fixed his eyes obediently upon William. He harangued
-William earnestly and forcibly upon the necessity of self-control and
-the effect of alcohol upon the liver. And William returned his gaze
-unblinkingly.
-
-After the meeting William wandered down the road to the Vicarage. He
-pondered gloomily over his wasted afternoon. Fate had not thrown the
-Bishop’s handkerchief in his path. But he did not yet despair.
-
-On the way he met Ginger. Ginger drew out his interminable coloured
-handkerchief and shook it proudly.
-
-“D’ye mean to _say_,” he said to William, “that you still use those old
-_white_ ones?”
-
-William looked at him with cold scorn.
-
-“I’m too busy to bother with you jus’ now,” he said.
-
-Ginger went on.
-
-William looked cautiously through the Vicarage hedge. Nothing was to be
-seen. He crawled inside the garden and round to the back of the house,
-which was invisible from the road. The Bishop was tired after his
-address. He lay outstretched upon a deck-chair beneath a tree.
-
-Over the head and face of His Lordship was stretched a large superfine
-linen handkerchief. William’s set stern expression brightened. On hands
-and knees he began to crawl through the grass towards the portly form,
-his tongue protruding from his pursed lips.
-
-Crouching behind the chair, he braced himself for the crime; he
-measured the distance between the chair and the garden gate.
-
-One, two, three--then suddenly the portly form stirred, the
-handkerchief was firmly withdrawn by a podgy hand, and a dignified
-voice yawned and said: “Heigh-ho!”
-
-At the same moment the Bishop sat up. William, from his refuge behind
-the chair, looked wildly round. The door of the house was opening.
-There was only one thing to do. William was as nimble as a monkey. Like
-a flash of lightning he disappeared up the tree. It was a very leafy
-tree. It completely concealed William, but William had a good bird’s
-eye view of the world beneath him. The Vicar came out rubbing his hands.
-
-“You rested, my Lord?” he said.
-
-“I’m afraid I’ve had forty winks,” said His Lordship pleasantly. “Just
-dropped off, you know. I dreamt about that boy who was at the meeting
-this afternoon.”
-
-“What boy, my Lord?” asked the Vicar.
-
-“I noticed him at the Sale of Work and the meeting--he looked--he
-looked a soulful boy. I daresay you know him.”
-
-The Vicar considered.
-
-“I can’t think of any boy round here like that,” he said.
-
-The Bishop sighed.
-
-“He may have been a stranger, of course,” he said meditatively.
-“It seemed an earnest _questing_ face--as if the boy wanted
-something--_needed_ something. I hope my little talk helped him.”
-
-“Without doubt it did, my Lord,” said the Vicar politely. “I thought we
-might dine out here--the days draw out so pleasantly now.”
-
-Up in his tree, William with smirks and hand-rubbing and mincing
-(though soundless) movements of his lips kept up a running imitation
-of the Vicar’s speech, for the edification apparently of a caterpillar
-which was watching him intently.
-
-[Illustration: THE BENT PIN CAUGHT THE BISHOP’S EAR, AND THE BISHOP SAT
-UP WITH A LITTLE SCREAM.]
-
-The Vicar went in to order dinner in the garden. The Bishop drew the
-delicate handkerchief once more over his rubicund features. In the tree
-William abandoned his airy pastime, and his face took on again the
-expression of soulful earnestness that had pleased the Bishop.
-
-The breast of the Bishop on the lawn began to rise and sink. The figure
-of the Vicar was visible at the study window as he gazed with fond
-pride upon the slumbers of his distinguished guest. William dared not
-descend in view of that watching figure. Finally it sat down in a chair
-by the window and began to read a book.
-
-[Illustration: FROM THE TREE WILLIAM MADE A LAST DESPERATE EFFORT.]
-
-Then William began to act. He took from his pocket a bent pin attached
-to a piece of string. This apparatus lived permanently in his pocket,
-because he had not given up hope of catching a trout in the village
-stream. He lowered this cautiously and drew the bent pin carefully on
-to the white linen expanse.
-
-It caught--joy!
-
-“Phut!” said the Bishop, bringing down his hand heavily, not on the
-pin, but near it.
-
-The pin was loosened--William drew it back cautiously up into the tree,
-and the Bishop settled himself once more to his slumbers.
-
-Again the pin descended--again it caught.
-
-“Phut!” said the Bishop, testily shaking the handkerchief, and again
-loosening the pin.
-
-Leaning down from his leafy retreat William made one last desperate
-effort. He drew the bent pin sharply across. It missed the handkerchief
-and it caught the Bishop’s ear. The Bishop sat up with a scream.
-William, pin and string, withdrew into the shade of the branches.
-“Crumbs!” said William desperately to the caterpillar, “talk about bad
-_luck!_”
-
-The Vicar ran out from the house, full of concern at the sound of the
-Bishop’s scream.
-
-“I’ve been badly stung in the ear by some insect,” said the Bishop in a
-voice that was pained and dignified. “Some virulent tropical insect, I
-should think--very painful. Very painful indeed----”
-
-“My Lord,” said the Vicar, “I am so sorry--so very sorry--a thousand
-pardons--can I procure some remedy for you--vaseline, ammonia--er--cold
-cream----?” Up in the tree the pantomimic imitation of him went on much
-to William’s satisfaction.
-
-“No, no, no, no,” snapped the Bishop. “This must be a bad place for
-insects, that’s all. Even before that some heavy creatures came banging
-against my handkerchief. I put my handkerchief over my face for a
-protection. If I had failed to do that I should have been badly stung.”
-
-“Shall we dine indoors, then, my Lord?” said the Vicar.
-
-“Oh, no, no, NO!” said the Bishop impatiently.
-
-The Vicar sat down upon his chair. William collected a handful of
-acorns and began to drop them one by one upon the Vicar’s bald head. He
-did this simply because he could not help it. The sight of the Vicar’s
-bald head was irresistible. Each time an acorn struck the Vicar’s bald
-head it bounced up into the air, and the Vicar put up his hand and
-rubbed his head. At first he tried to continue his conversation on the
-state of the parish finances with the Bishop, but his replies became
-distrait and incoherent. He moved his chair slightly. William moved the
-position of his arm and continued to drop acorns.
-
-At last the Bishop noticed it.
-
-“The acorns seem to be falling,” he said.
-
-The Vicar rubbed his head again.
-
-“Don’t they?” he said.
-
-“Rather early,” commented the Bishop.
-
-“Isn’t it?” he said as another acorn bounced upon his head.
-
-The Bishop began to take quite an interest in the unusual phenomenon.
-
-“I shouldn’t be surprised if there was some sort of blight in that
-tree,” he said. “It would account for the premature dropping of the
-acorns and for the insects that attacked me.”
-
-“Exactly,” said the Vicar irritably, as yet another acorn hit him.
-William’s aim was unerring.
-
-Here a diversion was caused by the maid who came out to lay the
-table. They watched her in silence. The Vicar moved his chair again,
-and William, after pocketing his friend the caterpillar, shifted his
-position in the tree again to get a better aim.
-
-“Do you know,” said the Bishop, “I believe that there is a cat in the
-tree. Several times I have heard a slight rustling.”
-
-It would have been better for William to remain silent, but
-William’s genius occasionally misled him. He was anxious to prevent
-investigation; to prove once for all his identity as a cat.
-
-He leant forward and uttered a re-echoing “Mi-_aw-aw-aw!_”
-
-As imitations go it was rather good.
-
-There was a slight silence. Then:
-
-“It _is_ a cat,” said the Bishop in triumph.
-
-“Excuse me, my Lord,” said the Vicar.
-
-He went softly into the house and returned holding a shoe.
-
-“This will settle his feline majesty,” he smiled.
-
-Then he hurled the shoe violently into the tree.
-
-“Sh! Scoot!” he said as he did it.
-
-William was annoyed. The shoe narrowly missed his face. He secured it
-and waited.
-
-“I hope you haven’t lost the shoe,” said the Bishop anxiously.
-
-“Oh, no. The gardener’s boy or someone will get it for me. It’s the
-best thing to do with cats. It’s probably scared it on to the roof.”
-
-He settled himself in his chair comfortably with a smile.
-
-William leant down, held the shoe deliberately over the bald head, then
-dropped it.
-
-“_Damn!_” said the Vicar. “Excuse me, my Lord.”
-
-“H’m,” said the Bishop. “Er--yes--most annoying. It lodged in a branch
-for a time probably, and then obeyed the force of gravity.”
-
-The Vicar was rubbing his head. William wanted to enjoy the sight of
-the Vicar rubbing his head. He moved a little further up the branch. He
-forgot all caution. He forgot that the branch on which he was was not a
-very secure branch, and that the further up he moved the less secure it
-became.
-
-There was the sound of a rending and a crashing, and on to the table
-between the amazed Vicar and Bishop descended William’s branch and
-William.
-
-The Bishop gazed at him. “Why, that’s the boy,” he said.
-
-William sat up among the debris of broken glasses and crockery. He
-discovered that he was bruised and that his hand was cut by one of the
-broken glasses. He extricated himself from the branch and the table,
-and stood rubbing his bruises and sucking his hand.
-
-“Crumbs!” was all he said.
-
-The Vicar was gazing at him speechlessly.
-
-“You know, my boy,” said the Bishop in mild reproach, “that’s a very
-curious thing to do--to hide up there for the purpose of eavesdropping.
-I know that you are an earnest, well-meaning little boy, and that you
-were interested in my address this afternoon, and I daresay you were
-hoping to listen to me again, but this is my time for relaxation, you
-know. Suppose the Vicar and I had been talking about something we
-didn’t want you to hear? I’m sure you wouldn’t like to listen to things
-people didn’t want you to hear, would you?”
-
-William stared at him in unconcealed amazement. The Vicar, with growing
-memories of acorns and shoes and “damns” and with murder in his heart,
-was picking up twigs and broken glass. He knew that he could not, in
-the Bishop’s presence, say the things to William and do the things to
-William that he wanted to do and say. He contented himself with saying:
-
-“You’d better go home now. Tell your father I’ll be coming to see him
-to-morrow.”
-
-“A well-meaning little boy, I’m sure,” said the Bishop kindly,
-“well-meaning, but unwise--er--unwise--but your attentiveness during
-the meeting did you credit, my boy--did you credit.”
-
-William, for all his ingenuity, could think of no remark suitable to
-the occasion.
-
-“Hurry up,” said the Vicar.
-
-William turned to go. He knew when he was beaten. He had spent
-a lot of time and trouble and had not even secured the episcopal
-handkerchief. He had bruised himself and cut himself. He understood
-the Vicar’s veiled threat. He saw his already distant chances of
-pocket-money vanish into nothingness when the cost of the Vicar’s
-glasses and plates was added to the landing window. He wouldn’t have
-minded if he’d got the handkerchief. He wouldn’t have minded anything
-if----
-
-“Don’t suck your hand, my boy,” said the Bishop. “An open cut like that
-is most dangerous. Poison works into the system by it. You remember
-I told you how the poison of alcohol works into the system--well,
-any kind of poison can work into it by a cut--don’t suck it; keep it
-covered up--haven’t you a handkerchief?--here, take mine. You needn’t
-trouble to return it. It’s an old one.”
-
-The Bishop was deeply touched by what he called the “bright
-spirituality” of the smile with which William thanked him.
-
- * * * * *
-
-William, limping slightly, his hand covered by a grimy rag, came out
-into the garden, drawing from his pocket with a triumphant flourish an
-enormous violently-coloured silk handkerchief. Robert, who was weeding
-the rose-bed, looked up. “Here,” he called, “you can jolly well go and
-put that handkerchief of mine back.”
-
-William continued his limping but proud advance.
-
-“’S’ all right,” he called airily, “the Bishop’s is on your
-dressing-table.”
-
-Robert dropped the trowel.
-
-“Gosh!” he gasped, and hastened indoors to investigate.
-
-William went down to the gate, smiling very slightly to himself.
-
-“The days are drawing out so pleasantly,” he was saying to himself in
-a mincing accent. “Vaseline--ammonia--er--or cold cream----Damn!”
-
-He leant over the gate, took out his caterpillar, satisfied himself
-that it was still alive, put it back and looked up and down the road.
-In the distance he caught sight of the figure of his friend.
-
-“Gin--_ger_,” he yelled in hideous shrillness.
-
-He waved his coloured handkerchief carelessly in greeting as he called.
-Then he swaggered out into the road....
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-HENRI LEARNS THE LANGUAGE
-
-
-It was Joan who drew William and the Outlaws from their immemorial
-practice of playing at Pirates and Red Indians.
-
-“I’m tired of being a squaw,” she said plaintively, “an’ I’m tired of
-walking the plank an’ I want to be something else an’ do something
-else.”
-
-Joan was the only girl whose existence the Outlaws officially
-recognised. This was partly owing to Joan’s own personal attractiveness
-and partly to the fact that an admiration for Joan was the only human
-weakness of their manly leader, William. Thus Joan was admitted to
-all such games as required the female element. The others she was
-graciously allowed to watch.
-
-They received her outburst with pained astonishment.
-
-“Well,” said Ginger coldly, “wot else is there to do an’ be?”
-
-Ginger felt that the very foundation of the Society of Outlaws was
-being threatened. The Outlaws had played at Red Indians and Pirates
-since their foundation.
-
-“Let’s play at being ordinary people,” said Joan.
-
-“Ordinary people----!” exploded Douglas. “There’s no _playin’_ in bein’
-_ordinary_ people. Wot’s the good----?”
-
-“Let’s be Jasmine Villas,” said Joan, warming to her theme. “We’ll each
-be a person in Jasmine Villas----”
-
-William, who had so far preserved a judicial silence, now said:
-
-“I don’ mind playin’ ornery people s’long as we don’ do ornery things.”
-
-“Oh, no, William,” said Joan with the air of meekness with which she
-always received William’s oracles, “we needn’t do ornery things.”
-
-“Then bags me be ole Mr. Burwash.”
-
-“And me Miss Milton next door,” said Joan hastily.
-
-The Outlaws were beginning to see vague possibilities in the game.
-
-“An’ me Mr. Luton,” said Ginger.
-
-“An’ me Mr. Buck,” said Douglas.
-
-Henry, the remaining outlaw, looked around him indignantly. Jasmine
-Villas only contained four houses.
-
-“An’ wot about _me?_” he said.
-
-“Oh, you be a policeman wot walks about outside,” said William.
-
-Henry, mollified, began to practise a commanding strut.
-
-In the field behind the old barn that was the scene of most of their
-activities they began to construct Jasmine Villas by boundary lines of
-twigs. Each inhabitant took up their position inside a twig-encircled
-enclosure, and Henry paraded officiously around.
-
-“Now we’ll jus’ have a minute to think of what things to do,” said
-William, “an’ then I’ll begin.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William was sitting in his back garden thinking out exploits to perform
-that afternoon in the character of Mr. Burwash. The game of Jasmine
-Villas had “taken on” beyond all expectation. Mr. Burwash stole Miss
-Milton’s washing during her afternoon siesta, Mr. Buck locked up Mr.
-Luton in his coal cellar and ate up all his provisions, and always
-the entire population of Jasmine Villas was chased round the field
-by Henry, the policeman, several times during a game. Often some of
-them were arrested, tried, condemned and imprisoned by the stalwart
-Henry, to be rescued later by a joint force of the other inhabitants of
-Jasmine Villas.
-
-William, sitting on an inverted flower pot, absent-mindedly chewing
-grass and throwing sticks for his mongrel, Jumble, to worry, was
-wondering whether (in his rôle of Mr. Burwash) it would be more
-exciting to go mad and resist the ubiquitous Henry’s efforts to take
-him to an asylum, or marry Miss Milton. The only drawback to the
-latter plan was that they had provided no clergyman. However, perhaps
-a policeman would do.... Finally he decided that it would be more
-exciting to go mad and leave Miss Milton to someone else.
-
-“’Ello!”
-
-A thin, lugubrious face appeared over the fence that separated
-William’s garden from the next door garden.
-
-“’Ello!” replied William, throwing it a cold glance and returning to
-his pastime of entertaining Jumble.
-
-“I weesh to leearn ze Eengleesh,” went on the owner of the lugubrious
-face. “My godmother ’ere she talk ze correct Eengleesh. It ees ze
-idiomatic Eengleesh I weesh to leearn--how you call it?--ze slang. You
-talk ze slang--ees it not?”
-
-William gave the intruder a devastating glare, gathering up his twigs
-and with a commanding “Hi, Jumble,” set off round the side of the house.
-
-“Oh, William!”
-
-William sighed as he recognised his mother’s voice. This was followed
-by his mother’s head which appeared at the open drawing-room window.
-
-“I’m busy _jus’_ now----” said William sternly.
-
-“William, Mrs. Frame next door has a godson staying with her and he is
-so anxious to mix with boys and learn colloquial English. I’ve asked
-him to tea this afternoon. Oh here he is.”
-
-The owner of the thin lugubrious face--a young man of about
-eighteen--appeared behind William.
-
-“I made a way--’ow say you?--through a ’ole in ze fence. I weeshed to
-talk wiz ze boy.”
-
-“Well, now, William,” said Mrs. Brown persuasively, “you might spend
-the afternoon with Henri and talk to him.”
-
-William’s face was a study in horror and indignation.
-
-“I shan’t know what to say to him,” he said desperately. “I can’t talk
-his kind of talk.”
-
-“I’m sure that’ll be quite all right,” said Mrs. Brown, kindly. “He
-speaks English very well. Just talk to him simply and naturally.”
-
-She brought the argument to an end by closing the window and leaving an
-embittered William to undertake his new responsibility.
-
-“’Ave you a ’oliday zis afternoon,” began his new responsibility.
-
-“I ’ave,” said William simply and naturally.
-
-“Zen we weel talk,” said Henri with enthusiasm. “We weel talk an’ you
-weel teach to me ze slang.”
-
-“’Fraid I’ve gotter play a game this afternoon,” said William icily as
-they set off down the road.
-
-“I weel play,” said Henri pleasantly, “I like ze games.”
-
-“I’m fraid,” said William with equal pleasantness, “there won’t be no
-room for you.”
-
-“I weel watch zen,” said Henri, “I like too ze watching.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Henri, who had spent the afternoon watching the game, was on his way
-home. He had enjoyed watching the game. He had watched a realistically
-insane Mr. Burwash resist all attempts at capture on the part of the
-local policeman. He had watched Mr. Luton propose to Miss Milton,
-and he had watched Mr. Buck in his end house being gloriously and
-realistically drunk. This was an accomplishment of Douglas’s that was
-forbidden at home under threat of severe punishment, but it was greatly
-appreciated by the Outlaws.
-
-Henri walked along jauntily, practising slang to himself.
-
-“Oh, ze Crumbs ... oh, ze Crikey ... ze jolly well ... righto ... git
-out ... ze bash on the mug....”
-
-General Moult--fat and important-looking--came breezily down the road.
-
-“Ah, Henri ... how are you getting on?”
-
-“Ze jolly well,” said Henri.
-
-“Been for a walk?” said the General yet more breezily.
-
-“Non.... I been to Jasmine Villas.... Oh, ze Crumbs.... I see ole
-Meester Burwash go--’ow you say it?--off ze head--out of ze chump.”
-
-“_What?_”
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Henri, “an’ the policeman ’e come an’ try to take ’im
-away an’ ’e fight an’ fight, an’ ze policeman ’e go for ’elp----”
-
-The General’s mouth was hanging open in amazement.
-
-“B-but, are you _sure?_” he gasped.
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Henri cheerfully. “I ’ave _been_ zere. I ’ave ze jolly
-well watch eet.”
-
-“But, good heavens!” said the General, and hastened in the direction of
-Jasmine Villas.
-
-Henri sauntered on by himself.
-
-“Ze ’oly aunt ... a’right ... ze boose ...” he murmured softly.
-
-At the corner of the road he ran into Mr. Graham Graham. Mr. Graham
-Graham was tall and lank, with pince-nez and an earnest expression. Mr.
-Graham Graham’s earnest expression did not belie his character. He was,
-among other things, the President of the local Temperance Society. He
-had met Henri with his godmother the day before.
-
-“Well, Henri,” he said earnestly. “And how have you been spending your
-time?”
-
-“I ’ave been to Jasmine Villas,” said Henri.
-
-“Ah, yes--to whom----?”
-
-Henri interrupted.
-
-“An’ I ’ave seen Meester Buck ... oh, ze crumbs ... ’ow say you? ...
-tight ... boozed ... derrunk.”
-
-Mr. Graham Graham paled.
-
-“Never!” he said.
-
-Mr. Buck was the Secretary of the local Temperance Society.
-
-“Oh, yes, ze ’oly aunt!” said Henri, “ze policeman ’e ’elp ’im into the
-’ouse--’e was, ’ow say you? ro-o-o-o-olling.”
-
-“This is impossible,” said Mr. Graham Graham sternly.
-
-“I ’ave seed it,” said Henri simply. “I laugh ... oh, ze Crikey ...
-_’ow_ I laugh....”
-
-Mr. Graham Graham turned upon Henri a cold condemning silent glance
-then set off in the direction of Jasmine Villas.
-
-Henri wandered homewards.
-
-He met his godmother coming out of her front gate.
-
-“We’re going to Mrs. Brown’s to tea, you know, Henri,” she reminded him.
-
-“A’right,” said Henri. “A’right--righto.”
-
-He accompanied her to Mrs. Brown’s.
-
-“And did you spend the afternoon with William?” said Mrs. Brown
-pleasantly.
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Henri as he sat down comfortably by the fire, “at ze
-Jasmine Villas.... Mr. Luton ’e kees Miss Milton in the garden.”
-
-Henri’s godmother dropped her buttered scone.
-
-“_Nonsense!_” she said.
-
-“’E did,” said Henri calmly. “I ’ave seed ’im. An’ she gave ’im--’ow
-say you?--ze bash on ze mug. But she tell me she goin’ to marry
-’im--righto.”
-
-“She _told_ you?” gasped Mrs. Brown.
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Henri, “she tell me so ’erself.”
-
-Both Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother were pale.
-
-“Do you think she doesn’t know that he’s married and separated from his
-wife?” said Henri’s godmother.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Mrs. Brown. “I feel that I can’t eat a thing now.
-Someone ought to tell her at once.”
-
-“Let’s go,” said Henri’s godmother suddenly, “before she tells anyone
-else. The poor woman!”
-
-They went out quickly, leaving Henri alone in the drawing-room. Henri
-chose a large sugared cake and began to munch it.
-
-“Ze jolly well good,” he commented contentedly.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The General approached Mr. Burwash’s house cautiously. There was no
-sign of a disturbance. Evidently the policeman had not yet returned
-with help. The General entered the garden and went on tiptoe to the
-morning-room window. He was full of curiosity. There was the madman.
-He was sitting at a table with his back to the window. There was a mad
-look about his very back. The General was suddenly inspired by the idea
-of making the capture single-handed. It would be a glorious page in the
-annals of the village. The front door was open. The General entered
-and walked very slowly down the hall. The morning-room door was open.
-It was here that the General made the painful discovery that his boots
-squeaked. The squeaking would undoubtedly attract the attention of the
-lunatic as he entered. The General had another inspiration. He dropped
-down upon his hands and knees. He could thus make his way unseen
-and unheard to the back of the madman, then spring to his feet and
-overpower him.
-
-He entered the room.
-
-He reached the middle of the room.
-
-Then Mr. Burwash turned round.
-
-Mr. Burwash was met by the sight of the General creeping gingerly and
-delicately across his morning-room carpet on hands and knees. Mr.
-Burwash leapt to the not unreasonable conclusion that the General had
-gone mad. Mr. Burwash knew that a madman must be humoured. He also
-dropped upon his hands and knees.
-
-“Bow-wow!” he said.
-
-If the General thought he was a dog, the General must be humoured.
-
-“Bow-wow!” promptly replied the General.
-
-The General also knew that madmen must be humoured.
-
-They continued this conversation for several minutes.
-
-Then Mr. Burwash, intent on escape, made a leap towards the door, and
-the General, intent on capture, made a leap to intercept him.
-
-They leapt about the room excitedly uttering short, shrill barks.
-The General never quite knew what made him change into a cat. It
-was partly that he was tired of barking and partly that he hoped to
-lure Mr. Burwash after him into the more open space of the hall and
-there overpower him. Mr. Burwash’s pursuit was realistic, and the
-General, violently chased into the hall, decided to leave the capture
-to the police after all, and made for the hall door. But a furiously
-barking Mr. Burwash cut off his retreat. The General, still miaowing
-unconsciously in a high treble voice, scampered on all fours up the
-stairs and took refuge in a small room at the top, slamming the door
-against the pursuing lunatic. The key was turned in the lock from
-outside.
-
-At the top of the stairs Mr. Burwash stood trembling slightly, and
-wiped his brow. A violent sound of kicking came from the locked room.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother heard vaguely the distant sounds of
-the kicking next door, but their delicate interview with Miss Milton
-was taking all their attention.
-
-Miss Milton, who had been to see a girl whom she was engaging as
-housemaid for Mr. Luton, was just taking off her things. Miss Milton
-kept a purely maternal eye upon Mr. Luton.
-
-“You know, dear,” said Henri’s godmother, “we felt we had to come and
-tell you as soon as we heard the news. He’s got one already.”
-
-“Who?” said Miss Milton, angular and severe looking.
-
-“Mr. Luton.”
-
-“He might have told me,” said Miss Milton.
-
-“But she’s left him,” put in Mrs. Brown.
-
-“Then I’d better see about providing him with another,” said Miss
-Milton.
-
-“She--she’s not divorced,” gasped Mrs. Brown.
-
-“I should hope not,” said Miss Milton primly. “I’m always most
-particular about that sort of thing.”
-
-“But when we heard he’d been seen kissing you----” said Henri’s
-godmother.
-
-Miss Milton gave a piercing scream.
-
-“ME?” she said.
-
-“Yes, when we heard that Mr. Luton had been seen----”
-
-Miss Milton gave a still more piercing scream.
-
-“Slanderers,” she shrieked, “vampires....”
-
-She advanced upon them quivering with rage.
-
-“I’m so sorry,” gasped Mrs. Brown retreating precipitately. “Quite a
-mistake ... a misunderstanding....”
-
-“Liars ... hypocrites ... snakes in the grass!” screamed Miss Milton,
-still advancing.
-
-Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother fled trembling to the road. Miss
-Milton’s screams still rent the air. There, two curious sights met
-their eyes. The General and Mr. Graham Graham were making their exits
-from the two end houses in unconventional fashion. Mr. Graham Graham
-fell down the steps and rolled down the garden path to the road. An
-infuriated Mr. Buck watched his departure.
-
-“I’ll teach you to come and insult respectable people,” shouted Mr.
-Buck. “Drunkard indeed! And I’ve been Secretary of the Temperance
-Society for forty years. You’re drunk, let me tell you----”
-
-Mr. Graham Graham, still sitting in the road, put on his hat.
-
-“I’m not drunk,” he said with dignity.
-
-“I’ll have the law on you,” shouted Mr. Buck. “It’s libel, that’s what
-it is----”
-
-Mr. Graham Graham gathered together his collar ends and tried to find
-his stud.
-
-“I merely repeat what I’ve heard,” he said.
-
-Mr. Buck slammed the door and Mr. Graham Graham staggered to his feet.
-
-Then he stood open-mouthed, his eyes fixed on the other end house.
-The stout figure of the General could be seen emerging from a small
-first floor window and making a slow and ungraceful descent down a
-drain pipe. It was noticed that he had no hat and that his knees were
-very dusty. Once on the ground he ran wildly across the garden into
-the road, almost charging the little group who were watching him. With
-pale, horror-struck faces the four of them gazed at each other.
-
-“Henri told me----” all four began simultaneously, then stopped.
-
-“D-do come and have some tea,” said Mrs. Brown hysterically.
-
- * * * * *
-
-[Illustration: AT THE WINDOW HENRI EXCLAIMED SHRILLY, “OH, ZE ’OLY
-AUNT!” AND THE OUTLAWS HASTILY JOINED HIM.]
-
-William was leading his Outlaws quietly round from the front gate to
-the back of the house, passing the drawing-room window on tiptoe.
-Suddenly William stopped dead, gazing with interest into the
-drawing-room. The expected tea party was not there. Only Henri still
-eating sugar cakes, was there. William put his head through the open
-window.
-
-[Illustration: FOUR PEOPLE WERE COMING DOWN THE ROAD--FOUR VERY ANGRY
-PEOPLE.]
-
-“I say,” he said in a hoarse whisper, “they been an’ gone?”
-
-“Oh, yes,” smiled Henri, “they been an’ gone--righto.”
-
-“Come on!” said William to his followers.
-
-They crept into the hall and then guiltily into the drawing-room.
-William looked at the plates of dainty food with widening eyes.
-
-“Shu’ly,” he remarked plaintively, “’f they’ve been an’ gone they can’t
-mind us jus’ finishin’ up what they’ve left. _Shu’ly._”
-
-William made this statement less at the dictates of truth than at the
-dictates of an empty stomach.
-
-“Jus’--jus’ look out of the window, Ongry,” he said, “an’ tell us if
-anyone comes.”
-
-Henri obligingly took up his position at the window and the Outlaws
-gave themselves up whole-heartedly to the task of “finishing up.”
-
-They finished up the buttered scones and they finished up the bread and
-butter and they finished up the sandwiches and they finished up the
-biscuits and they finished up the small cakes and they finished up the
-two large cakes.
-
-“I’m jus’ a bit tired of this ole Jasmine Villas game,” said William,
-his mouth full of sugar cake. “I votes we go back to Pirates an’ Red
-Injuns to-morrow.”
-
-The Outlaws, who were still busy, agreed with grunts.
-
-“I think----” began Douglas, but just then Henri at the window
-ejaculated shrilly, “Oh, ze ’oly aunt.”
-
-The Outlaws hastily joined him. Four people were coming down the road.
-The General--_could_ it be the General? (the drain pipe had been very
-dirty)--Mr. Graham Graham, his collar open, his tie awry, Henri’s
-godmother with her hat on one side, and Mrs. Brown, her usual look of
-placid equanimity replaced by a look that was almost wild. They were
-certainly coming to the Browns’ house. William looked guiltily at the
-empty plates and cakestand. Except upon the carpet (for the Outlaws
-were not born drawing-room eaters) there was not a crumb to be seen.
-
-“P’raps,” said William hastily to his friends, “p’raps we’d better go
-now.”
-
-His friends agreed.
-
-They went as quietly and unostentatiously as possible by way of the
-back regions.
-
-Henri remained at the window. He watched the curious quartette as they
-came in at the gate.
-
-Details of their appearance, unnoticed before, became clear as they
-drew nearer.
-
-“Ze Crumbs _an’_ ze Crikey!” ejaculated Henri.
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was two hours later. William sat disconsolately upon the upturned
-plant pot throwing stones half-heartedly at the fence. Jumble sat
-disconsolately by him snapping half-heartedly at flies. The Outlaws had
-nobly shared the sugar cakes with Jumble and he was just beginning to
-wish that they hadn’t....
-
-Suddenly Henri’s face appeared at the top of the fence.
-
-“’Ello!” he said.
-
-“’Ello!” sighed William.
-
-“Zey talk to me,” said Henri sadly, “_’ow_ zey talk to me jus’ because
-I tell ’em about your leetle game.”
-
-“Yes,” said William bitterly, “and _’ow_ they talk to me jus’ ’cause we
-finished up a few ole cakes and things left over from tea. You’d think
-to hear ’em that they’d have been glad to come home and find me starved
-dead.”
-
-Henri leant yet further over the fence.
-
-“But zey looked ... _’ow_ zey looked!”
-
-There was silence for a moment while the mental vision of “’ow zey
-looked” came to both. Then William’s rare laugh--unmusical and
-penetrating--rang out. Mrs. Brown, who was suffering from a severe
-headache as the result of the events of the afternoon, hastily closed
-the drawing-room window. Followed Henri’s laugh--high-pitched and like
-the neighing of a horse. Henri’s godmother tore herself with a groan
-from the bed on which she was indulging in a nervous breakdown and
-flung up her bedroom window.
-
-“Henri, are you ill?” she cried. “What is it?”
-
-“Oh, ze nosings,” replied Henri.
-
-Then, leaning yet more dangerously over the fence, “What ze game you
-goin’ to play to-morrow, Willem?”
-
-“Pirates,” said William, regaining his usual calm. “Like to come?”
-
-“Oh, ze jolly well righto yes!” said Henri.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE SWEET LITTLE GIRL IN WHITE
-
-
-The Hall stood empty most of the year, but occasionally tenants
-re-awoke the passing interest of the village in it. This summer it
-was taken by a Mr. and Mrs. Bott with their daughter. Mr. Bott’s
-name decorated most of the hoardings of his native country. On
-these hoardings citizens of England were urged to safeguard their
-digestion by taking Bott’s Sauce with their meat. After reading Bott’s
-advertisements one felt convinced that any food without Bott’s Sauce
-was rank poison. One even felt that it would be safer to live on Bott’s
-Sauce alone. On such feelings had Mr. Bott--as rubicund and rotund as
-one of his own bottles of sauce--reared a fortune sufficient to enable
-him to take the Hall for the summer without, as the saying is, turning
-a hair.
-
-William happened to be sitting on the fence by the side of the
-road when the motor containing Mr. and Mrs. Bott--both stout and
-overdressed--and Miss Violet Elizabeth Bott and Miss Violet Elizabeth
-Bott’s nurse flashed by. William was not interested. He was at the
-moment engaged in whittling a stick and watching the antics of his
-mongrel, Jumble, as he caught and worried each shaving. But he had
-a glimpse of a small child with an elaborately curled head and an
-elaborately flounced white dress sitting by an elaborately uniformed
-nurse. He gazed after the equipage scowling.
-
-“Huh!” he said, and it is impossible to convey in print the scorn of
-that monosyllable as uttered by William, “_a girl!_”
-
-Then he returned to his whittling.
-
- * * * * *
-
-William’s mother met Mrs. Bott at the Vicar’s. Mrs. Bott, who always
-found strangers more sympathetic than people who knew her well,
-confided her troubles to Mrs. Brown. Her troubles included her
-own rheumatism, Mr. Bott’s liver, and the carelessness of Violet
-Elizabeth’s nurse.
-
-“Always reading these here novelettes, the girl is. I hope you’ll
-come and see me, dear, and didn’t some one say you had a little boy?
-Do bring him. I want Violet Elizabeth to get to know some nice little
-children.”
-
-Mrs. Brown hesitated. She was aware that none of her acquaintances
-would have described William as a nice little child. Mrs. Bott
-misunderstood her hesitation. She laid a fat ringed hand on her knee.
-
-“I know, dear. You’re careful who the little laddie knows, like me.
-Well now, you needn’t worry. I’ve brought up our Violet Elizabeth most
-particular. She’s a girlie who wouldn’t do your little boysie any
-harm----”
-
-“Oh,” gasped Mrs. Brown, “it’s not that.”
-
-“Then you’ll come, dearie, and bring the little boysie with you, won’t
-you?”
-
-She took Mrs. Brown’s speechlessness for consent.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“_Me?_” said William indignantly. “Me go to tea with that ole girl?
-_Me?_”
-
-“She--she’s a nice little girl,” said Mrs. Brown weakly.
-
-“I saw her,” said William scathingly, “curls and things.”
-
-“Well, you must come. She’s expecting you.”
-
-“I only hope,” said William sternly, “that she won’t ’spect me to
-_talk_ to her.”
-
-“She’ll expect you to _play_ with her, I’m sure,” said his mother.
-
-“Play?” said William. “_Play?_ With a girl? _Me?_ Huh!”
-
-William, pale and proud, and dressed in his best suit, his heart
-steeled to his humiliating fate, went with his mother to the Hall the
-next week. He was silent all the way there. His thoughts were too deep
-for words. Mrs. Brown watched him anxiously.
-
-An over-dressed Mrs. Bott was sitting in an over-furnished
-drawing-room. She rose at once with an over-effusive smile and held out
-over-ringed hands.
-
-“So you’ve brought dear little boysie,” she began.
-
-The over-effusive smile died away before the look that William turned
-on her.
-
-“Er--I hadn’t thought of him quite like that,” she said weakly, “but
-I’m sure he’s sweet,” she added hastily.
-
-William greeted her coldly and politely, then took his seat and sat
-like a small statue scowling in front of him. His hair had been brushed
-back with so much vigour and application of liquid that it looked as if
-it were painted on his head.
-
-“Would you like to look at a picture book, boysie?” she said.
-
-William did not answer. He merely looked at her and she hastily turned
-away to talk to Mrs. Brown. She talked about her rheumatism and Mr.
-Bott’s liver and the incompetence of Violet Elizabeth’s nurse.
-
-Then Violet Elizabeth entered. Violet Elizabeth’s fair hair was not
-naturally curly but as the result of great daily labour on the part
-of the much maligned nurse it stood up in a halo of curls round her
-small head. The curls looked almost, if not quite, natural. Violet
-Elizabeth’s small pink and white face shone with cleanliness. Violet
-Elizabeth was so treasured and guarded and surrounded with every care
-that her small pink and white face had never been known to do anything
-else except shine with cleanliness. But the _pièce de résistance_
-about Violet Elizabeth’s appearance was her skirts. Violet Elizabeth
-was dressed in a white lace trimmed dress with a blue waistband, and
-beneath the miniature blue waistband her skirts stood out like a tiny
-ballet dancer’s in a filmy froth of lace trimmed petticoats. From this
-cascade emerged Violet Elizabeth’s bare legs, to disappear ultimately
-into white silk socks and white buckskin shoes.
-
-William gazed at this engaging apparition in horror.
-
-“Good afternoon,” said Violet Elizabeth primly.
-
-“Good afternoon,” said William in a hollow voice.
-
-“Take the little boysie into the garden, Violet Elizabeth,” said her
-mother, “and play with him nicely.”
-
-William and Violet Elizabeth eyed each other apprehensively.
-
-“Come along, boy,” said Violet Elizabeth at last, holding out a hand.
-
-William ignored the hand and with the air of a hero bound to his
-execution, accompanied Violet Elizabeth into the garden.
-
-Mrs. Brown’s eyes followed them anxiously.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Whath your name?” said Violet Elizabeth.
-
-She lisped! She would, thought William bitterly, with those curls and
-those skirts. She would. He felt at any rate relieved that none of his
-friends could see him in the unmanly situation--talking to a kid like
-that--all eyes and curls and skirts.
-
-“William Brown,” he said distantly, looking over her head as if he did
-not see her.
-
-“How old are you?”
-
-“Eleven.”
-
-“My nameth Violet Elizabeth.”
-
-He received the information in silence.
-
-“I’m thix.”
-
-He made no comment. He examined the distant view with an abstracted
-frown.
-
-“Now you muth play with me.”
-
-William allowed his cold glance to rest upon her.
-
-“I don’t play little girls’ games,” he said scathingly. But Violet
-Elizabeth did not appear to be scathed.
-
-“Don’ you know any little girlth?” she said pityingly. “I’ll teach you
-little girlth gameth,” she added pleasantly.
-
-“I don’t _want_ to,” said William, “I don’t _like_ them. I don’t _like_
-little girls’ games. I don’t want to know ’em.”
-
-Violet Elizabeth gazed at him open-mouthed.
-
-“Don’t you _like_ little girlth?” she said.
-
-“_Me?_” said William with superior dignity. “Me? I don’t know anything
-about ’em. Don’t want to.”
-
-“D-don’t you like me?” quavered Violet Elizabeth in incredulous
-amazement. William looked at her. Her blue eyes filled slowly with
-tears, her lips quivered.
-
-“I like you,” she said. “Don’t you like me?”
-
-William stared at her in horror.
-
-“You--you _do_ like me, don’t you?”
-
-William was silent.
-
-A large shining tear welled over and trickled down the small pink cheek.
-
-“You’re making me cry,” sobbed Violet Elizabeth. “You are. You’re
-making me cry, ’cause you won’t say you like me.”
-
-“I--I do like you,” said William desperately. “Honest--I do. Don’t cry.
-I do like you. Honest!”
-
-A smile broke through the tear-stained face.
-
-“I’m tho glad,” she said simply. “You like all little girlth, don’t
-you?” She smiled at him hopefully. “You do, don’t you?”
-
-William, pirate and Red Indian and desperado, William, woman-hater and
-girl-despiser, looked round wildly for escape and found none.
-
-Violet Elizabeth’s eyes filled with tears again.
-
-“You _do_ like all little girlth, don’t you?” she persisted with
-quavering lip. “You do, don’t you?”
-
-It was a nightmare to William. They were standing in full view of the
-drawing-room window. At any moment a grown up might appear. He would
-be accused of brutality, of making little Violet Elizabeth cry. And,
-strangely enough, the sight of Violet Elizabeth with tear-filled eyes
-and trembling lips made him feel that he must have been brutal indeed.
-Beneath his horror he felt bewildered.
-
-“Yes, I do,” he said hastily, “I do. Honest I do.”
-
-She smiled again radiantly through her tears. “You with you wath a
-little girl, don’t you?”
-
-“Er--yes. Honest I do,” said the unhappy William.
-
-“Kith me,” she said raising her glowing face.
-
-William was broken.
-
-He brushed her cheek with his.
-
-“Thath not a kith,” said Violet Elizabeth.
-
-“It’s my kind of a kiss,” said William.
-
-“All right. Now leth play fairieth. I’ll thow you how.”
-
-On the way home Mrs. Brown, who always hoped vaguely that little girls
-would have a civilizing effect on William, asked William if he had
-enjoyed it. William had spent most of the afternoon in the character of
-a gnome attending upon Violet Elizabeth in the character of the fairy
-queen. Any attempt at rebellion had been met with tear-filled eyes and
-trembling lips. He was feeling embittered with life.
-
-“If all girls are like that----” said William, “well, when you think of
-all the hundreds of girls there must be in the world--well, it makes
-you feel sick.”
-
-Never had liberty and the comradeship of his own sex seemed sweeter to
-William than it did the next day when he set off whistling carelessly,
-his hands in his pockets, Jumble at his heels, to meet Ginger and
-Douglas across the fields.
-
-“You didn’t come yesterday,” they said when they met. They had missed
-William, the leader.
-
-“No,” he said shortly, “went out to tea.”
-
-“Where?” they said with interest.
-
-“Nowhere in particular,” said William inaccurately.
-
-A feeling of horror overcame him at the memory. If they knew--if they’d
-seen.... He blushed with shame at the very thought. To regain his
-self-respect he punched Ginger and knocked off Douglas’ cap. After the
-slight scuffle that ensued they set off down the road.
-
-“What’ll we do this morning?” said Ginger.
-
-It was sunny. It was holiday time. They had each other and a dog.
-Boyhood could not wish for more. The whole world lay before them.
-
-“Let’s go trespassin’,” said William the lawless.
-
-“Where?” enquired Douglas.
-
-“Hall woods--and take Jumble.”
-
-“That ole keeper said he’d tell our fathers if he caught us in again,”
-said Ginger.
-
-“Lettim!” said William, with a dare-devil air, slashing at the hedge
-with a stick. He was gradually recovering his self-respect. The
-nightmare memories of yesterday were growing faint. He flung a stone
-for the eager Jumble and uttered his shrill unharmonious war whoop.
-They entered the woods, William leading. He swaggered along the path.
-He was William, desperado, and scorner of girls. Yesterday was a dream.
-It must have been. No mere girl would dare even to speak to him. He had
-never played at fairies with a girl--he, William the pirate king, the
-robber chief.
-
-“William!”
-
-He turned, his proud smile frozen in horror.
-
-A small figure was flying along the path behind them--a bare-headed
-figure with elaborate curls and very short lacy bunchy skirts and bare
-legs with white shoes and socks.
-
-“William, _darling!_ I thaw you from the nurthery window coming along
-the road and I ethcaped. Nurth wath reading a book and I ethcaped.
-Oh, William darling, play with me again, _do_. It _wath_ so nith
-yethterday.”
-
-William glared at her speechless. He was glad of the presence of his
-manly friends, yet horrified as to what revelations this terrible young
-female might make, disgracing him for ever in their eyes.
-
-“Go away,” he said sternly at last, “we aren’t playing girls’ games.”
-
-“We don’t like girls,” said Ginger contemptuously.
-
-“William doth,” she said indignantly. “He thaid he did. He thaid he
-liked all little girlth. He thaid he withed he wath a little girl. He
-kithed me an’ played fairieth with me.”
-
-A glorious blush of a rich and dark red overspread William’s
-countenance.
-
-“_Oh!_” he ejaculated as if astounded at the depth of her
-untruthfulness, but it was not convincing.
-
-“Oh, you _did!_” said Violet Elizabeth. Somehow that was convincing.
-Ginger and Douglas looked at William rather coldly. Even Jumble seemed
-to look slightly ashamed of him.
-
-“Well, come along,” said Ginger, “we can’t stop here all day
-talking--to a _girl_.”
-
-“But I want to come with you,” said Violet Elizabeth. “I want to play
-with you.”
-
-“We’re going to play boys’ games. You wouldn’t like it,” said Douglas
-who was somewhat of a diplomatist.
-
-“I _like_ boyth gameth,” pleaded Violet Elizabeth, and her blue eyes
-filled with tears, “_pleath_ let me come.”
-
-“All right,” said William. “We can’t stop you comin’. Don’t take any
-notice of her,” he said to the others. “She’ll soon get tired of it.”
-
-They set off. William, for the moment abashed and deflated, followed
-humbly in their wake.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In a low-lying part of the wood was a bog. The bog was always there but
-as it had rained in the night the bog to-day was particularly boggy. It
-was quite possible to skirt this bog by walking round it on the higher
-ground, but William and his friends never did this. They preferred to
-pretend that the bog surrounded them on all sides as far as human eye
-could see and that at one false step they might sink deep in the morass
-never to be seen again.
-
-“Come along,” called William who had recovered his spirits and position
-of leadership. “Come along, my brave fellows ... tread careful or
-instant death will be your fate, and don’t take any notice of her,
-she’ll soon have had enough.”
-
-For Violet Elizabeth was trotting gaily behind the gallant band.
-
-They did not turn round or look at her, but they could not help seeing
-her out of the corners of their eyes. She plunged into the bog with
-a squeal of delight and stamped her elegant white-clad feet into the
-black mud.
-
-“Ithn’t it lovely?” she squealed. “Dothn’t it feel nith--all thquithy
-between your toth--ithn’t it _lovely?_ I _like_ boyth gameth.”
-
-They could not help looking at her when they emerged. As fairy-like as
-ever above, her feet were covered with black mud up to above her socks.
-Shoes and socks were sodden.
-
-“Ith a _lovely_ feeling!” she commented delightedly on the other side.
-“Leth do it again.”
-
-But William and his band remembered their manly dignity and strode on
-without answering. She followed with short dancing steps. Each of them
-carried a stick with which they smote the air or any shrub they passed.
-Violet Elizabeth secured a stick and faithfully imitated them. They
-came to a clear space in the wood, occupied chiefly by giant blackberry
-bushes laden with fat ripe berries.
-
-“Now, my brave fellows,” said William, “take your fill. ’Tis well we
-have found this bit of food or we would e’en have starved, an’ don’
-help her or get any for her an’ let her get all scratched an’ she’ll
-soon have had enough.”
-
-They fell upon the bushes. Violet Elizabeth also fell upon the bushes.
-She crammed handfuls of ripe blackberries into her mouth. Gradually
-her pink and white face became obscured beneath a thick covering of
-blackberry juice stain. Her hands were dark red. Her white dress had
-lost its whiteness. It was stained and torn. Her bunchy skirts had lost
-their bunchiness. The brambles tore at her curled hair and drew it into
-that state of straightness for which Nature had meant it. The brambles
-scratched her face and arms and legs. And still she ate.
-
-“I’m getting more than any of you,” she cried. “I geth I’m getting more
-than any of you. And I’m getting all of a _meth_. Ithn’t it _fun?_ I
-like boyth gameth.”
-
-They gazed at her with a certain horrified respect and apprehension.
-Would they be held responsible for the strange change in her appearance?
-
-They left the blackberry bushes and set off again through the wood. At
-a sign from William they dropped on all fours and crept cautiously and
-(as they imagined) silently along the path. Violet Elizabeth dropped
-also upon her scratched and blackberry stained knees.
-
-“Look at me,” she shrilled proudly. “I’m doing it too. Juth like boyth.”
-
-“Sh!” William said fiercely.
-
-Violet Elizabeth “Sh’d” obediently and for a time crawled along
-contentedly.
-
-“Are we playin’ bein’ animalth?” she piped at last.
-
-“Shut _up!_” hissed William.
-
-Violet Elizabeth shut up--except to whisper to Ginger who was just in
-front, “I’m a thnail--what you?” Ginger did not deign to reply.
-
-At a sign from their leader that all danger was over the Outlaws stood
-upright. William had stopped.
-
-“We’ve thrown ’em off the scent,” he said scowling, “but danger
-s’rounds us on every side. We’d better plunge into the jungle an’ I bet
-she’ll soon’ve had enough of plungin’ into the jungle.”
-
-They left the path and “plunged” into the dense, shoulder-high
-undergrowth. At the end of the line “plunged” Violet Elizabeth. She
-fought her way determinedly through the bushes. She left remnants of
-her filmy skirts on nearly every bush. Long spidery arms of brambles
-caught at her hair again and pulled out her curls. But Violet Elizabeth
-liked it. “Ithn’t it _fun?_” she piped as she followed.
-
-Under a large tree William stopped.
-
-“Now we’ll be Red Indians,” he said, “an’ go huntin’. I’ll be Brave
-Heart same as usual and Ginger be Hawk Face and Douglas be Lightning
-Eye.”
-
-“An’ what thall I be?” said the torn and stained and wild-headed
-apparition that had been Violet Elizabeth.
-
-Douglas took the matter in hand.
-
-“What thall I be?” he mimicked shrilly, “what thall I be? What thall I
-be?”
-
-Violet Elizabeth did not run home in tears as he had hoped she would.
-She laughed gleefully.
-
-“It doth thound funny when you thay it like that!” she said
-delightedly. “Oh, it doth! Thay it again! Pleath thay it again.”
-
-Douglas was nonplussed.
-
-“Anyway,” he said, “you jolly well aren’t going to play, so there.”
-
-“_Pleath_ let me play,” said Violet Elizabeth. “Pleath.”
-
-“_No._ Go away!”
-
-William and Ginger secretly admired the firm handling of this female by
-Douglas.
-
-“_Pleath_, Douglath.”
-
-“_No!_”
-
-Violet Elizabeth’s blue eyes, fixed pleadingly upon him, filled with
-tears. Violet Elizabeth’s underlip trembled.
-
-“You’re making me cry,” she said. A tear traced its course down the
-blackberry stained cheek.
-
-“_Pleath_, Douglath.”
-
-Douglas hesitated and was lost. “Oh, well----” he said.
-
-“Oh, thank you, dear Douglath,” said Violet Elizabeth. “What thall I
-be?”
-
-“Well,” said William to Douglas sternly. “Now you’ve _let_ her play I
-s’pose she’d better be a squaw.”
-
-“A thquaw,” said Violet Elizabeth joyfully, “what thort of noith doth
-it make?”
-
-“It’s a Indian lady and it doesn’t make any sort of a noise,” said
-Ginger crushingly. “Now we’re going out hunting and you stay and cook
-the dinner.”
-
-“All right,” said Violet Elizabeth obligingly. “Kith me good-bye.”
-
-Ginger stared at her in horror.
-
-“But you mutht,” she said, “if you’re going out to work an’ I’m going
-to cook the dinner, you mutht kith me good-bye. They do.”
-
-“I don’t,” said Ginger.
-
-She held up her small face.
-
-“_Pleath_, Ginger.”
-
-Blushing to his ears Ginger just brushed her cheek with his. William
-gave a derisive snort. His self-respect had returned. Douglas’s manly
-severity had been overborne. Ginger had been prevailed upon to kiss
-her. Well, they couldn’t laugh at him now. They jolly _well_ couldn’t.
-Both were avoiding his eye.
-
-“Well, go off to work, dear William and Douglas and Ginger,” said
-Violet Elizabeth happily, “an’ I’ll cook.”
-
-Gladly the hunters set off.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Red Indian game had palled. It had been a success while it lasted.
-Ginger had brought some matches and over her purple layer of blackberry
-juice the faithful squaw now wore a layer of black from the very smoky
-fire they had at last managed to make.
-
-“Come on,” said William, “let’s set out looking for adventures.”
-
-They set off single file as before, Violet Elizabeth bringing up the
-rear, Jumble darting about in ecstatic searches for imaginary rabbits.
-Another small bog glimmered ahead. Violet Elizabeth, drunk with her
-success as a squaw, gave a scream.
-
-“Another thquithy plath,” she cried. “I want to be firtht.”
-
-She flitted ahead of them, ran to the bog, slipped and fell into it
-face forward.
-
-She arose at once. She was covered in black mud from head to foot. Her
-face was a black mud mask. Through it her teeth flashed in a smile. “I
-juth thlipped,” she explained.
-
-A man’s voice came suddenly from the main path through the wood at
-their right.
-
-“Look at ’em--the young rascals! Look at ’em! An’ a dawg! Blarst ’em!
-Er-r-r-r-r!”
-
-The last was a sound expressive of rage and threatening.
-
-“Keepers!” said William. “Run for your lives, braves. Come on, Jumble.”
-
-They fled through the thicket.
-
-“Pleath,” gasped Violet Elizabeth in the rear, “I can’t run as fatht
-ath that.”
-
-It was Ginger and Douglas who came back to hold her hands. For all
-that they ran fleetly, dashing through the undergrowth where the
-keepers found it difficult to follow, and dodging round trees. At last,
-breathlessly, they reached a clearing and in the middle of it a cottage
-as small and attractive as a fairy tale cottage. The door was open.
-It had an empty look. They could hear the keepers coming through the
-undergrowth shouting.
-
-“Come in here,” gasped William. “It’s empty. Come in and hide till
-they’ve gone.”
-
-The four ran into a spotlessly clean little kitchen, and Ginger closed
-the door. The cottage was certainly empty. There was not a sound.
-
-“Ithn’t it a thweet little houth?” panted Violet Elizabeth.
-
-“Come upstairs,” said Douglas. “They might look in here.”
-
-The four, Jumble scrambling after them, clattered up the steep narrow
-wooden stairs and into a small and very clean bedroom.
-
-“Look out of the window and see when they go past,” commanded William,
-“then we’ll slip out and go back.”
-
-Douglas peeped cautiously out of the window. He gave a gasp.
-
-“They--they’re not goin’ past,” he said. “They--they’re they’re comin’
-in at the door.”
-
-The men’s voices could be heard below.
-
-“Comin’ in here--the young rascals! Look at their footmarks, see?
-What’ll my old woman say when she gets home?”
-
-“They’ve gone upstairs, too. Look at the marks. Blarst ’em!”
-
-William went to the window, holding Jumble beneath his arm.
-
-“We can easily climb down by this pipe,” he said quickly. “Then we’ll
-run back.”
-
-He swung a leg over the window sill, prepared to descend with Jumble
-clinging round his neck, as Jumble was trained to do. Jumble’s life
-consisted chiefly of an endless succession of shocks to the nerves.
-
-Ginger and Douglas prepared to follow.
-
-The men’s footsteps were heard coming upstairs, when a small voice said
-plaintively, “Pleath--pleath, I can’t do that. Pleath, you’re not going
-to leave me, are you?”
-
-William put back his foot.
-
-“We--we can’t leave her,” he said. Ginger and Douglas did not question
-their leader’s decision. They stood in a row facing the door while the
-footsteps drew nearer.
-
-The door burst open and the two keepers appeared.
-
-“Now, yer young rascals--we’ve got yer!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Into Mr. Bott’s library were ushered two keepers, each leading two
-children by the neck. One held two rough-looking boys. The other held a
-rough-looking boy and a rough-looking little girl. A dejected-looking
-mongrel followed the procession.
-
-“Trespassin’, sir,” said the first keeper, “trespassin’ an’ a-damagin’
-of the woods. Old ’ands, too. Seen ’em at it before but never caught
-’em till now. An’ a _dawg_ too. It’s an example making of they want,
-sir. They want prosecutin’ if I may make so bold. A-damagin’ of the
-woods and a-bringing of a dawg----”
-
-[Illustration: “WE’VE FOUND HER,” ANNOUNCED WILLIAM, AND VIOLET
-ELIZABETH TOOK A STEP FORWARD. “IT’S ME,” SHE PIPED.]
-
-Mr. Bott who was new to squiredom and had little knowledge of what was
-expected of him and moreover was afflicted at the moment with severe
-private domestic worries, cast a harassed glance at the four children.
-His glance rested upon Violet Elizabeth without the faintest flicker
-of recognition. He did not recognise her. He knew Violet Elizabeth.
-He saw her at least once or almost once a day. He knew her quite
-well. He knew her by her ordered flaxen curls, pink and white face and
-immaculate bunchy skirts. He did not know this little creature with
-the torn, stained, bedraggled dress (there was nothing bunchy about it
-now) whose extremely dirty face could just be seen beneath the tangle
-of untidy hair that fell over her eyes. She watched him silently and
-cautiously. Just as he was going to speak Violet Elizabeth’s nurse
-entered. It says much for Violet Elizabeth’s disguise that her nurse
-only threw her a passing glance. Violet Elizabeth’s nurse’s eyes were
-red-rimmed.
-
-[Illustration: “GOD BLESS MY SOUL,” EXCLAIMED MR. BOTT, PEERING AT THE
-APPARITION. “IT’S IMPOSSIBLE.”]
-
-“Please, sir, Mrs. Bott says is there any news?”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bott desperately. “Tell her I’ve rung up the police
-every minute since she sent last. How is she?”
-
-“Please, sir, she’s in hysterics again.”
-
-Mr. Bott groaned.
-
-Ever since Violet Elizabeth’s disappearance Mrs. Bott had been
-indulging in hysterics in her bedroom and taking it out of Violet
-Elizabeth’s nurse. In return Violet Elizabeth’s nurse had hysterics in
-the nursery and took it out of the nursery maid. In return the nursery
-maid had hysterics in the kitchen and took it out of the kitchen maid.
-The kitchen maid had no time for hysterics but she took it out of the
-cat.
-
-“Please, sir, she says she’s too ill to speak now. She told me to tell
-you so, sir.”
-
-Mr. Bott groaned again. Suddenly he turned to the four children and the
-keepers.
-
-“You’ve got their names and addresses, haven’t you? Well, see here,
-children. Go out and see if you can find my little gall for me. She’s
-lost. Look in the woods and round the village and--everywhere. And if
-you find her I’ll let you off. See?”
-
-They murmured perfunctory thanks and retired, followed by Violet
-Elizabeth who had not uttered one word within her paternal mansion.
-
-In the woods they turned on her sternly.
-
-“It’s you he wants. You’re her.”
-
-“Yeth,” agreed the tousled ragamuffin who was Violet Elizabeth,
-sweetly, “ith me.”
-
-“Well, we’re going to find you an’ take you back.”
-
-“Oh, _pleath_, I don’t want to be found and tooken back. I like being
-with you.”
-
-“Well, we can’t keep you about with us all day, can we?” argued William
-sternly. “You’ve gotter go home sometime same as we’ve gotter go home
-sometime. Well, we jolly well want our dinner now and we’re jolly well
-going home an’ we’re jolly well goin’ to take you home. He might give
-us something and----”
-
-“All right,” agreed Violet Elizabeth holding up her face, “if you’ll
-all kith me I’ll be found an’ tooken back.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The four of them stood again before Mr. Bott’s desk. William and Ginger
-and Douglas took a step back and Violet Elizabeth took a step forward.
-
-“We’ve found her,” said William.
-
-“Where?” said Mr. Bott looking round.
-
-“Ith me,” piped Violet Elizabeth.
-
-Mr. Bott started.
-
-“You?” he repeated in amazement.
-
-“Yeth, father, ith me.”
-
-“But, but--God bless my soul----” he ejaculated peering at the
-unfamiliar apparition. “It’s impossible.”
-
-Then he rang for Violet Elizabeth’s nurse.
-
-“Is this Violet Elizabeth?” he said.
-
-“Yeth, ith me,” said Violet Elizabeth again.
-
-Violet Elizabeth’s nurse pushed back the tangle of hair.
-
-“Oh, the poor poor child!” she cried. “The poor child!”
-
-“God bless my soul,” said Mr. Bott again. “Take her away. I don’t know
-what you do to her, but do it and don’t let her mother see her till
-it’s done, and you boys stay here.”
-
-“Oh, my lamb!” sobbed Violet Elizabeth’s nurse as she led her away. “My
-poor lamb!”
-
-In an incredibly short time they returned. The mysterious something
-had been done. Violet Elizabeth’s head was a mass of curls. Her
-face shone with cleanliness. Dainty lace-trimmed skirts stuck out
-ballet-dancer-wise beneath the pale blue waistband. Mr. Bott took a
-deep breath.
-
-“Now fetch her mother,” he said.
-
-Like a tornado entered Mrs. Bott. She still heaved with hysterics. She
-enfolded Violet Elizabeth to her visibly palpitating bosom.
-
-“My child,” she sobbed, “Oh my darling child.”
-
-“I wath a thquaw,” said Violet Elizabeth. “It dothn’t make any thort of
-a noith. Ith a lady.”
-
-“How did you----” began Mrs. Bott still straining Violet Elizabeth to
-her.
-
-“These boys found her----” said Mr. Bott.
-
-“Oh, how kind--how noble,” said Mrs. Bott. “And one’s that nice little
-boy who played with her so sweetly yesterday. Give them ten shillings
-each, Botty.”
-
-“Well, but----” hesitated Mr. Bott remembering the circumstances in
-which they had been brought to him.
-
-“Botty!” screamed Mrs. Bott tearfully, “Don’t you value your darling
-child’s life at even thirty shillings?”
-
-Hastily Mr. Bott handed them each a ten shilling note.
-
- * * * * *
-
-They tramped homewards by the road.
-
-“Well, it’s turned out all right,” said Ginger lugubriously, but
-fingering the ten shilling note in his pocket, “but it might not have.
-’Cept for the money it jolly well spoilt the morning.”
-
-“Girls always do,” said William. “I’m not going to have anything to do
-with any ole girl ever again.”
-
-“’S all very well sayin’ that,” said Douglas who had been deeply
-impressed that morning by the inevitableness and deadly persistence of
-the sex, “’s all very well sayin’ that. It’s them what has to do with
-you.”
-
-“An’ I’m never goin’ to marry any ole girl,” said William.
-
-“’S all very well sayin’ _that_,” said Douglas again gloomily, “but
-some ole girl’ll probably marry you.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-WILLIAM TURNS OVER A NEW LEAF
-
-
-William had often been told how much happier he would be if he would
-follow the straight and narrow path of virtue, but so far the thought
-of that happiness had left him cold. He preferred the happiness that
-he knew by experience to be the result of his normal wicked life to
-that mythical happiness that was prophesied as the result of a quite
-unalluring life of righteousness. Suddenly, however, he was stirred.
-An “old boy” had come to visit the school and had given an inspiring
-address to the boys in which he spoke of the beauty and usefulness of
-a life of Self-denial and Service. William, for the first time, began
-to consider the question seriously. He realised that his life so far
-had not been, strictly speaking, a life of Self-denial and Service.
-The “old boy” said many things that impressed William. He pictured the
-liver of the life of Self-denial and Service surrounded by a happy,
-grateful and admiring family circle. He said that everyone would love
-such a character. William tried to imagine his own family circle as a
-happy, grateful and admiring family circle. It was not an easy task
-even to such a vivid imagination as William’s but it was not altogether
-impossible. After all, nothing was altogether impossible....
-
-While the headmaster was proposing a vote of thanks to the eloquent
-and perspiring “old boy,” William was deciding that there might be
-something in the idea after all. When the bell rang for the end of
-school, William had decided that it was worth trying at any rate. He
-decided to start first thing next morning--not before. William was a
-good organiser. He liked things cut and dried. A new day for a new
-life. It was no use beginning to be self-denying and self-sacrificing
-in the middle of a day that had started quite differently. If you
-were going to have a beautiful character and a grateful family circle
-you might as well start the day fresh with it, not drag it over from
-the day before. It would be jolly nice to have a happy, grateful and
-admiring family circle, and William only hoped that if he took the
-trouble to be self-denying and self-sacrificing his family circle would
-take the trouble to be happy and grateful and admiring. There were
-dark doubts about this in William’s mind. His family circle rarely did
-anything that was expected of them. Still, William was an optimist
-and--anything might happen. And to-morrow was a whole holiday. He could
-give all his attention to it all day....
-
-He looked forward to the new experience with feelings of pleasant
-anticipation. It would be interesting and jolly--meantime there was
-a whole half of to-day left and it was no use beginning the life of
-self-denial and service before the scheduled time.
-
-He joined his friends, Ginger, Henry and Douglas after school and
-together they trespassed on the lands of the most irascible farmer
-they knew in the hopes of a pleasant chase. The farmer happened to be
-in the market town so their hopes were disappointed as far as he was
-concerned. They paddled in his pond and climbed his trees and uttered
-defiant shouts to his infuriated dog, and were finally chased away by
-his wife with a fire of hard and knobbly potatoes. One got William very
-nicely on the side of his head but, his head being as hard and knobbly
-as the potato, little damage was done. Next they “scouted” each other
-through the village and finally went into Ginger’s house and performed
-military manœuvres in Ginger’s bedroom, till Ginger’s mother sent them
-away because the room just below happened to be the drawing-room and
-the force of the military manœuvres was disintegrating the ceiling and
-sending it down in picturesque white flakes into Ginger’s mother’s hair.
-
-They went next to Henry’s garden and there with much labour made a
-bonfire. Ginger and Douglas plied the fire with fuel; and William
-and Henry, with a wheelbarrow and the garden hose, wearing old tins
-on their heads, impersonated the fire brigade. During the exciting
-scuffles that followed, the garden hose became slightly involved and
-finally four dripping boys fled from the scene and from possible
-detection, leaving only the now swimming bonfire, the wheelbarrow
-and hose to mark the scene of action. A long rest in a neighbouring
-field in the still blazing sunshine soon partially dried them. While
-reclining at ease they discussed the latest Red Indian stories which
-they had read, and the possibility of there being any wild animals left
-in England.
-
-“I bet there _is_,” said Ginger earnestly, “they hide in the day time
-so’s no one’ll see ’em, an’ they come out at nights. No one goes into
-the woods at night so no one knows if there is or if there isn’t, an’
-I bet there _is_. Anyway let’s get up some night ’n take our bows ’n
-arrows an’ _look_ for ’em. I bet we’d find some.”
-
-“Let’s to-night,” said Douglas eagerly.
-
-William remembered suddenly the life of virtue to which he had mentally
-devoted himself. He felt that the nocturnal hunting for wild animals
-was incompatible with it.
-
-“I can’t to-night,” he said with an air of virtue.
-
-“Yah--you’re _’fraid!_” taunted Henry, not because he had the least
-doubt of William’s courage but simply to introduce an element of
-excitement into the proceedings.
-
-He succeeded.
-
-When finally Henry and William arose breathless and bruised from the
-ditch where the fight had ended, Douglas and Ginger surveyed them with
-dispassionate interest.
-
-“William won an’ you’re both in a _jolly_ old mess!”
-
-Henry removed some leaves and bits of grass from his mouth.
-
-“All right, you’re _not_ afraid,” he said pacifically to William, “when
-will you come huntin’ wild animals?”
-
-William considered. He was going to give the life of virtue, of
-self-denial and service a fair day’s trial, but there was just the
-possibility that from William’s point of view it might not be a
-success. It would be as well to leave the door to the old life open.
-
-“I’ll tell you to-morrow,” he said guardedly.
-
-“All right. I say, let’s race to the end of the field on only one leg
-... Come on! Ready?... One, two, _three_ ... GO!”
-
-
-II
-
-William awoke. It was morning. It was the morning on which he was to
-begin his life of self-denial and service. He raised his voice in one
-of his penetrating and tuneless morning songs, then stopped abruptly,
-“case I disturb anyone” he remarked virtuously to his brush and
-comb.... His father frequently remarked that William’s early morning
-songs were enough to drive a man to drink.... He brushed his hair
-with unusual vigour and descended to breakfast looking (for William)
-unusually sleek and virtuous. His father was reading the paper in front
-of the fire.
-
-“Good mornin’, Father,” said William in a voice of suave politeness.
-
-His father grunted.
-
-“Did you hear me not singin’ this mornin’, Father?” said William
-pleasantly. It was as well that his self-denials should not be missed
-by the family circle.
-
-His father did not answer. William sighed. Some family circles were
-different from others. It was hard to imagine his father happy and
-grateful and admiring. But still, he was going to have a jolly good
-try....
-
-His mother and sister and brother came down. William said “Good
-mornin’!” to them all with unctuous affability. His brother looked at
-him suspiciously.
-
-“What mischief are _you_ up to?” he said ungraciously.
-
-William merely gave him a long silent and reproachful glance.
-
-“What are you going to do this morning, William dear?” said his mother.
-
-“I don’ mind what I do,” said William. “I jus’ want to _help_ you. I’ll
-do anything you like, Mother.”
-
-She looked at him anxiously.
-
-“Are you feeling quite well, dear?” she said with concern.
-
-“If you want to _help_,” said his sister sternly, “you might dig
-up that piece of my garden you and those other boys trampled down
-yesterday.”
-
-William decided that a life of self-denial and service need not
-include fagging for sisters who spoke to one in that tone of voice. He
-pretended not to hear.
-
-“Can I do anything at all for you this morning, Mother dear,” he said
-earnestly.
-
-His mother looked too taken aback to reply. His father rose and folded
-up his newspaper.
-
-“Take my advice,” he said, “and beware of that boy this morning. He’s
-up to something!”
-
-William sighed again. Some family circles simply didn’t seem able to
-recognise a life of self-denial and service when they met it....
-
-After breakfast he wandered into the garden. Before long Ginger,
-Douglas and Henry came down the road.
-
-“Come on, William!” they called over the gate.
-
-For a moment William was tempted. Somehow it seemed a terrible waste of
-a holiday to spend it in self-denial and service instead of in search
-of adventures with Ginger, Douglas and Henry. But he put the temptation
-away. When he made up his mind to do a thing he did it....
-
-“Can’t come to-day,” he said sternly, “I’m busy.”
-
-“Oh, go _on!_”
-
-“Well, I am an’ I’m just not comin’ an’ kin’ly stop throwin’ stones at
-our cat.”
-
-“Call it a cat! Thought it was an ole fur glove what someone’d thrown
-away!”
-
-In furious defence of his household’s cat (whose life William in
-private made a misery) William leapt to the gate. The trio fled down
-the road. William returned to his meditations. His father had gone to
-business and Ethel and Robert had gone to golf. His mother drew up the
-morning-room window.
-
-“William, darling, aren’t you going to play with your friends this
-morning?”
-
-William turned to her with an expression of solemnity and earnestness.
-
-“I want to _help_ you, Mother. I don’t wanter play with my friends.”
-
-He felt a great satisfaction with this speech. It breathed the very
-spirit of self-denial and service.
-
-“I’ll try to find that bottle of tonic you didn’t finish after whooping
-cough,” said his mother helplessly as she drew down the window.
-
-[Illustration: “GOOD HEAVENS!” SAID MISS DEXTER. “DOES HE KNOW YOU’VE
-COME TO ASK ME?”]
-
-[Illustration: “ROBERT’S DEEP IN LOVE WITH YOU,” SAID WILLIAM, “HE’S
-WRITIN’ PO’TRY AN’ NOT SLEEPIN’ AN’ NOT EATIN’ AND CARVING YOUR
-INITIALS ALL OVER THE HOUSE.”]
-
-William stared around him disconsolately. It was hard to be full of
-self-sacrifices and service and to find no outlet for it ... nobody
-seemed to want his help. Then a brilliant idea occurred to him. He
-would _do_ something for each of his family--something that would be a
-pleasant surprise when they found out....
-
-He went up to his bedroom. There in a drawer was a poem that he had
-found in Robert’s blotter the week before. It began:
-
- “O Marion
- So young and fair
- With silken hair....”
-
-It must be Marion Dexter. She was fair and, well, more or less young,
-William supposed. William didn’t know about her hair being silken. It
-looked just like ordinary hair to him. But you never knew with girls.
-He had kept the poem in order to use it as a weapon of offence against
-Robert when occasion demanded. But that episode belonged to his old
-evil past. In his new life of self-denial and service he wanted to
-_help_ Robert. The poem ended:
-
- “I should be happy, I aver
- If thou my suit wouldst but prefer.”
-
-That meant that Robert wanted to be engaged to her. Poor Robert!
-Perhaps he was too shy to ask her, or perhaps he’d asked her and she’d
-refused ... well, it was here that Robert needed some _help_. William,
-with a determined expression, set off down the road.
-
-
-III
-
-He knocked loudly at the door. By a lucky chance Marion Dexter came to
-the door herself.
-
-“Good afternoon,” she said.
-
-“Good afternoon,” said William in a business-like fashion. “Has Robert
-ever asked you to marry him?”
-
-“No. What a peculiar question to ask on the front doorstep. Do come in.”
-
-William followed her into the drawing-room. She shut the door. They
-both sat down. William’s face was set and frowning.
-
-“He’s deep in love with you,” he said in a conspiratorial whisper.
-
-Marion’s eyes danced.
-
-“Did he send you to tell me?”
-
-William ignored the question.
-
-“He’s deep in love with you and wants you to marry him.”
-
-Marion dimpled.
-
-“Why can’t he ask me then?”
-
-“He’s shy,” said William earnestly, “he’s always shy when he’s in love.
-He’s always awful shy with the people what he’s in love with. But he
-wants most _awful_ bad to marry you. _Do_ marry him, _please_. Jus’ for
-kindness. I’m tryin’ to be kind. That’s why I’m here.”
-
-“I see,” she said. “Are you sure he’s in love with me?”
-
-“Deep in love. Writin’ potry an’ carryin’ on--not sleepin’ and not
-eatin’ an’ murmurin’ your name an’ puttin’ his hand on his heart an’
-carvin’ your initials all over the house an’ sendin’ you flowers an’
-things,” said William drawing freely on his imagination.
-
-“I’ve never had any flowers from him.”
-
-“No. They all get lost in the post,” said William without turning a
-hair. “But he’s dyin’ slow of love for you. He’s gettin’ thinner an’
-thinner. ’F you don’t be engaged to him soon he’ll be stone dead. He’ll
-die of love like what they do in tales an’ then you’ll probably get
-hung for murder.”
-
-“Good heavens!” said Miss Dexter.
-
-“Well, I _hope_ you won’t,” said William kindly, “an’ I’ll do all I can
-to save you if you are but ’f you kill Robert with not gettin’ engaged
-to him prob’ly you will be.”
-
-“Does he know you’ve come to ask me?” said Miss Dexter.
-
-“No. I want it to be a s’prise to him,” said William.
-
-“It will be that,” murmured Miss Dexter.
-
-“You will marry him, then?” said William hopefully.
-
-“Certainly--if he wants me to.”
-
-“P’raps,” said William after a slight pause, “you’d better write it in
-a letter ’cause he’d like as not, not b’lieve me.”
-
-With eyes dancing and lips quivering with suppressed laughter Miss
-Dexter sat down at her writing table.
-
- DEAR ROBERT (she wrote),
-
-At William’s earnest request I promise to be engaged to you and to
-marry you whenever you like.
-
- Yours sincerely, MARION DEXTER.
-
-She handed it to William. William read it gravely and put it in his
-pocket.
-
-“Thanks ever so much,” he said fervently.
-
-“Don’t mention it,” said Miss Dexter demurely. “Quite a pleasure.”
-
-He walked down the road in a rosy glow of virtue. Well, he’d done
-something for Robert that ought to make Robert grateful to him for the
-rest of his life. He’d _helped_ Robert all right. He’d like to know
-what _service_ was if it wasn’t that--getting people engaged to people
-they wanted to be engaged to. Jolly hard work too. Now there remained
-his mother and Ethel. He must go home and try to find some way of
-_helping_ them....
-
-
-IV
-
-When he reached home Ethel was showing out Mrs. Helm, a tall,
-stern-looking lady whom William knew by sight.
-
-“I’m so _frightfully_ disappointed not to be able to come,” Ethel was
-saying regretfully, “but I’m afraid I _must_ go to the Morrisons.
-I promised over a week ago. Thank you so much for asking me. Good
-morning.”
-
-William followed her into the dining-room where his mother was.
-
-“What did she want, dear?” said Mrs. Brown. “Go and wash your hands,
-William.”
-
-“She wanted me to go in this evening but I told her I couldn’t because
-I was going to the Morrisons. Thank Heaven I had an excuse!”
-
-William unfortunately missed the last sentence, as, still inspired by
-high ideals of virtue, he had gone at once upstairs to wash his hands.
-While he splashed about at the handbasin an idea suddenly occurred to
-him. _That_ was how he’d help Ethel. He’d give her a happy evening.
-She should spend it with the Helms and not with the Morrisons. She’d
-sounded so sorry that she had to go to the Morrisons and couldn’t go to
-the Helms. He’d fix it all up for her this afternoon. He’d _help_ her
-like he’d helped Robert.
-
-He had hoped to be able to give Robert Miss Dexter’s note at lunch, but
-it turned out that Robert was lunching at the golf club with a friend.
-
-Directly after lunch William set off to Mrs. Morrison’s house. He
-was shown into the drawing-room. Mrs. Morrison, large and fat and
-comfortable-looking, entered. She looked rather bewildered as she met
-William’s stern frowning gaze.
-
-“I’ve come from Ethel,” said William aggressively. “She’s sorry she
-can’t come to-night.”
-
-Mrs. Morrison’s cheerful countenance fell.
-
-“The girls will be disappointed,” she said, “they saw her this morning
-and she said she was looking forward to it.”
-
-Some explanation seemed necessary. William was never one to stick at
-half measures.
-
-“She’s been took ill since then,” he said.
-
-“Oh _dear_,” said Mrs. Morrison with concern, “nothing serious, I hope?”
-
-William considered. If it wasn’t serious she might expect Ethel to
-recover by the evening. She’d better have something serious.
-
-“I’m ’fraid it is,” he said gloomily.
-
-“Dear, _dear!_” said Mrs. Morrison. “Tch! tch! What is it?”
-
-William thought over all the complaints he knew. None of them seemed
-quite serious enough. She might as well have something _really_ serious
-while he was about it. Then he suddenly remembered hearing the gardener
-talking to the housemaid the day before. He’d been talking about his
-brother who’d got--what was it? Epi--epi----
-
-“Epilepsy!” said William suddenly.
-
-“_What?_” screamed Mrs. Morrison.
-
-William, having committed himself to epilepsy meant to stick to it.
-
-“Epilepsy, the doctor says,” he said firmly.
-
-“Good heavens!” said Mrs. Morrison. “When did you find out? Will he be
-able to cure it? Is the poor girl in bed? How does it affect her? What
-a dreadful thing!”
-
-William was flattered at the impression he seemed to have made. He
-wondered whether it were possible to increase it.
-
-“The doctor thinks she’s got a bit of consumption too,” he said
-casually, “but he’s not quite sure.”
-
-Mrs. Morrison screamed again. “_Heavens!_ And she always looked so
-_healthy_. The girls will be so _distressed_. William, do tell me--when
-did your mother realise there was something wrong?”
-
-William foresaw that the conversation was becoming complicated. He
-did not wish to display his ignorance of the symptoms of epilepsy and
-consumption.
-
-“Jus’ soon after lunch,” he said with rising cheerfulness. “Now I’d
-better be goin’, I think. Good afternoon.”
-
-He left Mrs. Morrison still gasping upon the sofa and in the act of
-ringing for her maid to fetch her smelling salts.
-
-William walked down the road with a swagger. He was managing _jolly_
-well.... The next visit was easier. He simply told Mrs. Helm’s maid
-at the front door to tell Mrs. Helm that Ethel would be able to come
-to-night after all, thank you very much.
-
-Then he swung off to the woods with Jumble, his faithful dog. In
-accordance with his new life of virtue he walked straight along the
-road without burrowing in the ditches or throwing stones at telegraph
-posts. His exhilaration slowly vanished. He wondered where Ginger and
-Henry and Douglas were and what they were doing. It was _jolly_ dull
-all alone ... but still the happiness and gratitude and admiration of
-his family circle when they found out all he had done for them would
-repay him for everything. At least he hoped it would. His mother ... he
-had done nothing for his mother yet. He must try to do something for
-his mother....
-
-
-V
-
-When he returned home it was almost dinner time. His mother and Ethel
-and Robert were still out. The Cook met him with a lugubrious face.
-
-“Now, Master William,” she said, “can I trust you to give a message to
-your Ma.”
-
-“Yes, Cook,” said William virtuously.
-
-“Me cold in me ’ead’s that bad I can’t stand on me feet no longer. That
-’ussy Ellen wouldn’t give up ’er night hout to ’elp me--not she, and
-yer Ma said if I’d leave things orl ready to dish hup I might go and
-rest afore dinner ’f I felt bad. Well, she’ll be hin hany minute now
-and just tell ’er it’s hall ready to dish up. Tell ’er I ’aven’t made
-no pudd’n but I’ve hopened a bottle of stewed pears.”
-
-“All right, Cook,” said William.
-
-Cook took the paper-backed copy of “A Mill Girl’s Romance” from the
-kitchen dresser and slowly sneezed her way up the back stairs.
-
-William was to all intents and purposes alone in the house. He wandered
-into the kitchen. There was a pleasant smell of cooking. Several
-saucepans simmered on the gas stove. On the table was a glass dish
-containing the stewed pears. His father hated cold stewed fruit. He
-often said so. Suddenly William had yet another brilliant idea. He’d
-make a proper pudding for his father. It wouldn’t take long. The
-cookery book was on the dresser. You just did what the book told you.
-It was quite easy.
-
-[Illustration: WILLIAM WENT ON BREAKING EGGS TILL NOT ANOTHER EGG
-REMAINED TO BE BROKEN.]
-
-He went over to the gas stove. All the gas rings were being used. He’d
-better get one clear for his pudding. He supposed his pudding would
-need a gas ring same as all the other things. There were two small
-saucepans each containing dark brown stuff. They might as well be
-together, thought William, with a business-like frown. He poured the
-contents of one of the saucepans into the other. He had a moment’s
-misgiving as the mingled smell of gravy and coffee arose from the
-mixture. Then he turned to his pudding. He opened the book at random at
-the puddings. Any would do. “Beat three eggs together.” He fetched a
-bowl of eggs from the larder and got down a clean basin from the shelf.
-He’d seen Cook doing it, just cracking the eggs, and the egg slithered
-into the basin and she threw the shells away. It looked quite easy.
-He broke an egg. The shell fell neatly on to the table and the egg
-slithered down William on to the floor. He tried another and the same
-thing happened. William was not easily baulked. He was of a persevering
-nature. He went on breaking eggs till not another egg remained to be
-broken, and then and then only did he relinquish his hopes of making
-a pudding. Then and then only did he step out of the pool of a dozen
-broken eggs in which he was standing and, literally soaked in egg from
-the waist downward, go to replace the basin on the shelf.
-
-His thirst for practical virtue was not yet sated. Surely there was
-_something_ he could do, even if he couldn’t make a pudding. Yes, he
-could carry the things into the dining-room so that they could have
-dinner as soon as they came in. He opened the oven door. A chicken on a
-large dish was there. Good! Burning his fingers severely in the process
-William took it out. He’d put it on the dining-room table all ready for
-them to begin. Just as he stood with the dish in his hands he heard his
-mother and Robert come in. He’d go and give Robert Miss Dexter’s letter
-first. He looked round for somewhere to put the chicken. The table
-seemed to be full. He put the dish and the chicken on to the floor and
-went into the hall closing the door behind him. Robert and his mother
-had gone into the drawing-room. William followed.
-
-“Well, William,” said Mrs. Brown pleasantly, “had a nice day?”
-
-Without a word William handed the note to Robert.
-
-Robert read it.
-
-He went first red, then pale, then a wild look came into his eyes.
-
-“Marion _Dexter!_” he said.
-
-“You’re in love with her, aren’t you?” said William. “You’ve been
-writing pomes to her.”
-
-“Not to Marion _Dexter_,” screamed Robert. “She’s an old woman. She’s
-nearly twenty-five.... It’s--it’s Marion Hatherley I----”
-
-“Well, how was I to _know_,” said William in a voice of irritation.
-“You should put their surnames in the pomes. I thought you wanted to be
-engaged to her. I’ve took a lot of trouble over it gettin’ her to write
-that.”
-
-Robert was reading and re-reading the note.
-
-“My God!” he said in a hushed voice of horror. “I’m engaged to Marion
-Dexter!”
-
-“Robert,” said Mrs. Brown. “I don’t think you ought to use expressions
-like that before your little brother, whoever you’re engaged to.”
-
-“I’m engaged to Marion Dexter,” repeated Robert in a tone of frenzy,
-“_Me!_ ... chained to her for life when I love another....”
-
-“Robert dear,” said Mrs. Brown, “if there’s been any mistake I’m sure
-that all you have to do is go to Miss Dexter and explain.”
-
-“_Explain!_” said Robert wildly. “How can I explain. She’s _accepted_
-me ... how can any man of chivalry refuse to marry a woman who.... Oh,
-it’s too much.” He sat down on the sofa and held his head in his hands.
-“It’s the ruin of all my hopes ... he’s simply spoilt my life ... he’s
-always spoiling my life ... I shall _have_ to marry her now ... and
-she’s an old woman ... she was twenty-four last birthday, I know.”
-
-“Well, I was trying to _help_,” said William.
-
-“I’ll teach you to help,” said Robert darkly, advancing upon him.
-
-William dodged and fled towards the door. There he collided with
-Ethel--Ethel with a pale, distraught face.
-
-“It’s all over the village, mother,” she said angrily as she entered.
-“William’s told everyone in the village that I’ve got epilepsy and
-consumption.”
-
-“I _didn’t_,” said William indignantly. “I only told Mrs. Morrison.”
-
-“But William,” said his mother, sitting down weakly on the nearest
-chair, “why on earth----?”
-
-“Well, Ethel didn’t want to go to the Morrisons to-night. She wanted to
-go to the Helms’----”
-
-“I did _not_,” said Ethel. “I was glad to get out of going to the
-Helms’.”
-
-“Well, how was I to _know?_” said William desperately. “I had to go by
-what you _said_ and I had to go by what Robert _wrote_. I wanted to
-_help_. I’ve took no end of trouble--livin’ a life of self-sacrifice
-and service all day without stoppin’ once, and ’stead of being grateful
-an’ happy an’ admirin’----”
-
-“But William,” said Mrs. Brown, “how did you think it was going to help
-_anyone_ to say that Ethel had epilepsy and consumption?”
-
-“I’d rather have epilepsy and consumption,” said Robert who had
-returned to the sofa and was sitting with his head between his hands,
-“than be engaged to Marion Dexter.”
-
-“I must say I simply can’t understand why you’ve been doing all this,
-William,” said Mrs. Brown. “We must just wait till your father comes in
-and see what he makes of it. And I can’t think why dinner’s so late.”
-
-“She’s gone to bed,” said William gloomily.
-
-“I’d better see to things then,” said Mrs. Brown going into the hall.
-
-“_Epilepsy!_” groaned Ethel.
-
-“Twenty-four--twenty-four if she’s a day--and the sort of hair I’ve
-always disliked,” groaned Robert.
-
-William followed his mother to the kitchen rather than be left to
-the tender mercies of Ethel and Robert. He began to feel distinctly
-apprehensive about the kitchen ... that pool of eggs ... those brown
-liquids he’d mixed....
-
-Mrs. Brown opened the kitchen door. On the empty chicken dish on
-the floor sat Jumble surrounded by chicken bones, the wishing bone
-protruding from his mouth, looking blissfully happy....
-
-
-VI
-
-In his bedroom whither he had perforce retired supperless, William
-hung up the Outlaws’ signal of distress (a scull and crossbones in
-black and the word “Help” in red) at his window in case Ginger or Henry
-or Douglas came down the road, and then surveyed the events of the
-day. Well, he’d done his best. He’d lived a life of self-denial and
-service all right. It was his family who were wrong. They hadn’t been
-happy or grateful or admiring. They simply weren’t worthy of a life of
-self-denial and service. And anyway how could he have _known_ that it
-was another Marion and that Ethel couldn’t say what she meant and that
-Jumble was going to get in through the kitchen window?
-
-A tiny pebble hit his window. He threw it open. There down below in the
-garden path were Douglas, Henry and Ginger.
-
-“Ho! my trusty mates,” said William in a penetrating whisper. “I am
-pent in durance vile--sent to bed, you know--an’ I’m jolly hungry. Wilt
-kill some deer or venison or something for me?”
-
-“Righto,” said Ginger, and “Yes, gallant captain,” said Douglas and
-Henry as they crept off through the bushes.
-
-William returned to his survey of his present position. That old boy
-simply didn’t know what he was talking about. He couldn’t ever have
-tried it himself. Anyway he (William) had tried it and he knew all
-there was to know about lives of self-denial and service and he’d
-_done_ with lives of self-denial and service, thank you very much. He
-was going back to his ordinary kind of life first thing to-morrow....
-
-A tiny pebble at the window. William leant out. Below were Ginger,
-Henry and Douglas with a small basket.
-
-“Oh, crumbs!” said William joyfully.
-
-He lowered a string and they tied the little basket on to it. William
-drew it up fairly successfully. It contained a half-eaten apple, a bar
-of toffee that had spent several days unwrapped in Henry’s pocket,
-which was covered with bits of fluff, a very stale bun purloined from
-Ginger’s mother’s larder, and a packet of monkey nuts bought with
-Ginger’s last twopence.
-
-William’s eyes shone.
-
-“Oh, I _say_,” he said gratefully, “thanks _awfully_. And, I say, you’d
-better go now ’case they see you, and I _say_, I’ll come huntin’ wild
-animals with you to-morrow night.”
-
-“Right-o,” said the Outlaws creeping away through the bushes.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Downstairs William’s family circle consumed a meal consisting of
-sardines and stewed pears. They consumed it in gloomy silence, broken
-only by Mr. Brown’s dry, “I suppose there must be quite a heavy vein
-of insanity somewhere in the family for it to come out so strong in
-William.” And by Ethel’s indignant, “And _epilepsy!_ Why on earth did
-he fix on _epilepsy?_” And by Robert’s gloomy, “Engaged to be married
-to her ... _twenty-four_ ... _chained_ to her for life.”
-
-Upstairs the cause of all their troubles sat on the floor in the middle
-of his bedroom with his little pile of eatables before him.
-
-“Come on, my gallant braves,” he said addressing an imaginary band of
-fellow captives. “Let us eat well and then devise some way of escape or
-ere dawn our bleached bones may dangle from yon gallows.”
-
-Then quite happily and contentedly he began to eat the fluffy stick of
-toffee....
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-A BIT OF BLACKMAIL
-
-
-Bob Andrews was one of the picturesque figures of the village. He
-lived at the East Lodge of the Hall, and was supposed to help with the
-gardening of the Hall grounds. He was tall, handsome, white-bearded and
-gloriously lazy. He had a roguish twinkle in his blue eye and a genius
-for wasting time--both his own and other people’s. He was a great
-friend of William and the Outlaws. He seemed to them to be free of all
-the drawbacks that usually accompany the state of grownupness. He was
-never busy, never disapproving, never tidy, never abstracted. He took
-seriously the really important things of life such as cigarette-card
-collecting, the top season, Red Indians, and the finding of birds’
-nests. Having abstracted a promise from them that they would take “one
-igg an’ no more, ye rascals,” he would show them every bird’s nest in
-the Hall woods. He seemed to know exactly where each bird would build
-each year. He had a family of two tame squirrels, four dogs and seven
-cats, who all lived together in unity. He could carve boats out of
-wood, make whistles and bows and arrows and tops. He did all these
-things as if he had nothing else to do in the world. He would stand
-for hours perfectly happy with his hands in his pockets, smoking. He
-would watch the Outlaws organising races of boats, watch them shooting
-their bows and arrows, taking interest in their marksmanship, offering
-helpful criticism. He was in every way an eminently satisfactory
-person. He was paid a regular salary by the absent owner of the Hall
-for occasionally opening the Lodge gates, and still more occasionally
-assisting with the gardening. He understood the word assistance in
-its most literal sense--that of “standing by.” He also was generous
-with kindly advice to his more active colleagues. It says much for his
-attractive personality that this want of activity was resented by no
-one.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mr. Bott, the new owner of the Hall, was a business man. He liked
-to get his money’s worth for his money. It was not for nothing that
-passionate appeals to safeguard their health by taking Bott’s Sauce
-with every meal met England’s citizens in every town. Mr. Bott believed
-in getting the last ounce of work out of his work-people. That was what
-had raised Mr. Bott from grocer’s errand boy to lord of the manor.
-When Mr. Bott discovered that he had upon his newly acquired estate a
-man who drew a working man’s salary for merely standing about and at
-intervals consuming the more choice fruit from the hot houses, Mr. Bott
-promptly sacked that man. It would have been against Mr. Bott’s most
-sacred principles to do otherwise....
-
-The Outlaws avoided Mr. Bott’s estate for some time after their
-adventure with his daughter. But having heard that she had departed on
-a lengthy visit to distant relatives, the Outlaws decided to return to
-their favourite haunts. They entered the wood by crawling through the
-hedge. For a time they amused themselves by climbing trees and turning
-somersaults among the leaves. Then they tried jumping over the stream.
-The stream possessed the attraction of being just too wide to jump
-over. The interest lay in seeing how much or how little of their boots
-got wet each time. Finally the Outlaws wearied of these pursuits.
-
-“Let’s go and find Bob,” said William at last.
-
-Scuffling, shuffling, dragging their toes along the ground, whistling,
-punching each other at intervals, in the fashion of boyhood, they made
-their way slowly to the East Lodge.
-
-Bob stood at his door smoking as usual.
-
-“Hello, Bob,” called the Outlaws.
-
-“Hello, ye young rascals.”
-
-“I say, Bob, make us some boats an’ let’s have a race.”
-
-“Sure an’ I will,” said Bob knocking out his pipe and taking a large
-penknife out of his pocket, “though it’s wastin’ me time ye are, as
-usual.”
-
-He took up a piece of wood and began to whittle.
-
-“How’s the squirrel, Bob?”
-
-“Foine.”
-
-“Bob, they’re building in the ivy on the Old Oak again.”
-
-“Shure an’ I knew that before you did, me bhoy.”
-
-But though he whittled and whistled Bob was evidently not his old self.
-
-“I say, Bob, next month----”
-
-“Next month, me bhoys, I shall not be here.”
-
-They stared at him open-mouthed.
-
-“_What_--you goin’ away for a holiday, Bob?”
-
-Bob whittled away nonchalantly.
-
-“I’m goin’ away, me bhoys, because th’ould devil up there has given me
-the sack--God forgive him for _Oi_ won’t,” he ended piously.
-
-“But--_why?_” they said aghast.
-
-“He sez I don’t work. _Me!_” he said indignantly. “_Me_--an’ me wearin’
-me hands to the bone for him the way I do. _An’_ he says I steal ’is
-fruit--me what takes only the few peaches he’d come an’ give me with
-his own hands if he was a gintleman at all, at all.”
-
-“What a _shame!_” said the Outlaws.
-
-“Turnin’ me an’ me hanimals out into the cold world. May God forgive
-him!” said Bob. “Well, here’s yer boats, ye young rascals, an’ don’t
-ye go near me pheasants’ nests or I’ll put the fear of God on ye.”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-“We’ve gotter _do_ something,” said William, when Bob had returned,
-smoking peacefully, to his Lodge.
-
-“_We_ can’t do anything,” said Ginger despondently. “Who’d listen to
-_us?_ Who’d take any notice of _us_, anyway?”
-
-William the leader looked at him sternly.
-
-“You jus’ wait an’ _see_,” he said.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mr. Bott was very stout. His stoutness was a great secret trouble to
-Mr. Bott. Mr. Bott had made his money and now Mr. Bott wished to take
-his proper place in Society. Mr. Bott considered not unreasonably that
-his corpulency, though an excellent advertisement of the nourishing
-qualities of Bott’s Sauce, yet detracted from the refinement of his
-appearance. Mrs. Bott frequently urged him to “do something about
-it.” He had consulted many expensive specialists. Mrs. Bott kept
-finding “new men” for him. The last “new man” she had found was highly
-recommended on all sides. He practically guaranteed his treatment to
-transform a human balloon to a human pencil in a few months. Mr. Bott
-had begun the treatment. It was irksome but Mr. Bott was persevering.
-Had Mr. Bott not been persevering he would never have attained that
-position of eminence in the commercial world that he now held. Every
-morning as soon as it was light, Mr. Bott, decently covered by a large
-overcoat, went down to a small lake in the grounds among the bushes.
-There Mr. Bott divested himself of his overcoat and appeared in small
-bathing drawers. From the pocket of his overcoat Mr. Bott would then
-take a skipping rope and with this he would skip five times round the
-lake. Then he would put away his skipping rope and do his exercises.
-He would twist his short fat body into strange attitudes, flinging his
-short fat arms towards Heaven, standing upon one short fat leg with
-the other thrust out at various angles and invariably overbalancing.
-Finally, Mr. Bott had to plunge into the lake (it was not deep), splash
-and kick and run round it, in and then emerge to dry himself on a towel
-concealed in the other pocket of his overcoat, shiveringly don the
-overcoat again and furtively return to the house. For Mr. Bott was shy
-about his “treatment.” He fondly imagined that no one except Mrs. Bott,
-the “new man” and himself knew about his early morning adventures.
-
- * * * * *
-
-One chilly morning Mr. Bott had skipped and leapt and twisted himself
-and splashed himself and emerged, shivering and red-nosed, for his
-overcoat. Then Mr. Bott received a shock that was nearly too much for
-his much-exercised system. His overcoat was not there. He looked all
-round the tree where he knew he had left it, and it was not there. It
-was most certainly not there. With chattering teeth Mr. Bott threw a
-glance of pathetic despair around him. Then above the sound of the
-chattering of his teeth he heard a voice.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-“I’ve got your coat up here.”
-
-Mr. Bott threw a startled glance up into the tree whence the voice
-came. From among the leaves a stern, freckled, snub-nosed, wild-haired
-face glared down at him.
-
-“I’ll give you your coat,” said William, “’f you’ll promise to let Bob
-stay.”
-
-Mr. Bott clasped his dripping head with a dripping hand.
-
-“Bob?”
-
-“Bob Andrews what you’re sending away for nothing.”
-
-Mr. Bott tried to look dignified in spite of the chattering of his
-teeth and the water that poured from his hair down his face.
-
-“I have my reasons, child,” he said, “of which you know nothing. Will
-you kindly give me back my coat? I’m afraid you are a very naughty,
-ill-behaved little boy to do a thing like this and if you aren’t
-careful I’ll tell the police about it.”
-
-“I’ll give you your coat if you’ll promise not to send Bob away,” said
-William again sternly.
-
-“I shall most certainly speak to your father _and_ the police,” said
-Mr. Bott. “You’re a very impudent little boy! Give me my coat at once.”
-
-“I’ll give you your coat,” said William again, “if you’ll promise not
-to send Bob away.”
-
-Mr. Bott’s dignity began to melt away.
-
-“You young devil,” he roared. “You----”
-
-He looked wildly around and his eyes fell upon something upon which
-William’s eye ought to have fallen before. William had for once
-overlooked something vital to his strategy. In the long grass behind
-the tree lay a ladder that had been left there long ago by some
-gardener and forgotten. With a yell of triumph Mr. Bott rushed to it.
-
-“Oh, crumbs!” said William among the leafage.
-
-Mr. Bott put the ladder against the tree trunk and began to swarm up
-it--large, dripping, chattering with rage and cold. William retreated
-along his branch, still clinging to the overcoat. Mr. Bott pursued
-furiously.
-
-“You young rogue--you young devil. I’ll teach you--I’ll----”
-
-The branch down which William was retreating pursued by Mr. Bott was
-directly over the lake. William alone it could easily have supported,
-but it drew the line at Mr. Bott. With a creaking and a crashing above
-which rose a yell of terror from Mr. Bott, it fell into the water
-accompanied by its two occupants. The splash made by Mr. Bott’s falling
-body at first obscured the landscape. Before William could recover from
-the shock caused by Mr. Bott’s splash and yell and his own unexpected
-descent, Mr. Bott was upon him. Mr. Bott was maddened by rage and
-fury, and wet and cold. He ducked William and shook William and tore
-his wet overcoat from William. William butted Mr. Bott in his largest
-and roundest part, then scrambled from the lake and fled dripping
-towards the gate. Mr. Bott at first pursued him, then realising that
-the path was taking him within sight of the high road, turned back,
-drew his soaked overcoat over his shoulders and fled chatteringly and
-shiveringly towards his resplendent mansion.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Two hours later, William met the other Outlaws by appointment in the
-old barn where all their meetings were held.
-
-“Well?” said the other Outlaws eagerly.
-
-William, who was wearing his best suit, looked pale and chastened but
-none the less determined.
-
-“It didn’t quite come off,” admitted William. “Something went wrong.”
-
-Their faces fell, but they did not question him.
-
-“Well, we’ve done all we can,” said Ginger resignedly, “an’ we jus’
-can’t help it.”
-
-[Illustration: ONCE MR. BOTT THOUGHT HE SAW THAT HORRIBLE BOY’S FACE IN
-THE BUSHES. ONCE HE IMAGINED HE HEARD AN ODD CLICK, AS IF SOMEONE HAD
-STEPPED ON A TWIG.]
-
-“I’ve got another idea,” said William grimly. “I’ve jolly well not
-_finished_ yet.”
-
-They looked at him with awe and respect.
-
-“We’ll have another meeting in three days,” said William with his stern
-frown, “an’--an’--well, you jus’ wait and see.”
-
-[Illustration: MR. BOTT LEAPED AND SKIPPED AND GAMBOLLED AND SPLASHED.
-HE WAS DETERMINED TO OBEY TO THE FULL THE SPECIALIST’S ADVICE ABOUT
-PHYSICAL EXERCISES.]
-
-The next day was bright and sunny. Mr. Bott almost enjoyed his morning
-exercises. He thought occasionally with indignation of the events
-of the previous morning. That dreadful boy ... anyway he’d _shown_
-him--he wasn’t likely to come again after yesterday. And most certainly
-Bob Andrews should go ... he’d like to see any fool boy dictating
-to _him_. But Mr. Bott could not feel bad-tempered for long. It was
-such a bright sunny morning and he’d just discovered himself to be
-⅞ of an inch thinner round the waist than this time last week....
-He leapt and skipped and gambolled and splashed. Once he imagined
-he saw the horrible boy’s face in the bushes, but looking again he
-came to the conclusion that he must have been mistaken. Once too, he
-thought he heard a snap or a click as if someone had stepped on a
-twig, but listening again he came to the conclusion that he must have
-been mistaken. He enjoyed his exercises for the next two mornings as
-well. But on the third morning as soon as he had come down, dressed
-and glowing, to his study after his exercises, to look at his letters
-before breakfast the butler threw open the door and announced:
-
-“They said it was himportant business, sir, an’ you knew about it. I
-’ope it’s all right.”
-
-Then four boys walked up to his desk. One was the boy who had taken
-his overcoat up a tree two days before. The butler had gone. Mr. Bott,
-sputtering with rage, reached out to the bell. (He was going to say
-“Kick these boys out”) when the worst of the boys--the devil--laid half
-a dozen snapshots on his desk. Mr. Bott looked at them, and then sat
-rigid and motionless, his hand still outstretched towards the bell.
-
-Then his rubicund face grew pale.
-
-The first snapshot showed Mr. Bott, short, fat, and (except for his
-microscopic bathing drawers) naked, skipping by the lake. The angle of
-his legs was irresistibly comic. The second snapshot showed Mr. Bott,
-still short and fat and almost naked, balancing himself on one arm and
-one leg, the others stuck out wildly in the air, his eyes staring, his
-tongue hanging out of his mouth. The third snapshot showed Mr. Bott in
-the act of over-balancing in a rather difficult exercise. That was the
-gem of the collection. The fourth showed Mr. Bott lying on his back and
-kicking his legs in the air. The fifth showed Mr. Bott standing on two
-very stiff arms and stiff legs with an expression of acute suffering on
-his face. The sixth showed Mr. Bott splashing in the lake.
-
-Mr. Bott took out his handkerchief and wiped away the perspiration that
-was standing out on his brow.
-
-“If you burn ’em,” said William firmly, “we can get more. We’ve got the
-films and we can make hundreds more--and _jolly good_ ones too.”
-
-Mr. Bott began to stammer.
-
-“W-hat are you g-going to d-do with them?” he asked.
-
-“Just show them to people,” said William calmly.
-
-Horrid visions passed before Mr. Bott’s eye. He saw the wretched
-things in the local paper. He saw them passed from hand to hand in
-drawing-rooms. He saw strong men helpless with mirth as they seized on
-them. His position in Society--well, the less said about his position
-in Society if those things became public the better....
-
-William took a crumpled document from his pocket and laid it solemnly
-upon Mr. Bott’s desk.
-
-“That’s a contrack,” he said, “signed in all our life’s blood sayin’
-that we’ll keep ’em hid safely and never show ’em to anyone s’long as
-you let Bob stay.”
-
-Mr. Bott knew when he was beaten. He moistened his lips.
-
-“All right,” he whispered. “All right ... I promise--only--_go away_.”
-
-They went away.
-
-Mr. Bott locked the contract in his desk and pocketed the key.
-
-Mrs. Bott came in. Mr. Bott still sat huddled in his chair.
-
-“You don’t look well, Botty darling,” said Mrs. Bott with concern in
-her voice.
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bott in a hollow voice. “I don’t know that this
-treatment’s doing me any good.”
-
-“Isn’t it, ducky?” said Mrs. Bott. “Well, I’ll try to find you a new
-man.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-That afternoon the Outlaws passed Bob. He stood outside his Lodge,
-hands in pockets, pipe in mouth, handsome, white-bearded, gloriously
-lazy.
-
-“I’ve found a grass snake for ye, me bhoys,” he sang out, “he’s in a
-box in the yard beyond. Oh, an’ Bob Andrews is _not_ goin’, me bhoys.
-The sack is withdrawn. Th’aud devil’s realised me value, glory be to
-God.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-That night Robert, William’s elder brother, came downstairs with his
-camera in his hand.
-
-“I say,” he said, “I could have sworn I put this away with half a dozen
-films in.”
-
-“When did you have it last, dear?” said his mother.
-
-William took a book from a shelf and sat down at the table, resting his
-head on his hands.
-
-“I put it away last Autumn till the decent weather came round, but I
-could have sworn I put it away with a roll of films in.”
-
-His eye fell sternly and accusingly upon William.
-
-William looked up, met it unflinchingly with an expression of patient
-endurance on his face.
-
-“Robert,” he said with a sigh. “I wish you’d talk more quietly. I’m
-trying to learn my history dates.”
-
-Robert’s jaw dropped. Then he went quietly from the room still gaping.
-There was simply no making head or tail of that kid....
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-WILLIAM THE MONEY-MAKER
-
-
-The rain poured ceaselessly upon the old barn where the Outlaws were
-assembled. They had meant to spend the afternoon birds-nesting, and
-they had continued to birds-nest in spite of the steady downpour
-till Ginger had torn such a large hole in his knickers that as he
-pathetically remarked, “S’all very well for you. ’S only rainin’ on
-your clothes. But it’s rainin’ right on to _me_ through my hole an’
-it’s jolly cold an’ I’m goin’ home.”
-
-His threat of going home was hardly serious. It was not likely that any
-of the Outlaws would waste the precious hours of a half-holiday in a
-place so barren of any hope of adventure as home.
-
-“All right,” said William the leader (upon whose stern and grimy
-countenance the rain had traced little channels of cleanliness)
-testily. “All right. My goodness, what a fuss you make about a bit of
-rain on your bare skin. What would you do if you was a Red Indian an’
-had to be out of doors all weathers and nearly all bare skin?”
-
-“Well, it doesn’t rain in Red Indian climits,” said Ginger. “So there!
-Don’t you be too clever. It doesn’t rain in Red Indian climits.”
-
-William was nonplussed for a moment, then he summoned his fighting
-spirit.
-
-“How do you know?” he said. “You ever been there? You ever been to a
-Red Indian climit? Well, I din’t know you’d ever been to a Red Indian
-climit. But I’m very int’rested to hear it. It’s very int’restin’ an’
-funny you din’t get killed an’ eat, I _mus’_ say.”
-
-William’s weapon of heavy sarcasm always proved rather bewildering to
-his friends.
-
-“I don’ see that it matters whether I’ve been to a Red Indian climit or
-not,” said Ginger stoutly, “’it wun’t stop me feelin’ wet now if I had,
-would it?”
-
-“Well, what would you do if you was a diver,” went on William, “’f
-you’re so frightened of gettin’ a bit wet? P’raps what with knowin’ so
-much about Red Indian climits you’ll say it’s not wet in the sea. Of
-course ’f you say it’s not wet in the sea we’ll all b’lieve you. Oh
-yes, we’ll all b’lieve you ’f you say it’s not wet in the sea. I s’pose
-that’s wot you’ll be sayin’ next--that it’s not wet in the sea--with
-knowin’ so much about Red Indian climits----”
-
-At this moment there came a redoubled torrent of rain and turning up
-their sodden collars the Outlaws all ran to the old barn which was the
-scene of many of their activities.
-
-“I’m s’prised to see _you_ run like that,” said Ginger to William. “I
-should’ve thought you’d have liked gettin’ wet the way you talk about
-divers an’ Red Indians.”
-
-William shut the door of the barn and pushed his wet hair out of his
-eyes.
-
-“I thought it was _you_ wot knew all about Red Indian climits an’ the
-sea not bein’ wet,” he said severely. “Seems to me you don’t know wot
-you _are_ talkin’ about sometimes. One minute you say the sea’s not
-wet----”
-
-“I never said the sea wasn’t wet,” said Ginger. “You sim’ly don’t
-listen to what I _do_ say.--You jus’ keep on talkin’ an’ talkin’
-yourself an’ you don’ listen prop’ly to wot other folks say. You get
-it all wrong. You go on talkin’ and talkin’ about Red Indians an’
-divers----”
-
-But Henry and Douglas, the other two Outlaws, were tired of the subject.
-
-“Oh, do shut _up!_” said Henry irritably.
-
-“_Who_ shut up?” said William aggressively.
-
-“_Both_ of you,” said Douglas.
-
-Ginger and William hurled themselves upon the other two and there
-followed one of those scrimmages in which the Outlaws delighted. It
-ended by Ginger sitting on Henry and William on Douglas, and all felt a
-little warmer and dryer and less irritable. The subjects of Red Indians
-and divers were by tacit consent dropped.
-
-It was raining harder than ever. The water was pouring in through the
-roof at the other end of the barn.
-
-“What’ll we _do_?” said Ginger disconsolately rolling off his human
-perch.
-
-Their afternoon so far had not been encouraging. They had with
-characteristic optimism aimed at collecting forty eggs before tea. They
-had all sustained severe falls from trees, they were wet through, they
-were scratched and torn and bruised, and the result was one cracked
-thrush’s egg from a deserted nest, which Ginger subsequently dropped
-and then inadvertently trod upon while climbing through a hedge. This
-incident had made Ginger unpopular for a time. It had drawn forth the
-rough diamonds of William’s sarcasm.
-
-“’S very kind of you, I’m sure. Yes, we took all that trouble jus’ so’s
-you could have the pleasure of treadin’ on it. Oh, yes, we feel quite
-paid for all the trouble we took now you’ve been kind enough to tread
-on it. Can we get you anythin’ else to tread on? I’m sure it’s very
-nice for the poor bird to think it’s had all the trouble of layin’ that
-egg jus’ for you to tread on----”
-
-This rhetoric had resulted in a fight between William and Ginger, at
-the end of which both had rolled into a ditch. The ditch was not a dry
-ditch, but they were both so wet already that the immersion made little
-difference.
-
-“_Do?_” said Henry indignantly. “Jus’ tell us what there _is_ to do
-shut up in this ole place. _Do?_ Huh!”
-
-“I know what we can do,” said William suddenly, “we can make up a tale
-turn an’ turn about.”
-
-They were sitting on the two wooden packing cases with which they had
-furnished their meeting place. A small rivulet ran between, having its
-source just beneath the hole in the roof at the other end of the barn
-and flowing out under the door. The Outlaws carelessly dabbled their
-feet in it as it passed. Their drooping spirits revived at William’s
-suggestion.
-
-“A’ right,” said Henry, “you start.”
-
-“A’ right,” said William modestly. “I don’ mind startin’. Once there
-was a man wot got cast upon a desert island.”
-
-“Why?” said Ginger, “why was he cast upon a desert island?”
-
-“’F you’re goin’ to keep on int’ruptin’ askin’ silly questions----”
-began William sternly.
-
-“A’ right,” said Ginger pacifically. “A’ right. Go on.”
-
-“He was cast upon a desert island,” repeated William, “an’ the desert
-island was full of savage cannibals what chased him round an’ round the
-island till he climbed a tree an’ they all s’rounded the tree utterin’
-fierce yells----”
-
-“What was they yellin’?” said Henry with interest.
-
-“How could anyone tell what they was yelling without knowin’ the
-langwidge?” said William impatiently. “Do you know the cannibal
-langwidge? No, an’ the man din’t, so how could he tell wot they was
-yellin’?”
-
-“Well the one wot’s tellin’ the tale oughter know,” said Henry
-doggedly, “_You_ oughter know. The one wot’s tellin’ the tale oughter
-know everythin’ _in_ the tale----”
-
-“Well, I do,” said William crushingly, “but I’m not goin’ to tell _you_
-wot they was yellin’, so _there_. An’ when you’ve all kin’ly finished
-int’ruptin’ I’ll kin’ly go on. They was all beneath the tree utterin’
-fierce yells wot I know wot they meant but wot I’m not goin’ to tell
-_you_, when he took a great big jump right off the tree, splash into
-the sea again an’ caught hold of a whale wot was jus’ passing and got
-on its back an’ held tight on by its fins----”
-
-“I don’t think a whale’s got fins,” said Douglas dubiously.
-
-“I don’ care whether other whales’ve got fins or not,” said William
-firmly, “this one haddem anyway. An’ he kept rearin’ up an’ turnin’
-over so’s to shake the man off but the man held tight and--now, Henry,
-go on.”
-
-“A’ right,” said Henry, “well he went on an’ on on the whale’s back
-till he came to a ship an’ he jumped up on to it from the whale’s
-back----”
-
-“He couldn’t have done,” said Douglas firmly.
-
-“What?” said Henry.
-
-“Couldn’t have done. Couldn’t have jumped from a whale’s back to a
-ship. A ship’s high.”
-
-“Well, he _did_,” said Henry, “so it’s no use talkin’ about whether
-he could or not. If he _did_ he _could_, I should think.” William’s
-sarcasm was infectious. “Well, he found it was a pirate ship an’ they
-put him in irons an’ made him walk the plank an’ just when he got to
-the end of the plank--now Ginger, go on.”
-
-“Well, you’ve gottim in a nice mess, I mus’ say,” said Ginger bitterly,
-“an’ I s’pose you want me to gettim out of it--chased by cannibals an’
-now walkin’ a plank! Well _you_ gottim into it an’ I’m not goin’ to
-bother with him. I din’t start it an’ I don’t like it. I’d rather have
-soldiers an’ fightin’ an’ that sort of a tale. An’ wot can I do with
-him walkin’ the plank? I’m jus’ about tired of that man. An’ he’s not
-even gotta name. Well, jus’ as he got to the end of the plank he fell
-in an’ the whale ate him up an’ he died.”
-
-“It isn’t fair,” said Douglas indignantly, “gettin’ him dead before
-I’ve had my turn. What’m I goin’ to do?”
-
-“You can tell about someone catchin’ the whale an’ findin’ his dead
-body inside,” said Ginger calmly.
-
-“Oh, can I?” said Douglas, “well I’m not goin’ to.”
-
-“No, ’cause you can’t,” jeered Ginger. “You can’t finish it however we
-left it.”
-
-“Oh, couldn’t I?” said Douglas.
-
-They closed in combat. William and Henry watched dispassionately.
-
-Douglas’s collar had completely broken loose from its moorings and two
-of the already existing tears in Ginger’s coat had been extended to
-meet each other. They sat down again on the packing cases.
-
-“Still raining,” said Henry morosely.
-
-“I bet your mother’ll say _something_ about that tear,” said William to
-Ginger severely.
-
-“Well, you bet wrong then,” said Ginger, “’cause she’s gone to London
-to see the Exhibition.”
-
-“Fancy goin’ to London to see an ole exhibition,” said William
-scornfully, “What she see there?”
-
-“Oh, natives,” said Ginger, “black uns, you know, an’ native places an’
-jugs an’ things made by natives.”
-
-“That all?”
-
-“Well, there’s amusements an’ things too, but that’s all really,” said
-Ginger. “You pay money an’ jus’ see ’em’ an’ that’s all.”
-
-“Crumbs!” said William. His face was set in deep scowling thought for
-a minute, then a light broke over it. “I say,” he said, “let’s have
-a nexhibition--let’s get a nexhibition up. Well, ’f Ginger’s mother
-’ll go all the way to London to see a nexhibition it’d--well, it’d be
-savin’ folks’ money to givvem a nexhibition here.”
-
-“We’ve _done_ things like that,” said Henry morosely. “We’ve got up
-shows an’ things an’ they’ve always turned out wrong.”
-
-“We’ve never got up a nexhibition,” said William, “a nexhibition’s
-quite diff’rent. It couldn’t go wrong an’ we’d make ever so much money.”
-
-“I don’t b’lieve in your ways of makin’ money,” said Henry, “something
-always goes wrong.”
-
-“A’ right,” said William sternly, “don’t be _in_ it. Keep _out_ of it.”
-
-“Oh, no,” said Henry hastily, “I’d rather be _in_ it even if it _goes_
-wrong. I’d rather be in a thing that turns out wrong than not be in
-anything at all.”
-
-“Where’ll we get natives?” said Ginger.
-
-“Oh, anyone can look like a native,” said William carelessly. “That’s
-easy ’s easy.”
-
-“What’ll we call it?” said Douglas.
-
-“The London one’s called Wembley,” said Ginger with an air of pride in
-his wide knowledge.
-
-“What about ‘The Little Wembley’?” said Henry.
-
-“Well _that’s_ a silly thing to do!” said William sternly, “_tellin’_
-’em it’s littler than Wembley before they’ve come to it. Even if it is
-littler than Wembley we needn’t _tellem_ so.”
-
-“Let’s call it just Wembley,” suggested Douglas.
-
-“No,” said William, “it would be muddlin’ havin’ ’em both called by the
-same name. Folks wouldn’t know which they was talkin’ about.”
-
-“When I stayed with my aunt,” said Ginger slowly, “there was a place
-called a Picture Palace de lucks. Let’s call it Wembley de lucks.”
-
-“What’s de lucks mean,” said William suspiciously.
-
-“I ’spect it means sorter good luck,” said Ginger.
-
-“All right,” said William graciously, “that’ll do all right for a name.
-Now how’re we goin’ to let people know about it?”
-
-“How did they let people know about the other Wembley?” said Henry.
-
-“They put advertisements in the papers an’ things,” said Ginger who
-was beginning to consider himself the greatest living authority on the
-subject of the Wembley Exhibition.
-
-“We can’t do that,” said Henry, “the papers sim’ly wouldn’t print ’em
-if we wrote ’em. I know ’cause I once sent somethin’ to a paper an’
-they sim’ly didn’t print it.”
-
-“Well, then,” said William undaunted, “we’ll write letters to people.
-They’ll have to read ’em. We’ll stick ’em through their letter boxes
-an’ they’ll _have_ to read ’em case they was somethin’ important. An’
-I say, it’s nearly stopped rainin’. Let’s see ’f we can find any more
-eggs.”
-
-
-II
-
-A week later the Outlaws were sitting round the large wooden table of
-the one-time nursery in Ginger’s house. In a strained silence they
-wrote out the letter drafted by William, a copy of which was before
-each of them. The table was covered with ink stains. Their hair, their
-faces, their tongues, their collars, their fingers were covered with
-ink. Most of them wrote slowly and laboriously with ink-stained tongues
-protruding between ink-stained teeth.
-
- “DEAR SIR or MADDAM (ran the copy),
-
- On Satterdy we are going to have a Wembley not the one in London but
- one here so as to save you fairs and other exspences there will be
- natifs in natif coschume with natif potts and ammusments and other
- things which are secrits till the day entranse will be one penny exsit
- free ammusments are one penny hopping to have the pleshure of your
- compny,
-
- Yours truely,
- THE WEMBLY COMITTY.
-
- P.S. It is a secrit who we are.
-
- P.P.S. It will probly be in the feeld next the barn but notises will
- be put up latter.”
-
-When the notes had been written the Outlaws were both physically and
-mentally exhausted. They could run and wrestle and climb trees all day
-without feeling any effects, but one page of writing always had the
-peculiar effect of exhausting their strength and spirits. As William
-said, “It’s havin’ to hold an uncomfortable pen an’ keep on thinkin’
-an’ lookin’ at paper an’ sittin’ without a change. It’s--well I’d
-rather be a Red Indian where there aren’t no schools.”
-
-The notices were distributed by the Outlaws personally after dark
-in order the better to conceal their identity. They did not deliver
-notices to their own families or the friends of their families. Their
-own families were apt to be suspicious and not very encouraging. The
-Outlaws regarded their families as stumbling blocks placed in their
-paths by a malicious Fate.
-
-At last, spent and weary and ink-stained, they bade each other
-good-night.
-
-“Well, it _oughter_ turn out all right with all the trouble we’re
-takin’ over it,” said Ginger rather bitterly. “I feel wore out with
-writin’ an’ writin’ an’ walkin’ an’ walkin’ and stickin’ things through
-the letter boxes. I feel sim’ly wore out.”
-
-“I think I’m goin’ to be sick soon,” said Henry with a certain gentle
-resignation, “swallerin’ all that ink.”
-
-“Well, no one _asked_ you to swaller ink,” said William whose position
-of responsibility was making him slightly irritable. “You talk ’s if
-we’d _wanted_ you to swaller ink. It’s not done any good to _us_ you
-swallerin’ ink. ’F you’ve been wastin’ Ginger’s ink swallerin’ it
-then you don’ need to blame us. It’s not Ginger’s fault that you’ve
-swallered his ink, is it?”
-
-“Yes, an’ it is,” said Henry, “it got all up his pen an’ on to my
-fingers an’ then I had to keep lickin’ ’em to get it off an’ that’s
-wot’s made me feel sick. Well, ornery ink doesn’t do that. It’s
-somethin’ wrong with Ginger’s ink _I_ should say. It----”
-
-“_Henry!_” called an irate maternal voice through the dusk, “_when_ are
-you coming in? It’s _hours_ past your bedtime.”
-
-The Outlaws scattered hastily....
-
-
-III
-
-The Outlaws had decided to hold the exhibition in Farmer Jenks’ field
-behind the barn. Farmer Jenks was the Outlaws’ most implacable foe.
-He frequently chased the Outlaws from his fields with shouts and
-imprecations and stones and dogs. He had once uttered the intriguing
-threat to William that he would “cut his liver out.” This had deeply
-impressed the Outlaws and William had felt proud of the fame it won
-him. He could not resist haunting Farmer Jenks’ lands because the chase
-that always ensued was so much more exciting than an ordinary chase.
-“Well, he’s not cut it out _yet_,” he used to say proudly after each
-escape.
-
-But just now Farmer Jenks was away staying with a brother and Mrs.
-Jenks was confined to bed, and the farm labourers quite wisely
-preferred to leave the Outlaws as far as possible to their own devices.
-So the Outlaws were coming more and more to regard that field of Farmer
-Jenks’ as their private property.
-
-The afternoon of the exhibition was unusually warm. The exhibition
-opened at 2 o’clock. To the stile that led from the road was attached a
-notice
-
- THIS WAY T
- O WEMBLY D
- E LUCKS
-
-and on the hole in the hedge by which spectators were to enter Farmers
-Jenks’ field was pinned another notice.
-
- THIS WAY T
- O WEMBL
- EY DE L
- UCKS.
-
-At 2.30 which was the time advertised for the opening a small and
-suspicious-looking group of four school children had gathered at the
-stile. William, his face and bare legs thickly covered with boot
-blacking and tightly clutching an old sack across his chest, met them,
-frowning sternly.
-
-“One penny each _please!_” he said aggressively. “An’ I’m part of the
-exhibition an’ I’m a native an’ come this way _please_ an’ hurry up.”
-
-There was a certain amount of bargaining on the part of the tallest
-boy who refused to give more than a halfpenny, saying that he could
-black himself and look in the looking glass for nothing if that was
-all there was ’n a nexhibition, and there was a small scene caused by
-a little girl who refused to pay anything at all, and yet insisted
-on accompanying them in spite of William’s stern remonstrances, and
-finally followed in the wake of the party howling indignantly, “I’m
-_not_ a cheat. _You’re_ a cheat--you narsy ole black boy an’ I _won’_
-give you a penny an’ I _will_ come to your narsy old show, so there!
-Boo-oo-oo-oo!”
-
-William shepherded his small flock through the hole in the hedge. Then
-he took his stand behind a little piece of wood on which were ranged
-pieces of half-dry plasticine tortured into strange shapes. With a
-dramatic gesture William flung aside his piece of sacking and stood
-revealed in an old pale blue bathing costume that had belonged to his
-sister Ethel in her childhood.
-
-“Now you can look at me first,” he said in a deep unnatural voice. “I’m
-a native of South Africa dressed in native coschume an’ this here is
-native orn’ments made by me an’ you can buy the orn’ments for a penny
-each,” he added not very hopefully.
-
-“Yes,” said the tallest boy, “an’ we can do _without_ buyin’ ’em equ’ly
-well.”
-
-“Yes, an’ I’d jus’ as soon you _din’_ buy ’em,” said William proudly
-but untruthfully, “’cause they’re worth more’n a penny an’ I’ll very
-likely get a shillin’ each for ’em before the exhibition’s over.”
-
-“Huh!” said the boy scornfully. “Well, wot’s next? ’S not worth a penny
-_so_ far.”
-
-“’F it’d been worth a penny _so_ far,” said William, “d’you think I’d’v
-let you see it _all_ for a penny. Why don’ you try to talk _sense?_”
-
-The small girl at the tail of the procession was still sobbing
-indignantly.
-
-“I’m _not_ a cheat. Boo-_hoo-hoo_ an’ I won’t give the narsy boy my
-Sat’day penny. I _won’t_. I wanter buy sweeties wiv it an’ I’m _not_ a
-cheat, boo-hoo-hoo!”
-
-“A’ _right_,” said the goaded William. “You’re not then an’ don’t then
-an’ shut up.”
-
-“You’re being very _wude_ to me,” said the young pessimist with a fresh
-wail.
-
-Beyond William were three other sacking-shrouded figures, each behind a
-piece of wood on which were displayed small objects.
-
-[Illustration: “TALK AUSTRALIAN!” COMMANDED WILLIAM.
-
-“MONKEY, FLUKY, TIM-TIM,” SAID GINGER.
-
-“CALL THAT AUSTRALIAN?” SAID THE AUDIENCE INDIGNANTLY.]
-
-“Now I’m a guide,” said William returning to his hoarse, unnatural
-voice. “This way please ladies an’ gentlemen an’ we’d all be grateful
-if the lady would kin’ly shut up.” This remark occasioned a fresh
-outburst of angry sobs on the part of the aggrieved lady. “This,”
-taking off the first sackcloth with a flourish and revealing Ginger
-dressed in an old tapestry curtain, the exposed parts of his person
-plentifully smeared with moist boot blacking, “this is a native of
-Australia, and these are native wooden orn’ments made by him. Talk
-Australian, Native.”
-
-The confinement under the sacking had been an austere one and the day
-was hot and streams of perspiration mingling with the blacking gave
-Ginger’s countenance a mottled look. Before him were wooden objects
-roughly cut into shapes that might have represented almost anything. As
-examples of art they belonged decidedly to the primitive School.
-
-“Go on, Ging--Native, I mean. Talk Australian,” commanded William.
-
-“Monkey, donkey, fluky, tim-tim,” said Ginger, “an’ _crumbs_, isn’t it
-hot?”
-
-“Call that Australian?” said the audience indignantly.
-
-“Well,” said William loftily, “he’s nat’rally learnt a bit of English
-comin’ over here.” Then, taking up one of the unrecognisable wooden
-shapes and handing it to the little girl: “Here, you can have that if
-you’ll shut up an’ it’s worth ever so much, _I_ can tell you. It’s
-valu’ble.”
-
-She took it, beaming with smiles through her tears.
-
-“I ’spect some of you’d like to _buy_ some?” said William.
-
-His audience hastily and indignantly repudiated the suggestion.
-
-“What do I do _now?_” said Ginger.
-
-“You jus’ wait for the next lot,” said William covering him up with the
-sacking. Ginger sat down again muttering disconsolately about the heat
-beneath his sacking.
-
-Henry was a Canadian and Douglas was an Egyptian. Both were pasted
-with blacking and both shone with streaky moisture. Henry wore a large
-cretonne cushion cover and Douglas wore a smock that had been made for
-use in charades last Christmas. Both obligingly talked in their native
-language. Douglas, who was learning Latin, said, “Bonus, bona, bonum,
-bonum, bonam, bonum,” to the fury and indignation of his audience.
-
-In front of Henry were balls of moist clay; in front of Douglas were
-twigs tied together in curious shapes. The sightseers refused all
-William’s blandishing persuasions to buy.
-
-“Well, it’s _you_ I’m thinking of,” said William. “’F you go home
-without takin’ these int’restin’ things made by natives you’ll be sorry
-and then it’ll be too late. An’ you mayn’t ever again see ’em _to_
-buy an’ you’ll be sorry. An’ if you bought ’em you could put ’em in a
-museum an’--an’ they’d always be int’restin’.”
-
-The smallest boy was moved by William’s eloquence to pay a penny for a
-clay ball, then promptly regretted it and demanded his penny back.
-
-It was while this argument was going on that Violet Elizabeth appeared.
-
-“Wanter be a native like Ginger--all black,” she demanded loudly.
-
-William, who was harassed by his argument with the repentant purchaser
-of native ware, turned on her severely.
-
-“You oughter pay a penny comin’ into this show,” he said.
-
-“I came in a different hole, a hole of my own so I’m not going to,”
-said Violet Elizabeth, “an’ I wanter be a native like Ginger an’ Henry
-an’ Douglas--all lovely an’ black.”
-
-“Well, you can’t be,” said William firmly.
-
-Tears filled her eyes and she lifted up her voice.
-
-“Wanterbean-a-a-tive,” she screamed.
-
-“All right,” said William desperately. “_Be_ a native. I don’t care.
-_Be_ a native. Get the blacking from Ginger. I don’t care. _Be_ one an’
-don’t blame _me_. The next is the amusements, ladies _an’_ gentlemen.”
-
-There were three amusements. The first consisted in climbing a tree and
-lowering oneself from the first branch by a rope previously fastened
-to it by William. The second consisted in being wheeled once round the
-field in a wheelbarrow by William. The third consisted in standing on a
-plank at the edge of the pond and being gently propelled into the pond
-by William. The entrance fee to each was one penny.
-
-“Yes,” said the tallest boy indignantly, “an’ s’pose we fall off the
-plank into the water?”
-
-“That’s part of the amusement,” said William wearily.
-
-The smallest boy decided after much thought to have a penny ride in a
-wheelbarrow....
-
-
-IV
-
-Mrs. Bott was walking proudly up the lane. She had in train, not
-an earl exactly, but distantly related to an earl. At any rate he
-was County--most certainly County. So far County had persistently
-resisted the attempts of Mrs. Bott to “get in” with it. Mrs. Bott
-had met him and captured him and was bringing him home to tea. She
-had brushed aside all his excuses. He walked beside her miserably,
-looking round for some way of escape. Already in her mind’s eye Mrs.
-Bott was marrying Violet Elizabeth to one of his nephews (she came to
-the reluctant conclusion that he himself would be rather too old when
-Violet Elizabeth attained a marriageable age) and was killing off all
-his relations in crowds by earthquakes or floods or wrecks or dread
-diseases to make quite sure of the earldom. Ivory charmeuse for Violet
-Elizabeth of course and the bridesmaids in pale blue georgette....
-
-Suddenly they came to a paper notice pinned very crookedly on a stile
-in the hedge:
-
- * * * * *
-
-The distant relation to the peer of the realm brightened. He stroked
-his microscopic moustache.
-
-“I say!” he said, “sounds rather jolly, what?”
-
-Mrs. Bott who had assumed an expression of refined disgust hastily
-exchanged it for one of democratic tolerance.
-
-“Yars,” she said in her super-county-snaring accent, “doesn’t it? We
-always trai to taike an interest in the activities of the village.”
-
-“I say, I think I’ll just go in and see,” he said.
-
-He hoped that it would throw her off but as a ruse it was a failure.
-
-“Oh yars!” she said, “Let’s! I think it’s so good for the village to
-feel the upper clarses take an interest in them.”
-
-The hole in the hedge proved too small for Mrs. Bott’s corpulency, but
-the depressed connection of the peerage found a larger one further up
-which afforded quite a broad passage when the hedge was held back.
-
-They entered the field.
-
-William, his blacking and perspiration falling in drops on to his pale
-blue native costume, had just finished the wheelbarrow ride. His hair
-stood up round his face in matted clusters. He scowled at the newcomers.
-
-“You come to the exhibition?” he said sternly, “’cause you’ve gotter
-pay a penny ’f you have.”
-
-The Honourable Marmaduke Morencey took out a sixpence and gave it to
-William. William unbent.
-
-“’F you come round with me,” he said, “I’ll guide you. I’m a guide--a
-native guide. I’m a South African, I am.”
-
-“Rahly?” said the Honourable Marmaduke.
-
-“How very quaint!” sighed Mrs. Bott with a kindly smile. “I do wish my
-little gurl was heah. She’d have loved it. But I don’t let her mix with
-common children. She’s so carefully gorded. She’s in the gorden with
-her nurse now. She’s a beautiful chehild, and gorded most careful from
-chehildhood.”
-
-[Illustration: THE LAST SHROUDED FIGURE THREW OFF ITS COVERING AND
-JUMPED EXCITEDLY INTO THE AIR. “I’M A NINDIAN,” SQUEAKED VIOLET
-ELIZABETH, “AND I’M GOING TO DO A DANCE.”]
-
-[Illustration: “I DO WISH MY VIOLET ELIZABETH WAS HERE,” SAID MRS.
-BOTT. “SHE’D BE _SO_ INTERESTED--BUT THERE, I’VE ALWAYS KEPT HER FROM
-COMMON CHILDREN.”]
-
-Henry’s canvas was removed and the Honourable Marmaduke smiled a
-weary smile and Mrs. Bott imitated it carefully but not very exactly.
-
-Ginger was shown and the Honourable Marmaduke’s smile became less weary.
-
-Douglas was shown and the Honourable Marmaduke almost (not quite)
-laughed. He certainly murmured. “I say.... By Jove, you know ...
-isn’t it? What?” Even William realised that no higher praise could be
-expected of him than that.
-
-“I _do_ wish my Vahlet Elizabeth was here,” said Mrs. Bott. “She’d be
-_sow_ int’rested--but, there, I’ve always kept her gorded from common
-children.”
-
-Then the last shrouded figure threw off its covering and jumped
-excitedly into the air. It was dressed in stays and small frilled
-knickers. Hair, face, arms and legs were covered with blacking (William
-had “borrowed” a good supply from the store cupboard. He was never a
-boy for half measures).
-
-“I’m a Nindian,” squeaked Violet Elizabeth, leaping up and down
-joyfully in her scanty attire. “I’m a native Indian in a native-Indian
-coschume an’ I’m goin’ to do a native-Indian dance. I’m a Nindian. I’m
-a Nindian!”
-
-With a scream that rent the very heavens Mrs. Bott made a grab at her
-erring child.
-
-At that moment from the other end of the field came a bellow of rage
-that drowned even the voice of Mrs. Bott. The Outlaws, paralysed with
-terror, saw the dread form of their foe advancing upon them wrathfully
-across the field. Farmer Jenks had returned home unexpectedly.
-
-“Grr-r-r-r-r,” he roared as he ran. “I’ll--I’ll--I’ll--Gu-r-r-r-r-r ...
-Ye young.... I’ll ... G-r-r-r-r-r ... At ’em, Rover! Kill ’em, Rover!
-Eat ’em, Rover! Ye young ... I’ll.... Gr-r--r-r-r!”
-
-The Outlaws awaited no explanation. Like so many flashes of lightning
-they were through the hole in the hedge and already half way to the
-stile.
-
-After them with little gasps of “By Jove! I say, you know!” panted the
-languid aristocrat. Seeing Rover behind him he shed his languidness
-and sprinted as he had never sprinted in his aristocratic life before.
-Rover pursued them to the stile then returned thoughtfully chewing a
-piece of the aristocratic nether garments.
-
-The native Indian at the maternal scream had taken to its heels, flying
-swiftly round the field by the hedge, closely pursued by the irate
-maternal person. Farmer Jenks, seeing the other victims had escaped,
-turned to the pursuit of Mrs. Bott with a roar of fury. In a few
-minutes the native Indian had found another hole in the hedge and was
-well on its way to its home--a little flying black and white streaked
-figure.
-
-Mrs. Bott, discovering suddenly that she was being pursued by a
-ferocious man, sat down in the middle of the field and began to have
-hysterics....
-
-
-V
-
-The Outlaws reassembled in the lane. They had changed into their normal
-clothes and (partially) removed the blacking. Washing it, as Ginger
-remarked, only seemed to spread it. It retreated from the centres of
-their faces to their hair and necks. They were extremely weary and
-extremely hot.
-
-The sun still beat down upon the world unmercifully.
-
-They surveyed sadly the gains of the afternoon--one sixpence and two
-pennies. They had lost the other penny and the halfpenny on their
-flight from the field.
-
-“Eightpence,” said Ginger bitterly, “sim’ly wore ourselves out over it
-an’ it’s only made eightpence. What can we do with eightpence? Kin’ly
-tell me that?”
-
-It was William, his hair standing up like black smeared spikes around
-his earnest red and black face, who told him.
-
-“We can jolly well get a twopenny glass of lemonade each,” he said.
-“Come on.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-“THE HAUNTED HOUSE”
-
-
-“Well, you jus’ tell me,” demanded William, “you jus’ give me one
-reason why we shun’t dig for gold.”
-
-“’Cause we shan’t find any,” said Douglas simply.
-
-“How d’you know?” said William the ever-hopeful, “how d’you know we
-shan’t? You ever tried? You ever dug for gold? D’you know anyone what’s
-ever dug for gold? Well, then,” triumphantly, “how d’you _know_ we
-shan’t find any?”
-
-“_That’s_ ’cause why,” said Douglas with equal triumph, “’cause no
-one’s ever _done_ it ... ’cause they’d of done it if there’d been any
-chance....”
-
-“They didn’t think of it,” said William impatiently. “They sim’ly
-didn’t think of it. In the fields an’ woods f’rinstance--no one can
-ever of dug there an’ f’all you know it’s _full_ of gold an’ jewels an’
-things. How can anyone _tell_ till they’ve tried diggin’. People in
-England sim’ly didn’t _think_ of it--that’s all.”
-
-“All right,” said Douglas, tiring of the argument. “I don’t mind
-diggin’ a bit an’ tryin’.”
-
-“You can’t tell it at once--gold,” said William importantly. “You’ve
-gotter wash it in water an’ then it shows up sud’nly. So we’d better
-start diggin’ by some water.”
-
-They began operations the next morning by the pond, and had dug
-patiently for two hours before they were chased furiously from the
-spot by Farmer Jenks and a dog and a shower of sticks and stones. The
-washing of the soil had been the only part of the proceeding they had
-really enjoyed and a good deal of the resultant mud still adhered to
-their persons. They wandered down the road.
-
-“Well, we’ve not found much gold yet, have we?” said Douglas
-sarcastically.
-
-“D’you think the gold diggers in--in----” William’s geography was
-rather weak, so he hastily slurred over the precise locality--“anyway,
-d’you think the gold diggers found it in one morning? I bet it takes
-weeks an’ weeks.”
-
-“Well, ’f you think I’m goin’ to go on diggin’ for weeks an’ weeks, I’m
-not!” said Douglas firmly.
-
-“Well, where can we find some more water to dig by, anyway?” said
-Ginger the practical.
-
-“It’s a silly idea diggin’ by water. I bet _I’d_ see gold in the earth
-if there was any without washin’ it,” said Henry.
-
-“An’ I bet you wun’t,” said William indignantly, “I’ve been readin’
-tales about it, an’ that’s what it says. D’you think you’re cleverer
-than all the gold diggers in--in--in those places?”
-
-“Yes, I do, ’f they can’t see gold without washin’ it,” said Henry.
-
-“Where’s some more water, anyway?” said Ginger again plaintively.
-
-They were passing an old house in a large garden. The house had
-been empty for more than a year because the last owner had died in
-mysterious circumstances, but that fact did not affect the Outlaws
-in any way. A stream flowed through the overgrown, neglected garden.
-William peered through the hedge.
-
-“Water!” he called excitedly. “Come on, an’ dig for gold here.”
-
-Led by William they scrambled through the hedge and trampled gleefully
-over the grass of the lawn that grew almost as high as their waists.
-
-“Jus’ like a jungle!” shouted William. “Now we _can_ imagine we’re
-in--in--in real gold diggin’ parts.”
-
-They dug industriously for half an hour. William had a spade,
-“borrowed” from the gardener. (The gardener was at that minute hunting
-for it through toolhouse and greenhouse and garden. His thoughts were
-already turning William-wards in impotent fury). Ginger had a coal
-shovel with a hole in it rescued from the dust-bin. Henry had a small
-wooden spade abstracted from his little sister when her attention was
-engaged elsewhere, and Douglas had a piece of wood. They threw every
-spadeful of earth into the stream and churned it about with their
-spades.
-
-“Seems a silly idea to _me!_” objected Henry again. “Jus’ makin’ _mud_
-of it! Seems to me you’re more likely to _lose_ the gold, chuckin’ it
-into the water every time. I shun’t wonder ’f we’ve lost lots already,
-sinkin’ down to the bottom among the pebbles. We’ve not found much,
-anyway.”
-
-“Well, I tell you it’s the right _way_,” said William impatiently.
-“It’s the way they _do_. I’ve _read_ it. If it wasn’t the right way
-they wun’t do it, would they? D’you think the gold diggers out in--out
-in those places would _do_ it if it wasn’t _right?_”
-
-“Well, I’m gettin’ a bit tired of it anyway,” said Henry.
-
-He voiced the general opinion. Even William’s enthusiasm was waning. It
-seemed a very hot and muddy way of getting gold ... and it didn’t even
-seem to get any.
-
-Douglas had already laid aside his sodden stick and wandered up to the
-house. He was pressing his nose against a dirty, cracked window pane.
-Suddenly he shouted excitedly.
-
-“I say ... a _rat_ ... there’s a _rat_ in this room!”
-
-The Outlaws gladly threw away their spades and rushed to the window.
-There was certainly a rat. He sat up upon his hind legs and trimmed his
-whiskers, staring at them impudently. All thought of gold left the
-gold diggers.
-
-“Open the window!”
-
-“_Catch_ him!”
-
-“Gettim! Crumbs! Gettim!”
-
-The window actually did open. With a yell of joy William raised it and
-half-rolled, half-climbed over the sill into the room, followed by the
-Outlaws, uttering wild war whoops. After one stricken glance at them
-the rat disappeared down his hole....
-
-But the Outlaws were thrilled by the house. They tramped about the
-wooden floors in the empty re-echoing rooms--they slid down the dirty
-balusters--they found a hole in a floor and delightedly tore up all the
-rotten boards around it--they explored the bedrooms and the cistern
-loft and the filthy, airless cellars--they met four rats and chased
-them with deafening shouts.
-
-They were drunk with delight. Their hands and faces were covered with
-dust and their hair full of cobwebs. Then William and Ginger claimed
-the upstairs as their castle and Henry and Douglas charged from below
-and they all rolled downstairs in a mass of arms and legs and cobwebs.
-Finally they formed a procession and marched from room to room,
-stamping with all their might on the wooden floors and singing lustily
-in their strong and inharmonious voices. They had entirely forgotten
-their former avocation of gold digging.
-
-“I say,” said William at last, hot and dirty and breathless and happy,
-“it’d be jus’ the place for a meeting place, wun’t it? Better than the
-ole barn.”
-
-“Yes, but we’d have to be quieter,” said Ginger, “or else people’ll be
-hearin’ us an’ makin’ a fuss like what they always do.”
-
-“All right!” said William sternly, “you’ve been makin’ more noise than
-anyone.”
-
-“An’ let’s keep at the back,” said Henry, “or ole Miss Hatherly’ll be
-seein’ us out of her window an’ comin’ in interferin’.”
-
-William knew Miss Hatherly, whose house overlooked the front of the
-empty house. He had good cause to know her. Robert was deeply enamoured
-of Marion, Miss Hatherly’s niece, and Miss Hatherly disapproved of
-Robert because he had no money and was still at college and rode a very
-noisy motor cycle and dropped cigarette ash on her carpets and never
-wiped his boots and frightened her canary. She disapproved of William
-still more and for reasons too numerous to state.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The empty house became the regular meeting place of the Outlaws, and
-the old barn was deserted. They always entered cautiously by a hole
-in the garden hedge, first looking up and down the road to be sure
-that no one saw them. The house served many purposes besides that of
-meeting place. It was a smugglers’ den, a castle, a desert island, a
-battlefield, and an Indian Camp.
-
-It was William, of course, who suggested the midnight feast and the
-idea was received with eager joy by the others. The next night they all
-got up and dressed when the rest of their households were in bed.
-
-William climbed down the pear tree which grew right up to his bedroom
-window, Ginger got out of the bathroom window and crawled along the
-garden wall to the gate, Douglas and Henry got out of the downstairs
-windows. All were athrill with the spirit of adventure. They would
-not have been surprised to meet a Red Indian in full war paint, or a
-smuggler with eye patch and daggers, or a herd of lions and tigers--or
-even--despite their scorn of fairy tales--a witch with a cat and
-broomstick walking along the moonlit road. William had brought his
-pistol and a good supply of caps in case they met any robbers.
-
-“I know it wun’t _kill_ ’em,” he admitted, “but the bang’d make ’em
-think it was a real one and scare ’em off. It makes a fine bang. Not
-that I’m _frightened_ of ’em,” he added hastily.
-
-Ginger had brought a stick which he thought would be useful for killing
-snakes. He had a vague idea that all roads were infested by deadly
-snakes at night. They entered the house, disturbing several rats who
-fled at their approach.
-
-They sat around a stubby candle-end thoughtfully provided by Henry.
-They ate sardines and buns and cheese and jam and cakes and dessicated
-cocoanut on the dusty floor in the empty room whose paper hung in
-cobwebby strands from the wall, while rats squeaked indignantly behind
-the wainscoting, and the moon, pale with surprise, peeped in at the
-dirty uncurtained window. They munched in happy silence and drank
-lemonade and liquorice water provided by William.
-
-“Let’s do it to-morrow, too,” said Henry as they rose to depart, and
-the proposal was eagerly agreed to.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Miss Hatherly was a member of the Society for the Encouragement of
-Higher Thought. The Society for the Encouragement of Higher Thought had
-exhausted nearly every branch of Higher Thought and had almost been
-driven to begin again at Sublimity or Relativity. (They didn’t want to
-because in spite of a meeting about each they were all still doubtful
-as to what they meant.)
-
-But last week someone had suggested Psychical Revelation, and they had
-had quite a lively meeting. Miss Sluker had a cousin whose wife thought
-she had heard a ghost. Miss Sluker, who was conscientious, added that
-the cousin’s wife had never been quite sure and had admitted that it
-might have been a mouse. Mrs. Moote had an aunt who had dreamed of her
-sister and the next day her sister had found a pair of spectacles which
-she had lost for weeks. But no one else had any psychic experience to
-record.
-
-“We must have another meeting and all collect data,” said the President
-brightly.
-
-“What’s ‘data’?” said little Miss Simky to her neighbour in a mystified
-whisper.
-
-“It’s the French for ghost story,” said the neighbour.
-
-“Oh!” said little Miss Simky, satisfied.
-
-The next meeting was at Miss Hatherly’s house.
-
-The “data” were not very extensive. Miss Euphemia Barney had discovered
-that her uncle had died on the same day of the month on which he had
-been born, but after much discussion it was decided that this, though
-interesting, was not a psychic experience. Miss Whatte spoke next. She
-said that her uncle’s photograph had fallen from its hook exactly five
-weeks to the day after his death. They were moving the furniture, she
-added, and someone had just dropped the piano, but still ... it was
-certainly data.
-
-“I’m afraid I’ve no personal experience to record,” said little Miss
-Simky, “but I’ve read some very exciting datas in magazines and such
-like, but I’m afraid they won’t count.”
-
-Then Miss Hatherly, trembling with eagerness, spoke.
-
-“I have a very important revelation to make,” she said. “I have
-discovered that Colonel Henks’ old house is haunted.”
-
-There was a breathless silence. The eyes of the members of the Society
-for the Encouragement of Higher Thought almost fell through their
-horn-rimmed spectacles on to the floor.
-
-“_Haunted!_” they screamed in chorus, and little Miss Simky clung to
-her neighbour in terror.
-
-“Listen!” said Miss Hatherly. “The house is empty, yet I have heard
-voices and footsteps--the footsteps resembling Colonel Henks’. Last
-night,”--the round-eyed, round-mouthed circle drew nearer--“last night
-I heard them most distinctly at midnight, and I firmly believe that
-Colonel Henks’ spirit is trying to attract my attention. I believe that
-he has a message for me.”
-
-Little Miss Simky gave a shrill scream and was carried to the
-dining-room to have hysterics in comfort among the wool mats and
-antimacassars.
-
-“To-night I shall go there,” said Miss Hatherly, and the seekers after
-Higher Thought screamed again.
-
-“_Don’t_, dear,” said Miss Euphemia Barney. “Oh--it sounds
-so--_unsafe_--and do you think it’s _quite_ proper?”
-
-“Proper?” said Miss Hatherly indignantly. “Surely there can be no
-impropriety in a spirit?”
-
-“Er--no, dear--of course, you’re right,” murmured Miss Euphemia Barney,
-flinching under Miss Hatherly’s eye.
-
-“I shall go to-night,” said Miss Hatherly again with one more scathing
-glance at Miss Euphemia Barney, “and I shall receive the message. I
-want you all to meet me here this time to-morrow and I will report my
-experience.”
-
-The Society for the Encouragement of Higher Thought expostulated, but
-finally acquiesced.
-
-“What a _heroine!_ How _brave!_ How _psychic!_” they murmured as they
-went homewards.
-
-“What a thrilling data it will make,” said little Miss Simky, who had
-now recovered from her hysterics and was feeling quite cheerful.
-
- * * * * *
-
-William was creeping downstairs. It was too windy for him to use
-his pear tree and he was going out by way of the dining-room window.
-He was dressed in an overcoat over his pyjamas and he held in his
-arms ten small apples which were his contribution to the feast and
-which he had secretly abstracted from the loft during the day.
-Bang!--rattle--rattle--rattle!---- Three of them escaped his encircling
-arms and dropped noisily from stair to stair.
-
-[Illustration: THE OUTLAWS STARED AT EACH OTHER, AND THEIR HAIR STOOD
-ON END. “A GHOST!” WHISPERED HENRY WITH CHATTERING TEETH.]
-
-“Crumbs!” muttered William aghast.
-
-No one, however, appeared to have heard. The house was still silent and
-sleeping. William gathered up his three apples and dropped two more in
-the process--fortunately upon the mat. He looked round anxiously. His
-arms seemed inadequate for ten apples, but he had promised ten apples
-for the feast and he must provide them. His pockets were already full
-of biscuits.
-
-He looked round the moonlit hall. Ah, Robert’s “overflow bag!” It was
-on one of the chairs. Robert had been staying with a friend and had
-returned late that night. He had taken his suit case upstairs and flung
-the small and shabby bag that he called his “overflow bag” down on a
-chair. It was still there.
-
-Good! It would do to hold the apples. William opened it. There were a
-few things inside, but William couldn’t stay to take them out. There
-was plenty of room for the apples anyway. He shoved them in, took up
-his bag, and made his way to the dining-room window.
-
-[Illustration: “SPEAK!” A LOUD AND VIBRANT VOICE CALLED SUDDENLY.
-“SPEAK! GIVE ME YOUR MESSAGE!”]
-
- * * * * *
-
-The midnight feast was in full swing. Henry had forgotten to bring the
-candles, Douglas was half asleep, Ginger was racked by gnawing internal
-pains as the result of the feast of the night before, and William was
-distrait, but otherwise all was well.
-
-Someone had (rather misguidedly) given William a camera the day before
-and his thoughts were full of it. He had taken six snapshots and was
-going to develop them to-morrow. He had sold his bow and arrows to a
-class-mate to buy the necessary chemicals. As he munched the apples
-and cheesecakes and chocolate cream and pickled onions and currants
-provided for the feast he was in imagination developing and fixing
-his snapshots. He’d never done it before. He thought he’d enjoy it.
-It would be so jolly and messy--watery stuff to slosh about in little
-basins and that kind of thing.
-
-Suddenly, as they munched and lazily discussed the rival merits of
-catapults and bows and arrows (Ginger had just swopped his bow and
-arrows for a catapult), there came through the silent empty house the
-sound of the opening of the front door. The Outlaws stared at each
-other with crumby mouths wide open--steps were now ascending the front
-stairs.
-
-“Speak!” called suddenly a loud and vibrant voice from the middle of
-the stairs, which made the Outlaws start almost out of their skins.
-“Speak! Give me your message.”
-
-The hair of the Outlaws stood on end.
-
-“A ghost!” whispered Henry with chattering teeth.
-
-“Criky!” said William, “let’s get out.”
-
-They crept silently out of the further door, down the back stairs, out
-of the window, and fled with all their might down the road.
-
-Meanwhile, upstairs, Miss Hatherly first walked majestically into the
-closed door and then fell over Robert’s “overflow bag,” which the
-Outlaws had forgotten in their panic.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Robert went to see his beloved the next day and to reassure her of
-his undying affection. She yawned several times in the course of
-his speech. She was beginning to find Robert’s devotion somewhat
-monotonous. She was not of a constant nature. Neither was Robert.
-
-“I say,” she said interrupting him as he was telling her for the tenth
-time that he had thought of her every minute of the day, and dreamed of
-her every minute of the night, and that he’d made up a lot more poetry
-about her but had forgotten to bring it, “do come indoors. They’re
-having some sort of stunt in the drawing-room--Aunt and the High
-Thinkers, you know. I’m not quite sure what it is--something psychic,
-she said, but anyway it ought to be amusing.”
-
-Rather reluctantly Robert followed her into the drawing-room where the
-Higher Thinkers were assembled. The Higher Thinkers looked coldly at
-Robert. He wasn’t much thought of in high-thinking circles.
-
-There was an air of intense excitement in the room as Miss Hatherly
-rose to speak.
-
-“I entered the haunted house,” she began in a low, quivering voice,
-“and at once I heard--VOICES!” Miss Simky clung in panic to Miss
-Sluker. “I proceeded up the stairs and I heard--FOOTSTEPS!” Miss
-Euphemia Barney gave a little scream. “I went on undaunted.” The Higher
-Thinkers gave a thrilled murmur of admiration. “And suddenly all was
-silent, but I felt a--PRESENCE! It led me--led me along a passage--I
-FELT it! It led me to a room----” Miss Simky screamed again. “And in
-the room I found THIS!”
-
-With a dramatic gesture she brought out Robert’s “overflow bag.”
-“I have not yet investigated it. I wished to do so first in your
-presence.” (“How _Noble!_” murmured Mrs. Moote.) “I feel sure that this
-is what Colonel Henks has been trying to show me. I am convinced that
-this will throw light upon the mystery of his death--I am now going to
-open it.”
-
-“If it’s human remains,” quavered Miss Simky, “I shall _faint_.”
-
-With a determined look, Miss Hatherly opened the bag. From it she
-brought out first a pair of faded and very much darned blue socks,
-next a shirt with a large hole in it, next a bathing suit, and lastly a
-pair of very grimy white flannel trousers.
-
-The Higher Thinkers looked bewildered. But Miss Hatherly was not
-daunted.
-
-“They’re clues!” she said, “clues--if only we can piece them together
-properly; they must have some meaning. Ah, here’s a note-book--this
-will explain everything.”
-
-She opened the note-book and began to read:
-
- “Oh, Marion, my lady fair,
- Has eyes of blue and golden hair.
- Her heart of gold is kind and true,
- She is the sweetest girl you ever knew.
- But oh, a dragon guards this jewel
- A hideous dragon, foul and cruel,
- The ugliest old thing you ever did see,
- Is Marion’s aunt Miss Hatherly.”
-
-“These socks are both marked ‘Robert Brown’,” suddenly squealed Miss
-Sluker, who had been examining the “clues.”
-
-Miss Hatherly gave a scream of rage and turned to the corner where
-Robert had been.
-
-But Robert had vanished.
-
-When Robert saw his “overflow bag” he had turned red.
-
-When he saw his socks he had turned purple.
-
-When he saw his shirt he had turned green.
-
-When he saw his trousers he had turned white.
-
-When he saw his note-book he had turned yellow.
-
-When Miss Hatherly began to read he muttered something about feeling
-faint and crept unostentatiously out of the window. Marion followed him.
-
-“Well,” she said sternly, “you’ve made a nice mess of everything,
-haven’t you? What on earth have you been doing?”
-
-“I can’t think what you thought of those socks,” said Robert hoarsely,
-“all darned in different coloured wool--I never wear them. I don’t know
-why they were in the bag.”
-
-“I didn’t think anything at all about them,” she snapped.
-
-They were walking down the road towards Robert’s house.
-
-“And the shirt,” he went on in a hollow voice, “with that big hole in
-it. I don’t know what you’ll think of my things. I just happened to
-have torn the shirt. I really never wear things like that.”
-
-“Oh, do shut _up_ about your things. I don’t care what you wear. But
-I’m _sick_ with you for writing soppy poetry about me for those asses
-to read,” she said fiercely. “And why did you give her your bag, you
-loony?”
-
-“I didn’t, Marion,” said Robert miserably. “Honestly I didn’t. It’s a
-_mystery_ to me how she got it. I’ve been hunting for it high and low
-all to-day. It’s simply a _mystery!_”
-
-“Oh, do stop saying that. What are you going to do about it? That’s the
-point.”
-
-“I’m going to commit suicide,” said Robert gloomily. “I feel there’s
-nothing left to live for now you’re turning against me.”
-
-“I don’t believe you _could_,” said Marion aggressively. “How are you
-going to do it?”
-
-“I shall drink poison.”
-
-“What poison? I don’t believe you know what _are_ poisons. _What_
-poison?”
-
-“Er--prussic acid,” said Robert.
-
-“You couldn’t get it. They wouldn’t sell it to you.”
-
-“People _do_ get poisons,” Robert said indignantly. “I’m always reading
-of people taking poisons.”
-
-“Well, they’ve got to have more sense than you,” said Marion
-crushingly. “They’re not the sort of people that leave their bags and
-soppy poems all over the place for other people to find.”
-
-They had reached Robert’s house and were standing just beneath
-William’s window.
-
-“I know heaps of poisons,” said Robert with dignity. “I’m not going to
-tell you what I’m going to take. I’m going to----”
-
-At that moment William, who had been (not very successfully) fixing his
-snapshots and was beginning to “clear up,” threw the contents of his
-fixing bath out of the window with a careless flourish. They fell upon
-Robert and Marion. For a minute they were both speechless with surprise
-and solution of sodium hyposulphate. Then Marion said furiously:
-
-“You _brute!_ I hate you!”
-
-“Oh, I _say_,” gasped Robert. “It’s not my fault, Marion. I don’t know
-what it is. Honestly _I_ didn’t do it----”
-
-Some of the solution had found its way into Robert’s mouth and he was
-trying to eject it as politely as possible.
-
-“It came from your beastly house,” said Marion angrily. “And it’s
-_ruined_ my hat and I _hate_ you and I’ll never speak to you again.”
-
-She turned on her heel and walked off, mopping the back of her neck
-with a handkerchief as she went.
-
-Robert stared at her unrelenting back till she was out of sight, then
-went indoors. Ruined her hat indeed? What was a hat, anyway? It had
-ruined his _suit_--simply _ruined_ it. And how had the old cat got his
-bag he’d like to know. He wouldn’t mind betting a quid that that little
-wretch William had had something to do with it. He always had.
-
-He decided not to commit suicide after all. He decided to live for
-years and years and years to make the little wretch’s life a misery to
-him--if he could!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-WILLIAM THE MATCH-MAKER
-
-
-William was feeling disillusioned. He had received, as a birthday
-present, a book entitled “Engineering Explained to Boys,” and had read
-it in bed at midnight by the light of a lamp which he had “borrowed”
-from his elder brother’s photographic apparatus for the purpose. The
-book had convinced William that it would be perfectly simple with the
-aid of a little machinery, to turn a wooden packing case into a motor
-boat. He spent two days on the work. He took all the elastic that
-he could find in his mother’s work drawer. He disembowelled all the
-clockwork toys that he possessed. To supplement this he added part of
-the works of the morning-room clock. He completely soaked himself and
-his clothes in oil. Finally the thing was finished and William, stern
-and scowling and tousled and oily, deposited the motor boat on the edge
-of the pond, stepped into it and pushed off boldly. It shot into the
-middle of the pond and promptly sank.... So did William. He returned
-home wet and muddy and oily and embittered, to meet a father who, with
-a grown-up’s lack of sense of proportion, was waxing almost lyrical
-over the disappearance of the entrails of the morning-room clock.
-
-It had been for William a thoroughly unpleasant day. He was still
-dwelling moodily on the memory of it.
-
-“How was I to know the book was wrong?” he muttered indignantly as
-he walked down the road, his hands deep in his pockets. “Blamin’ me
-because the book was wrong!”
-
-If William had not been in this mood of self-pity he would never have
-succumbed to the overtures of Violet Elizabeth. William at normal times
-disliked Violet Elizabeth. He disliked her curls and pink-and-white
-complexion and blue eyes and lisp and frills and flounces and
-imperiousness and tears. His ideal of little-girlhood was Joan, dark
-haired and dark-eyed and shy. But Joan was away on her holidays and
-William’s sense of grievance demanded sympathy--feminine sympathy for
-preference.
-
-“Good morning, William,” said Violet Elizabeth.
-
-“G’ mornin’,” said William without discontinuing his moody scowl at the
-road and his hunched-up onward march.
-
-Violet Elizabeth joined him and trotted by his side.
-
-“You feelin’ sad, William?” she said sweetly.
-
-“Anyone’d feel sad,” burst out William. “How was I to know a book din’
-know what it was talkin’ about? You’d think a book’d know, wun’t you?
-Blamin’ me because a book din’ know what it was talkin’ about! ’S’nough
-to make anyone feel sad! Well, you’d think a book about machinery’d
-know jus’ a bit about machinery, wun’t you?... Sinkin’ me in a mucky
-ole pond an’ then when you’d think they’d be a bit sorry for me, goin’
-on’s if it was _my_ fault, ’s if _I’d_ wrote the book!”
-
-This somewhat involved account of his wrongs seemed to satisfy Violet
-Elizabeth. She slipped a hand in his and for once William, the stern
-unbending despiser of girls, did not repel her.
-
-“_Paw_ William!” said Violet Elizabeth sweetly. “I’m tho thorry!”
-
-Although William kept his stern frown still fixed on the road and gave
-no sign of his feelings, the dulcet sympathy of Violet Elizabeth was
-balm to his wounded soul.
-
-“Play gamth with me,” went on Violet Elizabeth soothingly.
-
-William looked up and down the road. No one was in sight. After all,
-one must do something.
-
-“What sort of games?” said William suspiciously transferring his stern
-frown from the road to Violet Elizabeth and, contrary to his usual
-custom, forbearing to mimic her lisp.
-
-“Play houth, William,” said Violet Elizabeth eagerly. “Ith suth a nith
-game. You an’ me be married.”
-
-“Red Indians an’ you a squaw?” said William with a gleam of interest.
-
-“No,” said Violet Elizabeth with distaste, “_not_ Red Indianth.”
-
-“Pirates?” suggested William.
-
-“Oh _no_, William,” said Violet Elizabeth. “They’re tho _nathty_. Juth
-a nordinary thort of married. You go to the offith and me go thopping
-and to matineeth and thee to the dinner and that sort of thing.”
-
-William’s dignity revolted from the idea.
-
-“’F you think I’d play a game like that----” he began coldly.
-
-“Pleath do, William,” said Violet Elizabeth in a quivering voice. The
-blue eyes, fixed pleadingly on William, swam suddenly with tears.
-Violet Elizabeth exerted her sway over her immediate circle of friends
-and relations solely by this means. Even at that tender age she
-possessed the art, so indispensable to her sex, of making her blue eyes
-swim with tears at will. She had, on more than one occasion, found that
-it was the only suasion to which the stern and lordly William would
-yield.
-
-He looked at her in dismay.
-
-“All right,” he said hastily. “All right. Come on!”
-
-After all there was nothing else to do and one might as well do this as
-nothing.
-
-Together they went into the field where was the old barn.
-
-“Thith muth be the houth,” said Violet Elizabeth, her tears gone, her
-pink and white face wreathed in smiles. “An’ now you go to the offith,
-darlin’ William, an’ I’ll thee to thingth at home. Good-bye an’ work
-hard an’ make a lot of money ’cauth I want a loth of new cloth. I’ve
-thimply nothing fit to wear. The offith ith the corner of the field.
-You thtay there an’ count a hundred and then come back to your dinner
-an’ bring me a box of chocolath an’ a large bunch of flowerth.”
-
-“’F you _think_----” began William, hoarse with indignant surprise.
-
-“I don’ mean real onth, William,” said Violet Elizabeth meekly. “I mean
-pretend onth. Thticks or grath or anything’ll do.”
-
-“Or _won’t!_” said William sternly. “’F you think I’m goin’ even to
-_pretend_ to give presents to an ole girl----!”
-
-“But I’m your wife, William,” said Violet Elizabeth. There was the
-first stage--a suspicion of moisture--of the swimming tears in the blue
-eyes and William hastily retreated.
-
-“All right, I’ll _see_,” he capitulated. “G’bye.”
-
-“Aren’t you going to kith me?” said Violet Elizabeth plaintively.
-
-“No,” said William, “I won’t kiss you. I’m ’fraid of givin’ you some
-sort of germ. I don’t think I’d better. G’bye.”
-
-He departed hastily for the corner of the field before the tears had
-time to swim. He was already regretting the rash impulse that had made
-him stoop to this unmanly game. He waited in the corner of the field
-and counted fifty. He could see Violet Elizabeth cleaning the window
-of the barn with a small black handkerchief, then sallying forth with
-languid dignified gait to interview imaginary trades-people.
-
-Then William suddenly espied a frog in the field beyond the hedge.
-He scrambled through in pursuit and captured it and spent a pleasant
-quarter of an hour teaching it tricks. He taught it, as he fondly
-imagined, to know and love him and to jump over his hands. It showed
-more aptitude at jumping over his hands than at knowing and loving him.
-It responded so well to his teaching in jumping that it finally managed
-to reach the ditch where it remained in discreet hiding from its late
-discoverer and trainer.
-
-William then caught sight of an old nest in the hedge and went
-to investigate it. He decided that it must have been a robin’s
-nest and took it to pieces to see how it was made. He came to the
-conclusion that he could make as good a one himself and considered the
-possibilities of making nests for birds during the winter and putting
-them ready for them in the hedges in the Spring. Then he noticed that
-the ditch at the further end of the field was full and went there to
-see if he could find any water creatures. He soaked his boots and
-stockings, caught a newt, but, having no receptacle in which to keep it
-(other than his cap which seemed to hold water quite well but only for
-a short time) he reluctantly returned it to its native element.
-
-Then he remembered his wife and returned slowly and not very eagerly to
-the barn.
-
-Violet Elizabeth was seated in the corner on an old box in a state of
-majestic sulks.
-
-“You’ve been at the offith for more’n a day. You’ve been there for
-monthth and yearth an’ I hate you!”
-
-“Well, I forgot all about you,” William excused himself, “An’ anyway
-I’d a lot of work to do at the office----”
-
-“An’ I kept waiting an’ waiting and thinking you’d come back every
-minute and you didn’t!”
-
-“Well, how could I?” said William. “How could I come back every
-minute? How could anyone come back every minute? And anyway,” as he saw
-Violet Elizabeth working up her all-powerful tears, “it’s lunch time
-and I’m going home.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William’s mother was out to lunch and Ethel was her most objectionable
-and objecting. She objected to William’s hair and to William’s hands
-and to William’s face.
-
-“Well, I’ve washed ’em and I’ve brushed it,” said William firmly. “I
-don’ see what you can do more with faces an’ hair than wash’ em an’
-brush it. ’F you don’ like the colour they wash an’ brush to I can’t
-help that. It’s the colour they was born with. It’s their nat’ral
-colour. I can’t do more than wash ’em an’ brush it.”
-
-“Yes, you can,” said Ethel unfeelingly. “You can go and wash them and
-brush it again.”
-
-Under the stern eye of his father who had lowered his paper for the
-express purpose of displaying his stern eye William had no alternative
-but to obey.
-
-“Some people,” he remarked bitterly to the stair carpet as he went
-upstairs, “don’ care how often they make other people go up an’
-downstairs, tirin’ themselves out. I shun’t be surprised ’f I die a
-good lot sooner than I would have done with all this walkin’ up an’
-downstairs tirin’ myself out--an’ all because my face an’ hands an’
-hair’s nat’rally a colour she doesn’t like!”
-
-Ethel was one of William’s permanent grievances against Life.
-
-But after lunch he felt cheered. He went down to the road and there
-was Joan--Joan, dark-eyed and dark-haired and adorable--back from her
-holidays.
-
-“Hello, William!” she said.
-
-William’s stern freckled countenance relaxed almost to a smile.
-
-“Hello, Joan,” he replied.
-
-“What you doing this afternoon, William?”
-
-“Nothing particular,” replied William graciously.
-
-“Let’s go to the old barn and see if Ginger or any of the others are
-there. I’m so glad to be back, William. I hated being away. I kept
-thinking about you and the others and wondering what you were doing ...
-you especially.”
-
-William felt cheered and comforted. Joan generally had a soothing
-effect upon William....
-
-As they neared the stile that led to the field, however, William’s
-spirits dropped, for there, looking her most curled and cleaned and
-possessive, was Violet Elizabeth.
-
-“Come on, William, and play houth again,” she called imperiously.
-
-“Well, an’ I’m not goin’ to,” said William bluntly. “An’ I’m not goin’
-to be married to you any more an’ ’f I play house I’m goin’ to have
-Joan.”
-
-“You can’t do that,” said Violet Elizabeth calmly.
-
-“Can’t do what?”
-
-“Can’t change your wife. Ith divorth if you do an’ you get hung for it.”
-
-This nonplussed William for a moment. Then he said:
-
-“I don’ believe it. You don’ know. You’ve never been married so you
-don’ know anything about it.”
-
-“I _do_ know. Hereth Ginger and Douglath and Hubert Lane. You athk
-them.”
-
-Ginger and Douglas and Hubert Lane, all loudly and redolently sucking
-Bulls’ Eyes, were coming down the road. Hubert Lane was a large fat
-boy with protruding eyes, a superhuman appetite and a morbid love
-of Mathematics who was only tolerated as a companion by Ginger and
-Douglas on account of the bag of Bulls’ Eyes he carried in his pocket.
-He had lately much annoyed the Outlaws--by haunting the field they
-considered theirs and, in spite of active and passive discouragement,
-thrusting his unwelcome comradeship upon them.
-
-[Illustration: “I SAY, MR. MARCH,” YELLED WILLIAM, “IS IT DIVORCE OR
-BIGAMY IF YOU CHANGE YOUR WIFE?”]
-
-“Hi!” William hailed them loudly from the top of the stile. “Is it
-divorce if you change your wife an’ do you get hung for it? She says it
-is! ’S all _she_ knows!”
-
-The second trio gathered round the first to discuss the matter.
-
-“’S called bigamy not divorce,” said Ginger authoritatively. “I know
-’cause our cousin’s gardener did it an’ you get put in prison.”
-
-“’S _not_ big--what you said,” said Violet Elizabeth firmly. “Ith
-divorth. I know ’cauth a friend of mine’th uncle did it. Tho _there!_”
-
-The rival champions of divorce and bigamy glared at each other and the
-others watched with interest.
-
-“D’you think,” said Ginger, “that I don’ know what my own cousin’s
-gardener did?”
-
-“An’ d’you think,” said Violet Elizabeth, “that I don’t know what my
-own friendth uncle did?”
-
-“Here’s Mr. March comin’,” said Douglas. “Let’s ask him.”
-
-[Illustration: “HA, HA!” LAUGHED MR. MARCH. “EXCELLENT! WHICH OF YOU IS
-NOT SATISFIED WITH HIS SPOUSE?”]
-
-Mr. March was a short stumpy young man with a very bald head and short
-sight. He lived in a large house at the other end of the village and
-rather fancied himself as a wit. He was extraordinarily conceited and
-not overburdened by any superfluity of intellect.
-
-“I say, Mr. March,” yelled William as he approached. “Is it divorce or
-bigamy if you change your wife?”
-
-“An’ do you get hung for it or put in prison?” added Ginger.
-
-Mr. March threw back his head and roared.
-
-“Ha, ha!” he bellowed, “Which of you wants to change his wife? Which of
-you is not satisfied with his spouse? Excellent! Ha, ha!”
-
-He went on down the road chuckling to himself.
-
-“He’s a bit cracked,” commented Ginger in a tone of kind impartiality.
-
-“But my mother says he’s awful rich,” said Douglas.
-
-“An’ he’s gone on your sister,” said Ginger to William.
-
-“Then he _mus’_ be cracked!” said William bitterly.
-
-“Anyway,” said Violet Elizabeth. “It _ith_ divorth an’ I don’ care if
-it ithn’t. ’F you don’ play houth with me, I’ll thcream n’ thcream till
-I’m thick. I can,” she added with pride.
-
-William looked at her helplessly.
-
-“Will you play house with me, Joan?” said Hubert, who had been fixing
-admiring eyes upon Joan.
-
-“All right,” said Joan pacifically, “and we’ll live next door to you,
-William.”
-
-Violet Elizabeth had gone to prepare the barn and Joan and Hubert now
-followed her. William glared after them fiercely.
-
-“That ole Hubert,” he said indignantly, “comin’ messin’ about in our
-field! I votes we chuck him out ... jus’ sim’ly chuck him out.”
-
-“Yes,” objected Ginger, “an’ he’ll tell his mother an’ she’ll come
-fussin’ like what she did last time an’ tellin’ our fathers an’
-’zaggeratin’ all over the place.”
-
-“Well, let’s think of a plan, then,” said William.
-
-Five minutes later William approached Hubert with an unnatural
-expression of friendliness on his face. Hubert was politely asking
-Violet Elizabeth to “have a Bulls’ Eye” and Violet Elizabeth was
-obligingly taking three.
-
-“I say, Hubert,” whispered William to Hubert, “We’ve gotter a secret.
-You come over here ’n we’ll tell you.”
-
-Hubert put a Bulls’ Eye into his mouth, pocketed the packet and
-accompanied William to where Ginger and Douglas were, his goggle eyes
-still more a-goggle with excitement. Joan and Violet Elizabeth were
-busying themselves in transforming the interior of the barn into two
-semi-detached villas with great exercise of handkerchief-dusters and
-imagination.
-
-“Douglas,” whispered William confidentially, “’s found out a secret
-about this field. He got it off a witch.” Hubert was so surprised that
-his spectacles fell off. He replaced them and listened open-mouthed.
-“There’s a grass in this field that if you tread on it makes you
-invisible. Now we’re jus’ goin’ to tread about a bit to see ’f we can
-find it an’ we don’ want to leave you out of it so you can come an’
-tread about a bit with us case we find it.”
-
-Hubert was thrilled and flattered.
-
-“I bet I find it first,” he squeaked excitedly.
-
-They tramped about in silence for a few minutes. Suddenly William said
-in a voice of great concern.
-
-“I say, where’s Hubert gone.”
-
-“I’m here,” said Hubert, a shade of anxiety in his voice.
-
-William looked at him and through him.
-
-“Where’s Hubert gone?” he said again, “He was here a minute ago.”
-
-“I’m here!” said Hubert again plaintively.
-
-Ginger and Douglas looked first at and through Hubert and then all
-around the field.
-
-“Yes, he seems to have gone,” said Ginger sadly. “I’m ’fraid he mus’
-have found the grass!”
-
-“I’-I’m here!” squeaked Hubert desperately, looking rather pale.
-
-“I’ll jus’ see if he’s hidin’ over there,” said William and proceeded
-literally to walk through Hubert. Hubert got the worst of the impact
-and sat down suddenly and heavily.
-
-“Boo-hoo!” he wailed rising to his feet. He was promptly walked into by
-Ginger and sat down again with another yell.
-
-“’S mos’ mysterious where he’s got to,” said William. “Let’s call him!”
-
-They yelled “Hubert!” about the field, callously disregarding that
-youth’s sobbing replies. Whenever he rose to his feet one of them
-walked through him and he sat down again with a bump and a yell.
-
-“Did the witch say anything about makin’ them visible again?” said
-William anxiously.
-
-“No,” said Douglas sadly, “I’m ’fraid he’ll always be invisible now and
-he’ll die slow of starvation ’cause no one’ll ever see him to give him
-anything to eat.”
-
-Hubert began to bellow unrestrainedly. He rose to his feet, dodged both
-Ginger and Douglas who made a dart in his direction, and ran howling
-towards the stile.
-
-“Boo-hoo! I’m going home. Boo-hoo! I don’ wanter die!”
-
-As soon as he reached the stile, Ginger and Douglas and William gave a
-shout.
-
-“Why, _there’s_ Hubert at the stile.”
-
-Hubert ceased his tears and hung over the stile.
-
-“Can you see me now?” he said anxiously. “Am I all right now?”
-
-He wiped his tears and began to clean his spectacles and straighten his
-collar. He was a tidy boy.
-
-“Yes, Hubert,” said the Outlaws. “It’s all right now. We can see you
-now. You mus’ have jus’ trod on the grass. But it’s all right now.
-Aren’t you comin’ back to play?”
-
-Hubert placed one foot cautiously over the stile.
-
-“Ginger!” said William excitedly, “I believe he’s beginning to
-disappear again.”
-
-With a wild yell, Hubert turned and fled howling down the road.
-
-“Well, we’ve got rid of _him_,” said William complacently, “and if I’m
-not clever I don’ know who _is_!”
-
-Over-modesty was not one of William’s faults.
-
-“Well, I bet you’re not quite as clever as you _think_ you are,” said
-Ginger pugnaciously.
-
-“How’ d’you know that?” said William rising to the challenge. “How
-d’you know how clever I think I am? You mus’ think yourself jolly
-clever ’f you think you know how clever I think I am!”
-
-The discussion would have run its natural course to the physical
-conflict that the Outlaws found so exhilarating if Joan and Violet
-Elizabeth had not at this moment emerged from the barn.
-
-“You _have_ been making a noith!” said Violet Elizabeth disapprovingly.
-“Wherth the boy with the Bullth Eyth?”
-
-“Heth gonth awath,” said William unfeelingly.
-
-“I want a Bullth Eye. You’re a nathty boy to let him go away when I
-want a Bullth Eye.”
-
-“Well, you can go after himth,” said William, less afraid of her tears
-now that he was surrounded by his friends. But Violet Elizabeth was too
-angry for tears.
-
-“Yeth and I thall!” she said. “You’re a nathty rude boy an’ I don’t
-love you and I don’t want you for a huthband. I want the boy with the
-Bullth Eyth!”
-
-“What about divorce or big or whatever it is?” said William, taken
-aback by her sudden and open repudiation of him. “What about that? What
-about being hung?”
-
-“If anyone trith to hang me,” said Violet Elizabeth complacently, “I’ll
-thcream and thcream and thcream till I’m thick. I can.”
-
-Then she put out her tongue at each of the Outlaws in turn and ran
-lightly down the road after the figure of Hubert which could be seen in
-the distance.
-
-“Well, we’ve got rid of _her_ too,” said William, torn between relief
-at her departure and resentment at her scorn of him, “and she can play
-her silly games with him. I’ve had enough of them. Let’s go an’ sit on
-the stile and see who can throw stones farthest.”
-
-They sat in a row on the stile. It counted ten to hit the telegraph
-post and fifteen to reach the further edge of the opposite field.
-
-Ethel who had been to the village to do the household shopping came
-past when the game was in full swing.
-
-“I’ll tell father,” she said grimly to William. “He said you oughtn’t
-to throw stones.”
-
-William looked her up and down with his most inscrutable expression.
-
-“’F it comes to that,” he said distantly, “he said you oughtn’t to wear
-high heels.”
-
-Ethel flushed angrily, and walked on.
-
-William’s spirits rose. It wasn’t often he scored over Ethel and he
-feared that even now she would have her revenge.
-
-He watched her go down the road. Coming back along the road was Mr.
-March. As he met Ethel a deep flush and a sickly smile overspread his
-face. He stopped and spoke to her, gazing at her with a sheep-like air.
-Ethel passed on haughtily. He had recovered slightly when he reached
-the Outlaws, though traces of his flush still remained.
-
-“Well,” he said with a loud laugh, “Divorce or bigamy? Which is it to
-be? Ha, ha! Excellent!”
-
-He put his walking stick against Ginger’s middle and playfully pushed
-him off the stile backwards. Then he went on his way laughing loudly.
-
-“I said he was cracked!” said Ginger climbing back to his perch.
-
-“He’d jus’ about suit Ethel then,” said William bitterly.
-
-They sat in silence a few minutes. There was a far-away meditative look
-in William’s eyes.
-
-“I say,” he said at last, “’f Ethel married him she’d go away from our
-house and live in his, wun’t she?”
-
-“U-hum,” agreed Ginger absently as he tried to hit the second tree to
-the left of the telegraph post that counted five.
-
-“I wish there was some way of makin’ them fall in love with each
-other,” said William gloomily.
-
-“Oh, there is, William,” said Joan. “We’ve been learning it at school.
-Someone called Shakespeare wrote it. You keep saying to both of them
-that the other’s in love with them and they fall in love and marry. I
-know. We did it last term. One of them was Beatrice and I forget the
-other.”
-
-“You said it was Shakespeare,” said William.
-
-“No, he’s the one that tells about it.”
-
-“Sounds a queer sort of tale to me,” said William severely. “Couldn’t
-you write to him and get it a bit plainer what to do?”
-
-“Write to him!” jeered Ginger. “He’s dead. Fancy you not knowin’ that!
-Fancy you not knowin’ Shakespeare’s dead!”
-
-“Well, how was I to know he was dead? I can’t know everyone’s name
-what’s dead, can I? I bet there’s lots of dead folks’ names what you
-don’ know!”
-
-“Oh, do you?” said Ginger. “Well, I bet I know more dead folks’ names
-than you do!”
-
-“He said that anyway,” interposed Joan hastily and pacifically. “He
-said that if you keep on making up nice things and saying that the
-other said it about them they fall in love and marry. It must be true
-because it’s in a book.”
-
-There was a look of set purpose in William’s eyes.
-
-“It’ll take a bit of arrangin’,” was the final result of his frowning
-meditation, “but it might come off all right.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William’s part was more difficult than Joan’s. William’s part consisted
-in repeating to Ethel compliments supposed to emanate from Mr. March.
-If Ethel had had the patience to listen to them she would have realised
-that they all bore the unmistakable imprint of William’s imagination.
-
-William opened his campaign by approaching her when she was reading a
-book in the drawing-room.
-
-“I say, Ethel,” he began in a deep soulful voice, “I saw Mr. March this
-afternoon.”
-
-Ethel went on reading as if she had not heard.
-
-“He says,” continued William mournfully, sitting on the settee next
-to Ethel, “he says that you’re the apple of his life. He says that
-he loves you with a mos’ devourin’ passion. He says that you’re
-ab’s’lutely the mos’ beauteous maid he’s ever come across.”
-
-“Be quiet and let me read!” said Ethel without looking up from her book.
-
-“He says,” went on William in the same deep monotonous voice, “he says
-that he doesn’t mind your hair bein’ red though he knows some people
-think it’s ugly. That’s noble of him, you know, Ethel. He says----”
-
-Ethel rose from the settee.
-
-“If you won’t be quiet,” she said, “I’ll have to go into another room.”
-
-She went into the dining-room and, sitting down in an armchair began to
-read again.
-
-After a short interval William followed and taking the armchair
-opposite hers, continued:
-
-“He says, Ethel, that he’s deep in love with you and that he doesn’t
-mind you bein’ so bad-tempered. He likes it. Anyway he ’spects he’ll
-get used to it. He says he’ adores you jus’ like what people do on the
-pictures. He puts his hand on his stomach and rolls his eyes whenever
-he thinks of you. He says----”
-
-“Will--you--be--quiet?” said Ethel angrily.
-
-“No, but jus’ listen, Ethel,” pleaded William. “He says----”
-
-Ethel flounced out of the room. She went to the morning-room, locked
-the door, and, sitting down with her back to the window, continued
-to read. After a few minutes came the sound of the window’s being
-cautiously opened and William appeared behind her chair.
-
-“I say, Ethel, when I saw Mr. March he said----”
-
-Ethel gave a scream.
-
-“If you mention that man’s name to me once more, William, I’ll--I’ll
-tell father that you’ve been eating the grapes in the hot-house.”
-
-It was a random shot but with a boy of William’s many activities such
-random shots generally found their mark.
-
-He sighed and slowly retreated from the room by way of the window.
-
-Ethel’s attitude made his task a very difficult one....
-
- * * * * *
-
-Joan’s task was easier. Joan had free access to her father’s study and
-typewriter and Joan composed letters from Ethel to Mr. March. William
-“borrowed” some of his father’s notepaper for her and she worked
-very conscientiously, looking up the spelling of every word in the
-dictionary and re-typing every letter in which she made a mistake. She
-sent him one every day. Each one ended, “Please do not answer this or
-mention it to me and do not mind if my manner to you seems different to
-these letters. I cannot explain, but you know that my heart is full of
-love for you.”
-
-One letter had a p.s. “I would be grateful if you would give
-half-a-crown to my little brother William when next you meet him. I am
-penniless and he is such a nice good boy.”
-
-Anyone less conceited than Mr. March would have suspected the
-genuineness of the letters, but to Mr. March they seemed just such
-letters as a young girl who had succumbed to his incomparable charm
-might write.
-
-It was William who insisted on the p.s. though Joan felt that it was
-inartistic. It had effect, however. Mr. March met William on the road
-the next morning and handed him a half-crown then, with a loud guffaw
-and “Divorce or bigamy, eh?” pushed William lightly into a holly bush
-and passed on. Mr. March’s methods of endearing himself to the young
-were primitive.... But the half-crown compensated for the holly bush in
-William’s estimation. He wanted to make the p.s. a regular appendage to
-the letter but Joan firmly refused to allow it.
-
-After a week of daily letters written by Joan and daily unsuccessful
-attempts on the part of William to introduce imaginary compliments from
-Mr. March into casual conversation with Ethel, both felt that it was
-time for the dénouement.
-
-The final letter was the result of a hard morning’s work by William and
-Joan.
-
- “DEAR GEORGE (May I call you George now?),
-
- Will you meet me by the river near Fisher’s Lock to-morrow afternoon
- at three o’clock? Will you wear a red carnation and I will wear a red
- rose as gages of our love? I want to tell you how much I love you,
- though I am sure you know. Let us be married next Monday afternoon. Do
- not speak to me of this letter but just come wearing a red carnation
- and I will come wearing a red rose as gages of our love. I hope you
- will love my little brother William too. He is very fond of caramels.
-
- Yours with love
-
- ETHEL BROWN (soon I hope to be March).”
-
-The reference to William had been the subject of much discussion, but
-William had overborne Joan’s objections.
-
-“I reely only want it put because it makes it seem more nat’ral. It’s
-only nat’ral she should want him to be kind to her brother. I mean, not
-knowin’ Ethel as well as I do, he’ll _think_ it nat’ral.”
-
-The stage managing of the actual encounter was the most difficult
-part of all. Ethel’s reception of her swain’s supposed compliments
-had not been such as to make William feel that a request to meet him
-at Fisher’s Lock would be favourably received. He was feeling just a
-little doubtful about the working of Joan’s love charm in the case of
-Ethel but with his usual optimism he was hoping for the best.
-
-“Ethel,” he said at lunch. “Gladys Barker wants to see you this
-afternoon. I met her this morning.”
-
-“Did she say any time?” said Ethel.
-
-“Soon after three,” said William.
-
-“Why on earth didn’t you tell me sooner?” said Ethel.
-
-The road to Gladys Barker’s house lay by the river past Fisher’s Lock.
-
-“’S not tellin’ a story,” William informed his conscience. “I did meet
-her this mornin’ an’ I don’ know that she doesn’t want to see Ethel
-this afternoon. She prob’ly does.”
-
-About quarter to three William came in from the garden carefully
-holding a rose. He wore his most inscrutable expression.
-
-“I thought you might like to wear this, Ethel,” he said, “It goes nice
-with your dress.”
-
-Ethel was touched.
-
-“Thank you, William,” she said.
-
-She watched him as he returned to the garden, humming discordantly.
-
-She wondered if sometimes she misjudged William....
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was ten minutes past three. On the path by the river near Fisher’s
-Lock stood Mr. March with a red carnation in his button hole. Concealed
-in a tree just above his head were Ginger, Douglas, William and Joan.
-
-Down the path by the river came Ethel wearing her red rose.
-
-Mr. March started forward.
-
-“Well, little girl?” he said with roguish tenderness.
-
-Ethel stopped suddenly and stared at him in amazement.
-
-“Ah!” said Mr. March, shaking a fat finger at her, “The time has come
-to drop the mask of haughtiness. I know all now, you know, from your
-own sweet lips, I mean your own sweet pen.... I know how your little
-heart beats at the thought of your George. I know who is your ideal ...
-your beloved knight ... your all those sweet things you wrote to me.
-Now, don’t be frightened, little girl. I return your affection, but not
-Monday afternoon! I don’t think we can manage it quite as soon as that.”
-
-“Mr. March,” said Ethel, “are you ill?”
-
-“Ill, my little precious?” ogled Mr. March. “No, well, my little
-popsie! Your dear loving letters have made me well. I was so touched by
-them, little Ethelkins!... You thinking me so handsome and clever and,
-you know, I admire you, too.” He touched the red rose she was wearing
-playfully, “the gage of your love, eh?”
-
-[Illustration: “NOW, DON’T BE FRIGHTENED, LITTLE GIRL,” SAID MR. MARCH.
-“I KNOW HOW YOUR LITTLE HEART BEATS AT THE THOUGHT OF YOUR GEORGE.”
-
-“MR. MARCH!” EXCLAIMED ETHEL, “ARE YOU ILL?”]
-
-“Mr. March,” said Ethel angrily, “You must be mad. I’ve never written
-to you in my life.”
-
-“Ah,” he replied, “Do not deny the fond impeachment.” He took a bundle
-of type-written letters out of his pocket and handed them to her, “You
-have seen these before.”
-
-She took them and read them slowly one by one.
-
-“I’ve never heard such rubbish,” she said at last. “I’ve never seen the
-idiotic things before. You must be crazy.”
-
-Mr. March’s mouth fell open.
-
-“You--didn’t write them?” he said incredulously.
-
-“Of course not!” snapped Ethel. “How could you be such a fool as to
-think I did?”
-
-He considered for a minute then his expression of bewilderment gave
-place again to the roguish smile.
-
-“Ah, naughty!” he said. “She’s being very coy! I know better! I
-know----”
-
-He took her hand. Ethel snatched it back and pushed him away angrily.
-He was standing on the very edge of the river and at the push he swayed
-for a second, clutching wildly at the air, then fell with a loud splash
-into the stream.
-
-“Oh, I say, Ethel,” expostulated William from his leafy hiding place.
-“Don’t carry on like that ... drownin’ him after all the trouble we’ve
-took with him! He’s gotter lot of money an’ a nice garden an’ a big
-house. Anyone’d think you’d want to marry him ’stead of carryin’ on
-like that!”
-
-At the first sound of his voice, Ethel had gazed round open-mouthed,
-then she looked up into the tree and saw William.
-
-“You _hateful_ boy!” she cried. “I’m going straight home to tell
-father!”
-
-She turned on her heel and went off without looking back.
-
-Meanwhile Mr. March was scrambling up the bank, spitting out water and
-river weeds and (fortunately) inarticulate expletives.
-
-“I’ll have damages off someone for this!” he said as he emerged on to
-the bank. “I’ll make someone pay for this! I’ll have the law on them!
-I’ll....”
-
-He went off dripping and muttering and shaking his fist vaguely in all
-directions....
-
-Slowly the Outlaws climbed down from their tree.
-
-“Well, you’ve made a nice mess of everything!” said Ginger
-dispassionately.
-
-“I’ve took a lot of trouble tryin’ to get her married,” said William,
-“and this is how she pays me! Well, she needn’t blame me.” He looked at
-the indignant figure of his pretty nineteen-year-old sister which was
-still visible in the distance and added gloomily, “She’s turnin’ out an
-old maid an’ it’s not my fault. I’ve done my best. Seems to me she’s
-goin’ to go on livin’ in our house all her life till she dies, an’
-that’s a nice look out for me, isn’t it? Seems to me that if she won’t
-even get married when you practically fix it all up for her an’ save
-her all the trouble like this, she won’t _ever_ marry an’ she needn’t
-blame me ’cause she’s an old maid. I’ve done everythin’ I can. An’
-you,” he transferred his stern eye to Joan. “Why don’ you read books
-with a bit of _sense_ in them? This Shake man simply doesn’t know what
-he’s talkin’ about. It’s a good thing for him he _is_ dead, gettin’ us
-all into a mess like this!”
-
-“What are you goin’ to do now?” said Douglas with interest.
-
-“I’m goin’ fishin’,” said William, “an’ I don’ care if I don’t get home
-till bed time.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was a week later. The excitement and altercations and retaliations
-and dealing out of justice which had followed William’s abortive
-attempt to marry Ethel were over.
-
-Ethel had gone into the morning-room for a book. The Outlaws were
-playing in the garden outside. Their strong young voices floated in
-through the open window.
-
-“Now let’s have a change,” William was saying. “Ginger be Mr. March an’
-Joan be Ethel.... Now, begin ... go on.... Joan, come on ... walkin’
-kind of silly like Ethel ... an’ Ginger go to meet her with a soft look
-on your face.... That’s it ... now, start!”
-
-“Well, little girl?” said Ginger in a shrill affected voice. “I know
-how your little heart beats at me. I know I am your knight an’ all
-that.”
-
-“You’ve left a lot out,” said William. “You’ve left out where he said
-he wouldn’t marry her on Monday. Now you go on, Joan.”
-
-“Mr. March,” squeaked Joan in piercing hauteur, “are you mad?”
-
-“No,” corrected William. “’Are you feelin’ ill?’ comes first. Let’s
-start again an’ get it all right....”
-
-Ethel flounced out of the room and slammed the door. She found her
-mother in the dining-room darning socks.
-
-“Mother,” she said, “can’t we _do_ anything about William? Can’t we
-send him to an orphanage or anything?”
-
-“No, darling,” said Mrs. Brown calmly. “You see, for one thing, he
-isn’t an orphan.”
-
-“But he’s so _awful!_” said Ethel. “He’s so unspeakably dreadful!”
-
-“Oh, no, Ethel,” said Mrs. Brown still darning placidly. “Don’t say
-things like that about your little brother. I sometimes think that when
-William’s just had his hair cut and got a new suit on he looks quite
-sweet!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-WILLIAM’S TRUTHFUL CHRISTMAS
-
-
-William went to church with his family every Sunday morning but he did
-not usually listen to the sermon. He considered it a waste of time. He
-sometimes enjoyed singing the psalms and hymns. Any stone-deaf person
-could have told when William was singing the psalms and hymns by the
-expressions of pain on the faces of those around him. William’s singing
-was loud and discordant. It completely drowned the organ and the choir.
-Miss Barney, who stood just in front of him, said that it always gave
-her a headache for the rest of the week. William contested with some
-indignation that he had as good a right to sing in church as anyone.
-Besides there was nothing wrong with his voice ... it was just like
-everyone else’s....
-
-During the Vicar’s sermon, William either stared at the curate (William
-always scored in this game because the curate invariably began to grow
-pink and look embarrassed after about five minutes of William’s stare)
-or held a face-pulling competition with the red-haired choir boy or
-amused himself with insects, conveyed to church in a match box in his
-pocket, till restrained by the united glares of his father and mother
-and Ethel and Robert....
-
-But this Sunday, attracted by the frequent repetition of the word
-“Christmas,” William put his stag beetle back into its box and gave his
-whole attention to the Vicar’s exhortation....
-
-“What is it that poisons our whole social life?” said the Vicar
-earnestly. “What is it that spoils even the holy season that lies
-before us? It is deceit. It is untruthfulness. Let each one of us
-decide here and now for this season of Christmas at least, to cast
-aside all deceit and hypocrisy and speak the truth one with another....
-It will be the first step to a holier life. It will make this Christmas
-the happiest of our lives....”
-
-William’s attention was drawn from the exhortation by the discovery
-that he had not quite closed the match box and the stag beetle was
-crawling up Ethel’s coat. Fortunately Ethel was busily engaged in
-taking in all the details of Marion Hatherley’s new dress across the
-aisle and did not notice. William recaptured his pet and shut up the
-match box ... then rose to join lustily and inharmoniously in the
-first verse of “Onward, Christian Soldiers.” During the other verses
-he employed himself by trying a perfectly new grimace (which he had
-been practising all week) on the choir boy. It was intercepted by the
-curate who shuddered and looked away hastily. The sight and sound of
-William in the second row from the front completely spoilt the service
-for the curate every Sunday. He was an æsthetic young man and William’s
-appearance and personality hurt his sense of beauty....
-
-But the words of the sermon had made a deep impression on William.
-He decided for this holy season at least to cast aside deceit and
-hypocrisy and speak the truth one with another.... William had not been
-entirely without aspiration to a higher life before this. He had once
-decided to be self sacrificing for a whole day and his efforts had been
-totally unappreciated and misunderstood. He had once tried to reform
-others and the result had been even more disastrous. But he’d never
-made a real effort to cast aside deceit and hypocrisy and to speak the
-truth one with another. He decided to try it at Christmas as the Vicar
-had suggested.
-
-Much to his disgust William heard that Uncle Frederick and Aunt Emma
-had asked his family to stay with them for Christmas. He gathered that
-the only drawback to the arrangement in the eyes of his family was
-himself, and the probable effect of his personality on the peaceful
-household of Uncle Frederick and Aunt Emma. He was not at all offended.
-He was quite used to this view of himself.
-
-“All right!” he said obligingly. “You jus’ go. I don’ mind. I’ll stay
-at home ... you jus’ leave me money an’ my presents an’ I won’t mind a
-bit.”
-
-William’s spirits in fact soared sky-high at the prospect of such an
-oasis of freedom in the desert of parental interference. But his family
-betrayed again that strange disinclination to leave William to his own
-devices that hampered so many of William’s activities.
-
-“No, William,” said his mother. “We certainly can’t do that. You’ll
-have to come with us but I do hope you’ll be good.”
-
-William remembered the sermon and his good resolution.
-
-“Well,” he said cryptically, “I guess ’f you knew what I was goin’ to
-be like at Christmas you’d almost _want_ me to come.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It happened that William’s father was summoned on Christmas Eve to the
-sick bed of one of his aunts and so could not accompany them, but they
-set off under Robert’s leadership and arrived safely.
-
-Uncle Frederick and Aunt Emma were very stout and good-natured-looking,
-but Uncle Frederick was the stouter and more good-natured-looking
-of the two. They had not seen William since he was a baby. That
-explained the fact of their having invited William and his family to
-spend Christmas with them. They lived too far away to have heard even
-rumours of the horror with which William inspired the grown-up world
-around him. They greeted William kindly.
-
-“So this is little William,” said Uncle Frederick, putting his hand on
-William’s head. “And how is little William?”
-
-William removed his head from Uncle Frederick’s hand in silence then
-said distantly:
-
-“V’ well, thank you.”
-
-“And so grateful to your Uncle and Aunt for asking you to stay with
-them, aren’t you, William?” went on his mother.
-
-William remembered that his career of truthfulness did not begin till
-the next day so he said still more distantly, “Yes.”
-
-That evening Ethel said to her mother in William’s presence:
-
-“Well, he’s not been so _bad_ to-day, considering.”
-
-“You wait,” said William unctiously. “You wait till to-morrow when I
-start castin’ aside deceit an’ ... an’. To-day’ll be _nothin’_ to it.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William awoke early on Christmas day. He had hung up his stocking
-the night before and was pleased to see it fairly full. He took out
-the presents quickly but not very optimistically. He had been early
-disillusioned in the matter of grown-ups’ capacity for choosing
-suitable presents. Memories of prayer books and history books and socks
-and handkerchiefs floated before his mental vision.... Yes, as bad as
-ever! ... a case containing a pen and pencil and ruler, a new brush and
-comb, a purse (empty) and a new tie ... a penknife and a box of toffee
-were the only redeeming features. On the chair by his bedside was a
-book of Church History from Aunt Emma and a box containing a pair of
-compasses, a protractor and a set square from Uncle Frederick....
-
-William dressed, but as it was too early to go down he sat down on
-the floor and ate all his tin of toffee. Then he turned his attention
-to his Church History book. He read a few pages but the character and
-deeds of the saintly Aidan so exasperated him that he was driven to
-relieve his feeling by taking his new pencil from its case and adorning
-the saint’s picture by the addition of a top hat and spectacles. He
-completed the alterations by a moustache and by changing the book the
-saint held into an attaché case. He made similar alterations to every
-picture in the book.... St. Oswald seemed much improved by them and
-this cheered William considerably. Then he took his penknife and began
-to carve his initials upon his brush and comb....
-
- * * * * *
-
-William appeared at breakfast wearing his new tie and having brushed
-his hair with his new brush or rather with what was left of his
-new brush after his very drastic initial carving. He carried under
-his arm his presents for his host and hostess. He exchanged “Happy
-Christmas” gloomily. His resolve to cast away deceit and hypocrisy
-and speak the truth one with another lay heavy upon him. He regarded
-it as an obligation that could not be shirked. William was a boy of
-great tenacity of purpose. Having once made up his mind to a course he
-pursued it regardless of consequences....
-
-“Well, William, darling,” said his mother. “Did you find your presents?”
-
-“Yes,” said William gloomily. “Thank you.”
-
-“Did you like the book and instruments that Uncle and I gave you?” said
-Aunt Emma brightly.
-
-“No,” said William gloomily and truthfully. “I’m not int’rested in
-Church History an’ I’ve got something like those at school. Not that
-I’d want ’em,” he added hastily, “if I hadn’t ’em.”
-
-“_William!_” screamed Mrs. Brown in horror. “How can you be so
-ungrateful!”
-
-“I’m not ungrateful,” explained William wearily. “I’m only bein’
-truthful. I’m casting aside deceit an’ ... an’ hyp-hyp-what he said.
-I’m only sayin’ that I’m not int’rested in Church History nor in those
-inst’ments. But thank you very much for ’em.”
-
-There was a gasp of dismay and a horrified silence during which William
-drew his paper packages from under his arm.
-
-“Here are your Christmas presents from me,” he said.
-
-The atmosphere brightened. They unfastened their parcels with
-expression of anticipation and Christian forgiveness upon their faces.
-William watched them, his face “registering” only patient suffering.
-
-“It’s very kind of you,” said Aunt Emma still struggling with the
-string.
-
-“It’s not kind,” said William still treading doggedly the path of
-truth. “Mother said I’d got to bring you something.”
-
-Mrs. Brown coughed suddenly and loudly but not in time to drown the
-fatal words of truth....
-
-“But still--er--very kind,” said Aunt Emma though with less enthusiasm.
-
-At last she brought out a small pincushion.
-
-“Thank you very much, William,” she said. “You really oughtn’t to have
-spent your money on me like this.”
-
-“I din’t,” said William stonily. “I hadn’t any money, but I’m very glad
-you like it. It was left over from Mother’s stall at the Sale of Work,
-an’ Mother said it was no use keepin’ it for nex’ year because it had
-got so faded.”
-
-Again Mrs. Brown coughed loudly but too late. Aunt Emma said coldly:
-
-“I see. Yes. Your mother was quite right. But thank you all the same,
-William.”
-
-Uncle Frederick had now taken the wrappings from his present and held
-up a leather purse.
-
-“Ah, this is a really useful present,” he said jovially.
-
-“I’m ’fraid it’s not very useful,” said William. “Uncle Jim sent it to
-father for his birthday but father said it was no use ’cause the catch
-wouldn’ catch so he gave it to me to give to you.”
-
-Uncle Frederick tried the catch.
-
-“Um ... ah ...” he said. “Your father was quite right. The catch won’t
-catch. Never mind, I’ll send it back to your father as a New Year
-present ... what?”
-
-As soon as the Brown family were left alone it turned upon William in a
-combined attack.
-
-“I _warned_ you!” said Ethel to her mother.
-
-“He ought to be hung,” said Robert.
-
-“William, how _could_ you?” said Mrs. Brown.
-
-“When I’m bad, you go on at me,” said William with exasperation, “an’
-when I’m tryin’ to lead a holier life and cast aside hyp--hyp--what
-he said, you go on at me. I dunno what I _can_ be. I don’t mind bein’
-hung. I’d as soon be hung as keep havin’ Christmas over an’ over again
-simply every year the way we do....”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William accompanied the party to church after breakfast. He was
-slightly cheered by discovering a choir boy with a natural aptitude for
-grimaces and an instinctive knowledge of the rules of the game. The
-Vicar preached an unconvincing sermon on unselfishness and the curate
-gave full play to an ultra-Oxford accent and a voice that was almost
-as unmusical as William’s. Aunt Emma said it had been a “beautiful
-service.” The only bright spot to William was when the organist boxed
-the ears of the youngest choir boy who retaliated by putting out his
-tongue at the organist at the beginning of each verse of the last
-hymn....
-
-William was very silent during lunch.... He simply didn’t know what
-people saw in Christmas. It was just like ten Sundays rolled into
-one.... An’ they didn’t even give people the sort of presents they’d
-like.... No one all his life had ever given him a water pistol or a
-catapult or a trumpet or bows and arrows or anything really useful....
-And if they didn’t like truth an’ castin’ aside deceit an’--an’ the
-other thing they could do without ... but he was jolly well goin’ to
-go on with it. He’d made up his mind and he was jolly well goin’ to go
-on with it.... His silence was greatly welcomed by his family. He ate
-plentifully, however, of the turkey and plum pudding and felt strangely
-depressed afterwards ... so much that he followed the example of the
-rest of the family and went up to his bedroom....
-
-There he brushed his hair with his new brush, but he had carved his
-initials so deeply and spaciously that the brush came in two with
-the first flourish. He brushed his shoes with the two halves with
-great gusto in the manner of the professional shoe black.... Then
-having nothing else to do, he turned to his Church History again. The
-desecrated pictures of the Saints met his gaze and realising suddenly
-the enormity of the crime in grown up eyes he took his penknife and cut
-them all out. He made paper boats of them, and deliberately and because
-he hated it he cut his new tie into strips to fasten some of the boats
-together. He organised a thrilling naval battle with them and was
-almost forgetting his grudge against life in general and Christmas in
-particular....
-
-He was roused to the sense of the present by sounds of life and
-movement downstairs, and, thrusting his saintly paper fleet into his
-pyjama case, he went down to the drawing-room. As he entered there came
-the sound of a car drawing up at the front door and Uncle Frederick
-looked out of the window and groaned aloud.
-
-[Illustration: “DON’T YOU THINK IT’S VERY LIKE ME?” ASKED LADY ATKINSON.
-
-“IT’S NOT AS FAT AS YOU ARE,” SAID WILLIAM, CRITICALLY.
-
-“I’M NOT IMPOLITE. I’M BEING TRUTHFUL.”]
-
-“It’s Lady Atkinson,” he said, “Help! Help!”
-
-“Now, Frederick dear,” said Aunt Emma hastily, “Don’t talk like that
-and _do_ try to be nice to her. She’s one of _the_ Atkinsons, you
-know,” she explained with empressement to Mrs. Brown in a whisper as
-the lady was shown in.
-
-Lady Atkinson was stout and elderly and wore a very youthful hat and
-coat.
-
-“A happy Christmas to you all!” she said graciously. “The boy?
-Your nephew? William? How do you do, William? He--_stares_ rather,
-doesn’t he? Ah, yes,” she greeted every one separately with infinite
-condescension.
-
-“I’ve brought you my Christmas present in person,” she went on in the
-tone of voice of one giving an unheard-of treat. “Look!”
-
-She took out of an envelope a large signed photograph of herself.
-“There now ... what do you think of that?”
-
-Murmurs of surprise and admiration and gratitude.
-
-Lady Atkinson drank them in complacently.
-
-“It’s very good isn’t it? You ... little boy ... don’t you think it’s
-very like me?”
-
-William gazed at it critically.
-
-“It’s not as fat as you are,” was his final offering at the altar of
-truth.
-
-“_William!_” screamed Mrs. Brown, “how can you be so impolite!”
-
-“Impolite?” said William with some indignation. “I’m not tryin’ to be
-polite! I’m bein’ truthful. I can’t be everything. Seems to me I’m the
-only person in the world what _is_ truthful an’ no one seems to be
-grateful to me. It _isn’t_ ’s fat as what she is,” he went on doggedly,
-“an’ it’s not got as many little lines on its face as what she has an’
-it’s different lookin’ altogether. It looks pretty an’ she doesn’t----”
-
-Lady Atkinson towered over him, quivering with rage.
-
-“You _nasty_ little boy!” she said thrusting her face close to his.
-“You--NASTY--little--boy!”
-
-Then she swept out of the room without another word.
-
-The front door slammed.
-
-She was gone.
-
-Aunt Emma sat down and began to weep.
-
-“She’ll never come to the house again,” she said.
-
-“I always said he ought to be hung,” said Robert gloomily. “Every day
-we let him live he complicates our lives still worse.”
-
-“I shall tell your father, William,” said Mrs. Brown, “_directly_ we
-get home.”
-
-“The kindest thing to think,” said Ethel, “is that he’s mad.”
-
-“Well,” said William, “I don’ know what I’ve done ’cept cast aside
-deceit an’--an’ the other thing what he said in church an’ speak the
-truth an’ that. I don’ know why every one’s so mad at me jus’ ’cause of
-that. You’d think they’d be glad!”
-
-“She’ll never set foot in the house again,” sobbed Aunt Emma.
-
-Uncle Frederick, who had been vainly trying to hide his glee, rose.
-
-“I don’t think she will, my dear,” he said cheerfully. “Nothing like
-the truth, William ... absolutely nothing.”
-
-He pressed a half-crown into William’s hand surreptitiously as he went
-to the door....
-
- * * * * *
-
-A diversion was mercifully caused at this moment by the arrival of the
-post. Among it there was a Christmas card from an artist who had a
-studio about five minutes’ walk from the house. This little attention
-comforted Aunt Emma very much.
-
-“How kind of him!” she said, “and we never sent him anything. But
-there’s that calendar that Mr. Franks sent to us and it’s not written
-on. Perhaps William could be trusted to take it to Mr. Fairly with our
-compliments while the rest of us go for a short walk.” She looked at
-William rather coldly.
-
-William who was feeling the atmosphere indoors inexplicably hostile
-(except for Uncle Frederick’s equally inexplicable friendliness) was
-glad of an excuse for escaping.
-
-He set off with the calendar wrapped in brown paper. On the way his
-outlook on life was considerably brightened by finding a street
-urchins’ fight in full swing. He joined in it with gusto and was soon
-acclaimed leader of his side. This exhilarating adventure was ended by
-a policeman who scattered the combatants and pretended to chase William
-down a side street in order to vary the monotony of his Christmas
-“beat.”
-
-William, looking rather battered and dishevelled, arrived at Mr.
-Fairly’s studio. The calendar had fortunately survived the battle
-unscathed and William handed it to Mr. Fairly who opened the door.
-Mr. Fairly showed him into the studio with a low bow. Mr. Fairly was
-clothed in correct artistic style ... baggy trousers, velvet coat and
-a flowing tie. He had a pointed beard and a theatrical manner. He had
-obviously lunched well--as far as liquid refreshment was concerned at
-any rate. He was moved to tears by the calendar.
-
-“How kind! How very kind.... My dear young friend, forgive this
-emotion. The world is hard. I am not used to kindness. It unmans me....”
-
-He wiped away his tears with a large mauve and yellow handkerchief.
-William gazed at it fascinated.
-
-“If you will excuse me, my dear young friend,” went on Mr. Fairly,
-“I will retire to my bedroom where I have the wherewithal to write
-and endite a letter of thanks to your most delightful and charming
-relative. I beg you to make yourself at home here.... Use my house, my
-dear young friend, as though it were your own....”
-
-He waved his arms and retreated unsteadily to an inner room, closing
-the door behind him.
-
-William sat down on a chair and waited. Time passed, William became
-bored. Suddenly a fresh aspect of his Christmas resolution occurred to
-him. If you were speaking the truth one with another yourself, surely
-you might take everything that other people said for truth.... He’d
-said, “Use this house, my dear young friend, as though it were your
-own.”... Well, he would. The man prob’ly meant it ... well, anyway, he
-shouldn’t have said it if he didn’t.... William went across the room
-and opened a cupboard. It contained a medley of paints, two palettes,
-two oranges and a cake. The feeling of oppression that had followed
-William’s Christmas lunch had faded and he attacked the cake with
-gusto. It took about ten minutes to finish the cake and about four
-to finish the oranges. William felt refreshed. He looked round the
-studio with renewed interest. A lay figure sat upon a couch on a small
-platform. William approached it cautiously. It was almost life-size and
-clad in a piece of thin silk. William lifted it. It was quite light.
-He put it on a chair by the window. Then he went to the little back
-room. A bonnet and mackintosh (belonging to Mr. Fairly’s charwoman)
-hung there. He dressed the lay figure in the bonnet and mackintosh. He
-found a piece of black gauze in a drawer and put it over the figure’s
-face as a veil and tied it round the bonnet. He felt all the thrill
-of the creative artist. He shook hands with it and talked to it. He
-began to have a feeling of deep affection for it. He called it Annabel.
-The clock struck and he remembered the note he was waiting for.... He
-knocked gently at the bedroom door. There was no answer. He opened the
-door and entered. On the writing table by the door was a letter:
-
- “DEAR FRIEND,
-
- Many thanks for your beautiful calendar. Words fail me....”
-
-Then came a blot--mingled ink and emotion--and that was all. Words had
-failed Mr. Fairly so completely that he lay outstretched on the sofa
-by the window sleeping the sleep of the slightly inebriated. William
-thought he’d better not wake him up. He returned to the studio and
-carried on his self-imposed task of investigation. He found some acid
-drops in a drawer adhering to a tube of yellow ochre. He separated them
-and ate the acid drops but their strong flavour of yellow ochre made
-him feel sick and he returned to Annabel for sympathy....
-
-Then he thought of a game. The lay figure was a captured princess and
-William was the gallant rescuer. He went outside, opened the front door
-cautiously, crept into the hall, hid behind the door, dashed into the
-studio, caught up the figure in his arms and dashed into the street
-with it. The danger and exhilaration of a race for freedom through the
-streets with Annabel in his arms was too enticing to be resisted. As a
-matter of fact the flight through the streets was rather disappointing.
-He met no one and no one pursued him....
-
-He staggered up the steps to Aunt Emma’s house still carrying Annabel.
-There, considering the matter for the first time in cold blood, he
-realised that his rescue of Annabel was not likely to be received
-enthusiastically by his home circle. And Annabel was not easy to
-conceal. The house seemed empty but he could already hear its inmates
-returning from their walk. He felt a sudden hatred of Annabel for being
-so large and unhidable. He could not reach the top of the stairs before
-they came in at the door. The drawing-room door was open and into it he
-rushed, deposited Annabel in a chair by the fireplace with her back to
-the room, and returned to the hall. He smoothed back his hair, assumed
-his most vacant expression and awaited them. To his surprise they crept
-past the drawing-room door on tiptoe and congregated in the dining-room.
-
-“A caller!” said Aunt Emma. “Did you see?” “Yes, in the dining-room,”
-said Mrs. Brown. “I saw her hat through the window.”
-
-“Curse!” said Uncle Frederick.
-
-“The maids must have shown her in before they went up to change. I’m
-simply _not_ going to see her. On Christmas day, too! I’ll just wait
-till she gets tired and goes or till one of the maids comes down and
-can send her away!”
-
-“Sh!” said Uncle Frederick, “She’ll hear you.”
-
-Aunt Emma lowered her voice.
-
-“I don’t think she’s a lady,” she said. “She didn’t look it through the
-window.”
-
-“Perhaps she’s collecting for something,” said Mrs. Brown.
-
-“Well,” said Aunt Emma sinking her voice to a conspiratorial whisper.
-“If we stay in here and keep very quiet she’ll get tired of waiting and
-go.”
-
-William was torn between an interested desire to be safely out of
-the way when the dénouement took place and a disinterested desire to
-witness the dénouement. The latter won and he stood at the back of the
-group with a sphinx-like expression upon his freckled face....
-
-[Illustration: “I’LL HAVE ONE MORE TRY,” SAID UNCLE FREDERICK, AND
-ENTERED THE ROOM. “GOOD AFTERNOON,” HE BELLOWED.]
-
-They waited in silence for some minutes then Aunt Emma said, “Well,
-she’ll stay for ever it seems to me if someone doesn’t send her away.
-Frederick, go and turn her out.”
-
-They all crept into the hall. Uncle Frederick went just inside and
-coughed loudly. Annabel did not move. Uncle Frederick came back.
-
-“Deaf!” he whispered. “Stone deaf! Someone else try.”
-
-Ethel advanced boldly into the middle of the room. “Good afternoon,”
-she said clearly and sweetly.
-
-Annabel did not move. Ethel returned.
-
-[Illustration: ANNABEL DID NOT MOVE.]
-
-“I think she must be asleep,” said Ethel.
-
-“She looks drunk to me,” said Aunt Emma, peeping round the door.
-
-“I shouldn’t wonder if she was dead,” said Robert. “It’s just the
-sort of thing you read about in books. Mysterious dead body found in
-drawing-room. I bet I can find a few clues to the murder if she is
-dead.”
-
-“_Robert!_” reproved Mrs. Brown in a shrill whisper.
-
-“Perhaps you’d better fetch the police, Frederick,” said Aunt Emma.
-
-“I’ll have one more try,” said Uncle Frederick.
-
-He entered the room.
-
-“Good afternoon,” he bellowed.
-
-Annabel did not move. He went up to her.
-
-“Now look here, my woman----” he began laying his hand on her
-shoulder....
-
-Then the dénouement happened.
-
-Mr. Fairly burst into the house like a whirlwind still slightly
-inebriated and screaming with rage.
-
-“Where’s the thief? Where is he? He’s stolen my figure. He’s eaten my
-tea. I shall have to eat my supper for my tea and my breakfast for
-my supper.... I shall be a meal wrong always.... I shall never get
-right. And it’s all his fault. Where is he? He’s stolen my charwoman’s
-clothes. He’s stolen my figure. He’s eaten my tea. Wait till I get
-him!” He caught sight of Annabel, rushed into the drawing-room, caught
-her up in his arms and turned round upon the circle of open-mouthed
-spectators. “I _hate_ you!” he screamed, “and your nasty little
-calendars and your nasty little boys! Stealing my figure and eating my
-tea.... I’ll light the fire with your nasty little calendar. I’d like
-to light the fire with your nasty little boy!”
-
-With a final snort of fury, he turned, still clasping Annabel in his
-arms and staggered down the front steps. Weakly, stricken and (for the
-moment) speechless, they watched his departure from the top of the
-steps. He took to his heels as soon as he was in the road. But he was
-less fortunate than William. As he turned the corner and vanished from
-sight, already two policemen were in pursuit. He was screaming defiance
-at them as he ran. Annabel’s head wobbled over his shoulder and her
-bonnet dangled by a string.
-
-Then, no longer speechless, they turned on William.
-
-“I _told_ you,” said Robert to them when there was a slight lull in the
-storm, “You wouldn’t take my advice. If it wasn’t Christmas day I’d
-hang him myself.”
-
-“But you won’t let me _speak!_” said William plaintively. “Jus’ listen
-to me a minute. When I got to his house he said, he said mos’ distinct,
-he said, ’Please use this----’”
-
-“William,” interrupted Mrs. Brown with dignity. “I don’t know what’s
-happened and I don’t _want_ to know but I shall tell your father _all_
-about it _directly_ we get home.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Uncle Frederick saw them off at the station the next day.
-
-“Does your effort at truth continue to-day as well?” he said to William.
-
-“I s’pose it’s Boxing Day too,” said William. “He din’ mention Boxing
-Day. But I s’pose it counts with Christmas.”
-
-“I won’t ask you whether you’ve enjoyed yourself then,” said Uncle
-Frederick. He slipped another half-crown into William’s hand. “Buy
-yourself something with that. Your Aunt chose the Church History book
-and the instruments. I’m really grateful to you about--Well, I think
-Emma’s right. I don’t think she’ll ever come again.”
-
-The train steamed out. Uncle Frederick returned home. He had been too
-optimistic. Lady Atkinson was in the drawing-room talking to his wife.
-
-“Of course,” she was saying, “I’m not annoyed. I bear no grudge because
-I believe the boy’s _possessed!_ He ought to be ex--exercised.... You
-know, what you do with evil spirits.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was the evening of William’s return home. His father’s question as
-to whether William had been good had been answered as usual in the
-negative and, refusing to listen to details of accusation or defence,
-(ignoring William’s, “But he _said_ mos’ distinct, he said. Please
-use this--” and the rest of the explanation always drowned by the
-others) he docked William of a month’s pocket money. But William was
-not depressed. The ordeal of Christmas was over. Normal life stretched
-before him once more. His spirits rose. He wandered out into the lane.
-There he met Ginger, his bosom pal, with whom on normal days he fought
-and wrestled and carried out deeds of daring and wickedness, but who
-(like William) on festivals and holy days was forced reluctantly to
-shed the light of his presence upon his own family. From Ginger’s face
-too a certain gloom cleared as he saw William.
-
-“Well,” said William, “’v you enjoyed it?”
-
-“I had a pair of braces from my aunt,” said Ginger bitterly. “A pair of
-_braces!_”
-
-“Well, I had a tie an’ a Church History book.”
-
-“I put my braces down the well.”
-
-“I chopped up my tie into little bits.”
-
-“Was it nice at your aunt’s?”
-
-William’s grievances burst out.
-
-“I went to church an’ took what that man said an’ I’ve been speaking
-the truth one with another an’ leadin’ a higher life an’ well, it jolly
-well din’t make it the happiest Christmas of my life what he said it
-would.... It made it the worst. Every one mad at me all the time. I
-think I was the only person in the world speakin’ the truth one with
-another an’ they’ve took off my pocket money for it. An’ you’d think
-’f you was speakin’ the truth yourself you might take what any one
-else said for truth an’ I keep tellin ’em that he said mos’ distinct,
-‘Please use this house as if it were your own,’ but they won’ listen to
-me! Well, I’ve done with it. I’m goin’ back to deceit an’--an’--what’s
-a word beginnin’ with hyp----?”
-
-“Hypnotism?” suggested Ginger after deep thought.
-
-“Yes, that’s it,” said William. “Well, I’m goin’ back to it first thing
-to-morrow mornin’.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-AN AFTERNOON WITH WILLIAM
-
-
-William’s family was staying at the seaside for its summer holidays.
-This time was generally cordially detested by William. He hated being
-dragged from his well-known haunts, his woods and fields and friends
-and dog (for Jumble was not the kind of dog one takes away on a
-holiday). He hated the uncongenial atmosphere of hotels and boarding
-houses. He hated the dull promenades and the town gardens where walking
-over the grass and playing at Red Indians was discouraged. He failed
-utterly to understand the attraction that such places seemed to possess
-for his family. He took a pride and pleasure in the expression of gloom
-and boredom that he generally managed to maintain during the whole
-length of the holiday. But this time it was different. Ginger was
-staying with his family in the same hotel as William.
-
-Ginger’s father and William’s father played golf together. Ginger’s
-mother and William’s mother looked at the shops and the sea together.
-William and Ginger went off together on secret expeditions. Though
-no cajoleries or coaxings would have persuaded William to admit that
-he was “enjoying his holiday,” still the presence of Ginger made it
-difficult for him to maintain his usual aspect of gloomy scorn. They
-hunted for smugglers in the caves, they slipped over sea-weedy rocks
-and fell into the pools left by the retreating tide. They carried
-on warfare from trenches which they made in the sand, dug mines and
-counter-mines and generally got damp sand so deeply ingrained in
-their clothes and hair that, as Mrs. Brown said almost tearfully, they
-“simply defied brushing.”
-
-To-day they were engaged in the innocent pursuit of wandering along
-the front and sampling the various attractions which it offered. They
-stood through three performances of the Punch and Judy show, laughing
-uproariously each time. As they had taken possession of the best view
-and as it never seemed to occur to them to contribute towards the
-expenses, the showman finally ordered them off. They wandered off
-obligingly and bought two penny sticks of liquorice at the next stall.
-Then they bought two penny giant glasses of a biliousy-coloured green
-lemonade and quaffed them in front of the stall with intense enjoyment.
-Then they wandered away from the crowded part of the front to the empty
-space beyond the rocks. Ginger found a dead crab and William made a
-fire and tried to cook it, but the result was not encouraging. They
-ate what was left of their liquorice sticks to take away the taste,
-then went on to the caves. They reviewed the possibility of hunting
-for smugglers without enthusiasm. William was feeling disillusioned
-with smugglers. He seemed to have spent the greater part of his life
-hunting for smugglers. They seemed to be an unpleasantly secretive set
-of people. They might have let him catch just one....
-
-They flung stones into the retreating tide and leapt into the little
-pools to see how high they could make the splashes go.
-
-Then they saw the boat....
-
-It was lying by itself high and dry on the shore. It was a nice little
-boat with two oars inside.
-
-“Wonder how long it would take to get to France in it?” said William.
-
-“Jus’ no time, I ’spect,” said Ginger. “Why, you can _see_ France from
-my bedroom window. It must jus’be _no_ distance--simply _no_ distance.”
-
-They looked at the boat in silence for a few minutes.
-
-“It looks as if it would go quite easy,” said William.
-
-“We’d have it back before whosever it is wanted it,” said Ginger.
-
-“We couldn’t do it any harm,” said William.
-
-“It’s simply _no_ distance to France from my bedroom window,” said
-Ginger.
-
-The longing in their frowning countenances changed to determination.
-
-“Come on,” said William.
-
-It was quite easy to push and pull the boat down to the water. Soon
-they were seated, their hearts triumphant and their clothes soaked with
-sea water, in the little boat and were being carried rapidly out to
-sea. At first William tried to ply the oars but a large wave swept them
-both away.
-
-“Doesn’t really matter,” said William cheerfully, “the tide’s takin’ us
-across to France all right without botherin’ with oars.”
-
-For a time they lay back enjoying the motion and trailing fingers in
-the water.
-
-“’S almost as good as bein’ pirates, isn’t it?” said William.
-
-At the end of half an hour Ginger said with a dark frown:
-
-“Seems to _me_ we aren’t goin’ in the right d’rection for France. Seems
-to _me_, Cap’n, we’ve been swep’ out of our course. I can’t see no land
-anywhere.”
-
-“Well, we mus’ be goin’ _somewhere_,” said William the optimist, “an’
-wherever it is it’ll be _int’resting_.”
-
-“It _mightn’t_ be,” said Ginger, who was ceasing to enjoy the motion
-and was taking a gloomy view of life.
-
-“Well, I’m gettin’ jolly hungry,” said William.
-
-“Well, I’m _not_,” said Ginger.
-
-William looked at him with interest.
-
-“You’re lookin’ a bit pale,” he said with over-cheerful sympathy,
-“p’raps it was the crab.”
-
-Ginger made no answer.
-
-“Or it might have been the liquorice _or_ the lemonade,” said William
-with interest.
-
-“I wish you’d shut up talking about them,” snapped Ginger.
-
-“Well, I feel almost _dyin’_ of hunger,” said William. “In books they
-draw lots and then one kills the other an’ eats him.”
-
-“I wun’t mind anyone killin’ an’ eatin’ me,” said Ginger.
-
-“I’ve nothin’ to kill you with, anyway, so it’s no good talkin’ about
-it,” said William.
-
-“Seems to me,” said Ginger raising his head from his gloomy
-contemplation of the waves, “that we keep changin’ the d’rection we’re
-goin’ in. We’ll like as not end at America or China or somewhere.”
-
-“An’ our folks’ll think we’re drowned.”
-
-“We’ll prob’ly find gold mines in China or somewhere an’ make our
-fortunes.”
-
-“An’ we’ll come home changed an’ old an’ they won’t know us.”
-
-Their spirits rose.
-
-Suddenly William called excitedly, “I see land! Jus’ _look!_”
-
-They were certainly rapidly nearing land.
-
-“Thank goodness,” murmured Ginger.
-
-“An uninhabited island I ’spect,” said William.
-
-“Or an island inhabited by wild savages,” said Ginger.
-
-The boat was pushed gently on to land by the incoming tide.
-
-Ginger and William disembarked.
-
-“I don’t care where we are,” said Ginger firmly, “but I’m goin’to stop
-here all my life. I’m not goin’ in that ole boat again.”
-
-A faint colour had returned to his cheeks.
-
-“You _can’t_ stop on an uninhabited island all your life,” said
-William aggressively, “you’ll _have_ to go away. You needn’t go an’ eat
-dead crabs jus’ before you start, but you can’t live on an uninhabited
-island all your life.”
-
-“Oh, do shut up talkin’ about dead crabs,” said Ginger.
-
-“Here’s a hole in a hedge,” called William. “Let’s creep through and
-see what there is the other side. Creep, mind, an’ don’ breathe. It’ll
-prob’ly be wild savages or cannibals or something.”
-
-They crept through the hedge.
-
-There in a wide green space some lightly-clad beings were dancing
-backwards and forwards. One in the front called out unintelligible
-commands in a shrill voice.
-
-William and Ginger crept behind a tree.
-
-“Savages!” said William in a hoarse whisper. “Cannibals!”
-
-“Crumbs!” said Ginger. “What’ll we do?”
-
-The white-clad figures began to leap into the air.
-
-“Charge ’em,” said William, his freckled face set in a determined
-frown. “Charge ’em and put ’em to flight utterin’ wild yells to scare
-’em--before they’ve time to know we’re here.”
-
-“All right,” said Ginger, “come on.”
-
-“Ready?” said William through set lips. “Steady ... Go!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The New School of Greek Dancing was a few miles down the coast from
-where William and Ginger had originally set forth in the boat. The
-second afternoon open-air class was in progress. Weedy males and
-æsthetic-looking females dressed in abbreviated tunics with sandals
-on their feet and fillets round their hair, mostly wearing horn
-spectacles, ran and sprang and leapt and gambolled and struck angular
-attitudes at the shrill command of the instructress and the somewhat
-unmusical efforts of the (very) amateur flute player.
-
-“Now run ... _so_ ... hands extended ... _so_ ... left leg up ... _so_
-... head looking over shoulder ... _so_ ... no, try not to overbalance
-... that piece again ... never mind the music ... just do as I say ...
-_so_ ... _Ow_ ... _OW!_”
-
-[Illustration: WILLIAM AND GINGER RUSHED OUT FROM BEHIND A TREE AND
-CHARGED WILDLY INTO THE CROWD OF ÆSTHETIC AND BONY REVELLERS.]
-
-“_Go!_”
-
-Two tornadoes rushed out from behind a tree and charged wildly into
-the crowd of æsthetic and bony revellers. With heads and arms and legs
-they fought and charged and kicked and pushed and bit. They might have
-been a dozen instead of two. A crowd of thin, lightly-clad females ran
-screaming indoors. One young man nimbly climbed a tree and another lay
-prone in a rose bush.
-
-“We’ve put ’em to flight,” said William breathlessly, pausing for a
-moment from his labours.
-
-“Yes,” said Ginger dispiritedly, “an’ what’ll we do _next?_”
-
-“Oh, jus’ keep ’em at bay an’ live on their food,” said William
-vaguely, “an’ p’raps they’ll soon begin to worship us as gods.”
-
-But William was unduly optimistic. The flute player had secured some
-rope from an outhouse and, accompanied by some other youths, he was
-already creeping up behind William. In a few moments’ time William and
-Ginger found themselves bound to neighbouring trees. They struggled
-wildly. They looked a strange couple. The struggle had left them
-tieless and collarless. Their hair stood on end. Their faces were
-stained with liquorice juice.
-
-“They’ll eat us for supper,” said William to Ginger. “Sure’s Fate
-they’ll eat us for supper. They’re prob’ly boilin’ the water to cook us
-in now. Go on, try’n _bite_ through your rope.”
-
-“I have tried,” said Ginger wearily, “it’s nearly pulled all my teeth
-out.”
-
-“I wish I’d told ’em to give Jumble to Henry,” said William sadly,
-“they’ll prob’ly keep him to themselves or sell him.”
-
-“They’ll be _sorry_ they took my trumpet off me when they hear I’m
-eaten by savages,” said Ginger with a certain satisfaction.
-
-The Greek dancers were drawing near by degrees from their hiding places.
-
-“_Mad!_” they were saying. “One of them _bit_ me and he’s probably got
-hydrophobia. I’m going to call on my doctor.” “He simply _charged_ me
-in the stomach. I think it’s given me appendicitis.” “_Kicked_ my leg.
-I can _see_ the bruise.” “_Quite_ spoilt the atmosphere.”
-
-“William,” said Ginger faintly, “isn’t it funny they talk English?
-Wun’t you expect them to talk some savage language?”
-
-[Illustration: MR. BROWN PAID VAST SUMS OF HUSH MONEY TO THE POLICE
-FORCE AND BROUGHT IN HIS SON BY THE SCRUFF OF THE NECK.]
-
-“I speck they’ve learnt it off folks they’ve eaten.”
-
-From the open window of the house behind the trees came the loud tones
-of a lady who was evidently engaged in speaking through a telephone.
-
-“Yes, _wild_ ... absolutely _mad_ ... _must_ have escaped from the
-asylum ... no one escaped from the asylum? ... then they must have been
-_going_ to the asylum and escaped on the _way_ ... well, if they aren’t
-_lunatics_ they’re _criminals_. Please send a large _force_.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was when two stalwart and quite obviously English policemen appeared
-that William’s bewilderment finally took from him the power of speech.
-
-“Crumbs!” was all he said.
-
-He was quite silent all the way home. He coldly repulsed all the
-policemen’s friendly overtures.
-
-Mrs. Brown screamed when from the lounge window she saw her son and his
-friend approaching with their escort. It was Mr. Brown who went boldly
-out to meet them, paid vast sums of hush money to the police force and
-brought in his son by the scruff of his neck.
-
-“Well,” said William almost tearfully, at the end of a long and painful
-course of home truths, “’f they’d reely _been_ cannibals and eaten me
-you’d p’raps have been _sorry_.”
-
-Mr. Brown, whose peace had been disturbed and reputation publicly laid
-low by William’s escort and appearance, looked at him.
-
-“You flatter yourself, my son,” he said with bitterness.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“What’ll we do to-day?” said Ginger the next morning.
-
-“Let’s start with watchin’ the Punch and Judy,” said William.
-
-“I’m not goin’ in no boats,” said Ginger firmly.
-
-“All right,” said William cheerfully, “but if we find another dead crab
-I’ve thought of a better way of cooking it.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-WILLIAM SPOILS THE PARTY
-
-
-The Botts were going to give a fancy dress dance at the Hall on New
-Year’s Eve, and William and all his family had been invited. The
-inviting of William, of course, was the initial mistake, and if only
-the Botts had had the ordinary horse sense (it was Robert, who said
-this) not to invite William the thing might have been a success. It
-wasn’t as if they didn’t know William. If they hadn’t known William,
-Robert said, one might have been sorry for them, but knowing William
-and deliberately inviting him to a fancy dress dance--well, they jolly
-well deserved all they got.
-
-On the other hand William’s own family didn’t ... and it was jolly hard
-lines on them (again I quote Robert).... Knowing that they had William
-all day and every day at home, anyone would think they’d have had the
-decency to invite them out without him.... I mean whatever you said
-or whatever you did, you couldn’t prevent it ... he spoilt your life
-wherever he went.
-
-But the Botts (of Botts’ Famous Digestive Sauce) had a ballroom that
-held 200 guests and they wanted to fill it. Moreover the Botts had a
-cherished daughter of tender years named Violet Elizabeth, and Violet
-Elizabeth with her most engaging lisp and that hint of tears that was
-her most potent weapon, had said that she wanted her friendth to be
-invited too an’ she’d thcream an’ thcream an’ _thcream_ till she was
-_thick_ if they din’t invite her friendth to the party too....
-
-“All right, pet,” had said Mr. Bott soothingly, “After all we may as
-well give a real slap-up show while we’re about it and swell out the
-whole place--kids an’ all.”
-
-Mr. Bott was “self-made” and considering all things had made quite a
-decent job of himself, but his manners had not “the repose that stamps
-the caste of Vere de Vere.” Violet Elizabeth on the other hand had been
-brought up from infancy in the lap of luxury and refinement provided by
-the successful advertising of Botts’ Famous Digestive Sauce.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The delight with which Robert and Ethel (William’s elder brother and
-sister) received the invitation to the fancy dress dance was, as I have
-said, considerably tempered by the fact of William’s inclusion in the
-invitation. And William, with his natural perversity, was eager to go.
-
-“Any show we _want_ him to go to,” said Robert bitterly, “he raises
-Cain about, but when a thing like this comes along--a thing that he’ll
-completely spoil for us if he comes like he always does----” he spread
-out his arm with the eloquent gesture of one tried almost beyond
-endurance, and left the sentence unfinished.
-
-“Well, let’s accept for ourselves, and say that William can’t go
-because he’s got a previous engagement,” suggested Ethel.
-
-“But I haven’t,” said William indignantly, “I haven’t got anything
-at all wrong with me. I’m quite well. An’ I _want_ to go. I don’ see
-why everyone else should go but me. Besides,” using an argument that
-he knew would appeal to them, “you’ll all be there an’ you’ll be able
-to see I’m not doing anything wrong, but if I was alone at home you
-wouldn’t know what I was doing. Not,” he added hastily, “that I _want_
-to do anything wrong. All I want to do is to make others happy. An’
-I’ll have a better chance of doin’ that at a party than if I was all
-alone at home.”
-
-These virtuous sentiments did but increase the suspicious distrust of
-his family. The general feeling was that far worse things happened when
-William was out to be good than when he was frankly out to be bad.
-
-“Oh, I think William must go,” said Mrs. Brown in her placid voice. “It
-will be so interesting for him and I’m sure he’ll be good.”
-
-Mrs. Brown’s rather pathetic faith in William’s latent powers of
-goodness was unshared by any other of his family.
-
-“Anyway,” she went on hastily, seeing only incredulity on the faces
-around her, “the thing to do now is to decide what we’re all going as.”
-
-“I think I’ll go as a lion,” said William. “I should think you could
-buy a lion skin quite cheap.”
-
-“Oh, _quite!_” said Robert sarcastically. “Why not shoot one while
-you’re about it?”
-
-“Yes, an’ I will,” said William, “’f you’ll show me one. I bet my bow
-and arrow could kill a few lions.”
-
-“No William, darling,” interposed Mrs. Brown again quickly, “I think
-you’d find a lion skin too hot for a crowded room.”
-
-“But I wun’t go into the room,” said William, “I want to crawl about
-the garden in it roarin’ an’ springin’ out at folks--scarin’ ’em.”
-
-“And you just said you wanted to go to make people _happy_,” said
-Robert sternly.
-
-“Well that’d make ’em happy,” said William unabashed, “it’d be _fun_
-for ’em.”
-
-“_Not_ a lion, darling,” said his mother firmly.
-
-“Well a brigand then,” suggested William, “a brigand with knives all
-over me.”
-
-Mrs. Brown shuddered.
-
-“_No_, William.... I believe Aunt Emma has a fancy dress suit of
-Little Lord Fauntleroy that Cousin Jimmie once wore. I expect she’d
-lend it, but I’m not sure whether it wouldn’t be too small.”
-
-Wild shouts greeted this suggestion.
-
-“Well,” William said offended, “I don’ know who he was but I don’ know
-why you should think me bein’ him so funny.”
-
-The Little Lord Fauntleroy suit proved too small much to the relief of
-William’s family, but another cousin was found to have a Page’s costume
-which just fitted William. But it certainly did not suit him. As Mrs.
-Brown put it, “I don’t know quite what’s wrong with the costume but
-somehow it looks so much more attractive off than on.”
-
-Robert was to go as Henry V and Ethel as Night.
-
-William to his delight found that all the members of his immediate
-circle of friends (known to themselves as the Outlaws) had been invited
-to the fancy dress dance. All had wished to go as animals or brigands
-or pirates, but family opposition and the offer of the loan of costumes
-from other branches of their families had been too strong in every
-case. Ginger was to be an Ace of Clubs, Henry a Gondolier (“dunno what
-it is,” remarked Henry despondently, “but you bet it’s nothing exciting
-or they wouldn’t have let me be it”). Douglas was to be a Goat Herd
-(“It’s an ole Little Boy Blue set-out,” he explained mournfully, “but I
-said I wouldn’t go if they didn’t call it something else. Not but what
-everyone’ll _know_,” he ended gloomily).
-
-“An’ we could’ve been brigands s’easy, s’easy,” said Ginger
-indignantly. “Why, you only want a shirt an’ a pair of trousers an’
-a coloured handkerchief round your head an’ a scarf thing round your
-waist with a few knives an’ choppers an’ things on it.... No trouble at
-all for them, an’ they jus’ won’t let us--jus’ cause we want to.”
-
-There was a short silence. Then William spoke. “Well, _let’s_,” he
-said, “let’s get Brigands things an’ change into ’em when we’ve got
-there. They’ll never know. They’ll never notice. We’ll hide ’em in
-the old summer house by the lake an’ go an’ change there, an’--an’ we
-won’t wear their rotten ole Boy Blues an’ Gondowhatevritis. We’ll be
-Brigands.”
-
-“We’ll be Brigands,” agreed the Outlaws joyfully.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Botts were having a large house party for the occasion.
-
-“Lord Merton is going to be there,” said Mrs. Brown to her husband,
-looking up from her usual occupation of darning socks, as he entered
-the room. “Just fancy! He’s in the Cabinet! Mr. Bott’s got to know
-his son in business and he’s coming down for it and going to stay the
-night.”
-
-“_That_ fellow!” snorted Mr. Brown, “he ought to be shot.” Mr. Brown’s
-political views were always very decided and very violent. “He’s
-ruining the country.”
-
-“Is he, dear?” said Mrs. Brown in her usual placid voice. “But I’m
-sure he’ll look awfully nice as a Toreador. She says he’s going as a
-Toreador.”
-
-“Toreador!” snorted Mr. Brown, “very appropriate too. He _is_ a
-Toreador!--and we’re the--bull. I tell you that man’s policy is
-bringing the country to rack and ruin. When you’re dying of starvation
-you can think of the fellow Toreadoring--Toreador indeed! I wonder
-decent people have him in their houses. Toreador indeed. I tell you
-he’s bleeding the country to death. He ought to be hung for murder.
-That man’s policy, I tell you, is wicked--_criminal_. Leave him alone
-and in ten years time he’ll have wiped out half the population of
-England by slow starvation. He’s killing trade. He’s _ruining_ the
-country.”
-
-“Yes, dear,” murmured Mrs. Brown, “I’m sure you’re right.... I think
-these blue socks of yours are almost done, don’t you?”
-
-“_Ruining_ it!” snorted Mr. Brown, going out of the room and slamming
-the door.
-
-William looked up from the table where he was engaged theoretically in
-doing his homework. Practically he was engaged in sticking pins into
-the lid of his pencil case.
-
-“Why’s he not in prison if he’s like that?” said William.
-
-“Who, darling?” said Mrs. Brown, “your father?”
-
-“No, the man he was talking about. And what’s a Toreador?”
-
-“Oh ... a man who fights bulls.”
-
-William’s spirits rose.
-
-“Will there be bulls there?”
-
-“I hope not, dear.”
-
-“Shall I go as a bull? It seems silly to have a Tor--what you said,
-without a bull. I could easy get a bull skin. I ’spect the butcher’d
-give me one.”
-
-Mrs. Brown shuddered.
-
-“No dear, most certainly not. Now do get on with your homework.”
-
-William, having fixed all his pins except one into the lid, now took
-the last pin and began to twang them with it. They made different
-noises according as they were twanged near the head or near the point.
-Mrs. Brown looked up, then bent her head again over her darning ...
-what funny things they taught children nowadays, she thought.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The day of the dance drew nearer. Robert was still feeling sore at the
-prospect of William’s presence. He relieved his feelings by jeering
-at William’s costume. William himself, as it happened, was not quite
-happy about the costume. It was a long stretch from the animal skin and
-Brigand’s apparel of his fancy to this pale blue sateen of reality.
-When he heard a visitor, to whom Mrs. Brown showed it, say that it was
-“picturesque” his distrust of it grew deeper.
-
-Robert was never tired of alluding to it. “Won’t William look sweet?”
-he would say, and “Don’t frown like that, William. That won’t go with
-the little Prince Charming costume at all.”
-
-William accepted these taunts with outward indifference, but no one
-insulted William with impunity. Robert might have taken warning from
-past experiences....
-
-When not engaged in tempting the Fates by teasing William, Robert was
-engaged in trying to win the affection of a female epitome of all
-the virtues and graces who had come to stay with the Crewes for the
-dance. This celestial creature was called Glory Tompkins. Robert called
-her Gloire as being more romantic. At least he spelt it Gloire but
-pronounced it Glor. Through Robert’s life there passed a never-ending
-procession of young females endowed with every beauty of form and soul.
-To each one in turn he sincerely vowed eternal fidelity. Each one was
-told in hoarse accents how from now onwards his whole life would be
-dedicated to making himself more worthy of her. Then after a week or
-two her startling perfection would seem less startling, and someone
-yet more perfect would dawn upon the horizon, shattering poor Robert’s
-susceptible soul yet again. Fortunately the fidelity of these youthful
-radiant beings was about on a par with Robert’s own.... Anyway Glory
-was the latest, and Robert called on the Crewes every evening to tell
-Glory with his eyes (the expression that he fondly imagined to express
-lifelong passion as a matter of fact was suggestive chiefly of acute
-indigestion) or with his lips how empty and worthless his life had been
-till he met her....
-
-William had his eye on the affair. He generally followed Robert’s
-love affairs with interest, though it was difficult to keep pace with
-them. A handle against Robert was useful and more than once Robert’s
-love affairs had afforded useful handles. Robert’s physical size
-and strength made William wary in his choice of weapons, but it was
-generally William who scored....
-
- * * * * *
-
-On the day before the dance Robert had written a note to Miss Tompkins.
-
- “BELOVED GLOIRE (Robert preferred writing Gloire to saying it because
- he had a vague suspicion that he didn’t pronounce it quite right).
-
- “You will know with what deep feelings I am looking forward to
- to-morrow. Will you have the 1st and 3rd and 4th and 7th and 8th with
- me. The 4th is the Blues you know that we have been practising. If
- it is fine and the moon is out shall we sit out the 1st in the rose
- garden on the seat by the sundial? It will be my first meeting with
- you for two days and I do not want it profaned by other people, who
- know and care nothing of our deep feeling for each other, all about
- us. When the music starts will you be there, and just for the few
- sacred moments we will tell each other all that is in our souls. Then
- we will be gay for the rest of the evening, but the memory of those
- few sacred minutes of the first dance in the rose garden, just you and
- me and the moon and the roses, will be with us in our souls all the
- evening.
-
- “Your knight,
-
- “ROBERT.”
-
-He was going to take it himself though he knew that his idol had gone
-away for the day. However a friend hailed him just as he was setting
-out, so he put the note on the hatstand and went out to join his
-friend, meaning to take the note later.
-
-He met William just coming in.
-
-“Hello, little page----” he said in mock affection.
-
-William looked at him, his brows drawn into a frown, his most
-sphinx-like expression upon his freckled face. William’s stubbly hair
-as usual stood up around his face like a halo.... William was not
-beautiful.
-
-Robert, whistling gaily, went down the steps to join his friend at the
-gate.
-
-William took up the note, read the address, and went into the
-drawing-room where Mrs. Brown was, as usual, darning socks.
-
-“Sh’ I take this note for Robert?” he said, assuming his earnestly
-virtuous expression. Mrs. Brown was touched.
-
-“Yes, dear,” she said, “how thoughtful of you.”
-
-An hour later Robert returned. “I say,” he said, “where’s that note? I
-left a note here. Has it been taken round?”
-
-“Yes, dear,” said Mrs. Brown absently.
-
-At that moment William was sitting on a gate far from the main road
-reading the note. On his face was a smile of pure bliss. There was a
-look of purpose in his eye.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The evening arrived. William as a Page, Ginger as Ace of Clubs, Douglas
-as a Goat Herd, Henry as a Gondolier, stood in a sheepish group and
-were gazed at proudly by their fond mothers. They looked far from
-happy, but the thought of the Brigands’ clothes concealed in the summer
-house comforted them. Robert as Henry V was having a good deal of
-trouble with his costume. He had closed the vizor of his helmet and
-it refused to open. Several of his friends were trying to force it.
-Muffled groans came from within.
-
-[Illustration: “JUST TO THINK, DARLING,” MURMURED ROBERT, “THAT LAST
-WEEK I DIDN’T KNOW YOU. YOU’VE GIVEN A NEW MEANING TO MY LIFE.”]
-
-Violet Elizabeth was dressed as a Star. She was leaping up and down and
-squeaking, “Look at me. I’m a thtar!” She shed stars at every leap, and
-an attendant nurse armed with needle and cotton sewed them on again.
-
-Pierrots, peasant girls, harlequins, kings, queens, gypsies and
-representatives of every nationality filled the room. It was noticed,
-with no particular interest on anyone’s part, that William the Page was
-no longer the centre of the sheepish group of fancy-dressed Outlaws.
-William the Page had crept into the ladies’ dressing-room, and in the
-temporary absence of the attendant (who was engaged in carrying on
-an impromptu flirtation with a good-looking chauffeur in the drive)
-he purloined a lady’s black velvet evening cloak and a filmy scarf.
-Fortunately the cloak had a hood....
-
- * * * * *
-
-Robert, helmetless and rather purple in the face as the result of his
-prolonged sojourn behind his vizor (from which he had finally been
-freed by a tin opener borrowed from the kitchen), came to the rose
-garden. Upon the seat that was the appointed trysting place a petite
-figure was awaiting him shrouded in a cloak.
-
-“Glory!” breathed Robert softly.
-
-The figure seemed to sway towards him, though its face was still
-completely hidden by its scarf and hood.
-
-Robert slipped his strong arm round it, and it nestled on his shoulder.
-
-“Just to think,” murmured Robert, “that this time last week I didn’t
-know you. You’ve given an entirely new meaning to my life--I feel that
-everything will be different now. I shall give up all my life to trying
-to be more worthy of you----”
-
-The figure gave a sudden snort and Robert started.
-
-“Glor! Are you ill?”
-
-The figure hastily emitted a deep groan.
-
-Robert sprang up.
-
-“Glor,” he cried in distress. “I’ll get you some water. I’ll call a
-doctor. I’ll----”
-
-He fled into the house, where he got a glass of water and actually
-found a doctor--a very unhappy doctor in a hired Italian costume that
-was too small for him. When he found the seat empty he turned upon
-Robert indignantly.
-
-“But she _was_ here,” said the bewildered Robert. “I left her here in
-the most awful agony. My God, if she’s dead.”
-
-“If she’s dead,” said the doctor coldly, “I’m afraid I can’t do
-anything. I’m sorry to seem unsympathetic, but if you knew the pain it
-causes me to walk in these clothes you’d understand my saying that I’ll
-let the whole world die in awful agony before I come out here again on
-your wild goose chase after dying females.”
-
-Robert was hunting distractedly under all the bushes around the seat....
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Outlaws had changed their clothes. They stood arrayed as
-Brigands in all the glory of coloured scarves and handkerchiefs and
-murderous-looking weapons. Upon the floor lay the limp outer coating of
-the Page, the Ace of Clubs, the Gondolier and the Goat Herd. They leapt
-with joy and brandished kitchen choppers and bread knives and trowels.
-
-“Now what’re we going to _do?_” said Ginger.
-
-“Everyone else is dancing,” suggested Douglas mildly.
-
-“_Dancing!_” repeated William scornfully. “D’you think we’ve put these
-things on to _dance?_”
-
-“Well, what’re we goin’ to do?” said Ginger.
-
-“There’s one thing we mus’ do first of all,” said William. He spoke in
-his leader’s manner and his freckled face was stern. “There’s a man
-here dressed as a tor--as a bull killer.”
-
-“A Toreador,” said Douglas with an air of superior knowledge.
-
-William looked at him crushingly.
-
-“Well--din’ I say that?” he said, then turning to the others. “Well,
-this man, this torrydoor man’s been starvin’ folks an’ killin’ ’em. I
-heard my father say so. Well, we’ve gotter _do_ something--we may never
-get a chance of gettin’ him again. He’s a starver an’ a murderer, I
-heard my father say so, an’ we’ve gotter _do_ something to him.”
-
-“_How?_” said the Brigands.
-
-“Well, you listen to me,” said William.
-
-The Brigands gathered round.
-
- * * * * *
-
-William crept round the outside of the ballroom. Through the open
-window came the sound of the band, and looking in, William could see
-couples of gaily dancing youths and maidens in fantastic dresses. Near
-one open window Henry V stood with a small and dainty Columbine.
-
-“But it _is_ my dance with you, Glor,” Henry V was saying hoarsely. “I
-wrote to you and asked you, and oh, I’m so glad that you’re better.
-I’ve been through hours of agony thinking you were dead.”
-
-“You’re absolutely mad,” Glory replied impatiently. “I’ve no idea what
-you’re talking about. You never wrote and you’ve never asked me for a
-dance. I’ve never seen you all evening till this minute, except in the
-distance with everyone trying to pull your head off. You shouldn’t come
-in a costume like that if you don’t know how to open and shut it, and
-now you suddenly come and begin to talk nonsense about me being dead.”
-
-“Glor----”
-
-“I wish you’d _stop_ calling me by that silly name.”
-
-“But--Glor--Glory--you _must_ have got my note. You were in the rose
-garden. You let me put my arm round you. I’ve been treasuring the
-memory all evening when I wasn’t racked with agony at the thought of
-you being ill--or dead.”
-
-“I _never_ met you in the rose garden. You’re _mad!_”
-
-“I’m not. You did. Oh, Glor----”
-
-“_Stop_ calling me that. It sounds like a patent medicine or a new
-kind of metal polish ... and as you don’t care for me enough to get
-a dance in decent time, and as you go mooning about the garden with
-other girls--girls who seem to go dying all over the place from your
-account--and pretend you think they’re me----”
-
-“I didn’t pretend. I thought it was. It must have been. Oh, Glor----”
-
-“_Stop_ saying that! I’ve simply finished with you. Well, if you don’t
-care about me enough to know who _is_ me and--thank you, when I want
-to die I’ll do it at home and not in a beastly old rose garden--so
-_there_--And I’ve _finished_ with you, Robert Brown,--so _there_.”
-
-Columbine flounced off and Henry V, pale and distraught, pursued her
-with a ghostly, “Oh, Glor----”
-
-The Brigand passed on, a faint smile on his face.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Toreador had found a quiet corner in the empty smoking-room and
-was relaxing his weary limbs in an arm chair. He had indulged in a
-quiet smoke and was now indulging in a quiet doze.... He did not
-like dancing. He did not like wearing fancy dress. He did not like
-the Botts. He did not like the noise of the band. He did not like
-anything....
-
-He opened his eyes with a start, conscious of an alien presence. By his
-side he saw a small and very villainous-looking Brigand with a stern
-freckled face, a row of gardening tools and a carving knife round his
-waist and a red handkerchief tied round his head.
-
-“There’s a Russian wants to see you,” said the Brigand in a dramatic
-whisper, “he’s waiting for you in the coach-house. He’s gotter message
-for you from the Russians--private.”
-
-The Toreador sat up and rubbed his eyes. The Brigand was still there.
-
-“Please say it again,” said the Toreador.
-
-“There’s a Russian wants to see you. He’s waiting for you in the
-coach-house. He’s gotter message for you from the Russians,” repeated
-the Brigand.
-
-“Where did you say he was?” said the Toreador.
-
-“In the coach-house.”
-
-“And what do you say he’s got?”
-
-“A message from the Russians.”
-
-“What Russians?”
-
-“All the Russians.”
-
-“Good Lord!” said the Toreador. “Just pinch me, will you?”
-
-William obeyed without a flicker of expression upon his face.
-
-“Still here,” said the Toreador in a resigned tone of voice. “I thought
-it might be a nightmare. Well, there’s no harm in going to see. What’s
-he like?”
-
-“Oh--just like a Russian,” said William vaguely. “Russian clothes an’
-Russian face an’--an’--Russian boots.”
-
-“How did he get here?”
-
-“Walked,” said William calmly. “Walked all the way from Russia.”
-
-“Does he speak English?”
-
-“No. Russian.”
-
-“How do you know what he says then?”
-
-“I learn Russian at school,” said William with admirable presence of
-mind.
-
-“You’re a linguist,” commented the Toreador.
-
-“No, I’m not,” corrected William, “I’m English like you.”
-
-They were on the way to the coach-house.
-
-“I may as well see it through,” said the Toreador. “It’s so intriguing.
-It’s like Alice in Wonderland. A Russian brought a message from all the
-Russians and walked all the way from Russia. He must have started when
-he was quite a child. It’s better than being bored to death watching
-idiots making still greater idiots of themselves.”
-
-“This is the coach-house,” said the Brigand.
-
-“It’s dark.”
-
-“Yes,” said the Brigand. “He’s right in the corner over there. He’s
-just having a little sleep.”
-
-The Toreador stepped into the coach-house. The door was immediately
-slammed and bolted from outside. The Toreador took out his pocket torch
-and looked round the room. It was empty. No Russian in Russian boots,
-etc., with a message from all the Russians slept in a corner. The only
-means of exit were the door and a barred window. He went to the barred
-window. Four small stern Brigands stood outside.
-
-“I say,” said the Toreador. “Look here----”
-
-The freckled frowning Brigand who had led him there spoke.
-
-“We’re not going to let you out,” he said, “till you’ve promised to go
-away from England and never come back.”
-
-“But _why?_” said the Toreador. “Why should I? I know it’s all a dream.
-But just tell me why I should, anyway.”
-
-“Because you’re starvin’ an’ killin’ folks,” said the Brigand sternly.
-“You’re ruinin’ the country.”
-
-“I do hope I remember all this when I wake up,” said the Toreador,
-“it’s too priceless. But look here --if you don’t let me out I’ll
-kick the door down. I’ve never starved anyone and I’ve never killed
-anyone, and I----”
-
-[Illustration: “I SAY,” SAID THE TOREADOR, “IF YOU DON’T LET ME OUT
-I’LL KICK THE DOOR DOWN.”]
-
-“We don’ want to argue,” said William remembering a frequent remark of
-his father’s and trying to imitate his tone of voice, “but we’re not
-goin’ to let you out till you promise to go out of England and never
-come back.”
-
-[Illustration: “WE’RE NOT GOING TO LET YOU OUT,” SAID WILLIAM, “TILL
-YOU PROMISE TO GO OUT OF ENGLAND, AND NEVER COME BACK.”]
-
-With that the Brigands turned and went slowly back to the house. The
-sound of a mighty kick against the coach-house door followed them into
-the night.
-
-“What we goin’ to do _now_,” said Ginger.
-
-“Oh, jus’ look round a bit,” said William.
-
-Again they went round the outside of the house passing by each open
-window. Just inside one sat Henry V with a very demure Spring.
-
-“I can’t tell you what a difference it’s made to me getting to know
-you----” Henry V was saying.
-
-By another a group of people stood around a--Yes--the Brigands rubbed
-their eyes, but there he was--a Toreador.
-
-A tall angular Helen of Troy well past her first youth and quite
-obviously never having possessed a face that could launch a thousand
-ships, was sitting in the window recess with an emaciated Henry VIII.
-“Look,” she was saying, “that Toreador’s Lord Merton--on the Cabinet
-you know, quite important.”
-
-The Brigands gaped at each other.
-
-A few minutes later Helen of Troy looking down saw a small meek boy
-dressed in a sort of pirate’s costume sitting by her.
-
-“Please,” he said politely, “Would you kin’ly tell me who that man in a
-bull fighter’s dress is.”
-
-“That’s Lord Merton, dear,” said Helen of Troy kindly. “He’s in the
-Cabinet. Do you know what that means?”
-
-“Then is there--are there two Toreadors?”
-
-“Yes. The other’s Mr. Jocelyn. He’s a writer, I believe. Nobody
-important.”
-
-“We’ve took the wrong one,” said William in a hoarse whisper, as he
-rejoined the Brigands, “There was two.”
-
-“Crumbs!” said the Brigands aghast.
-
-“What we goin’ to do _now_?” said Ginger.
-
-William was not one to relinquish a task half done. “We’ll have to put
-this one in an’ let the other out,” he said.
-
-A few minutes later the Toreador came out on to the lawn smoking a
-cigar.
-
-“If you please,” said a miniature Brigand, who seemed to rise up from
-the ground at his feet, “Some one wants to see you special. He says
-he’s a German with a message quite private. He doesn’t want anyone else
-to know.”
-
-“Ha!” snorted the Toreador throwing away his cigar. “Show me, boy.”
-
-He followed William to the coach-house. The other Brigands came behind
-athrill for whatever would happen. William flung open the door of the
-coach-house. The second Toreador entered. The first Toreador, who had
-by this time completely lost sight of any humorous aspect the affair
-might previously have had in his eyes, and had worked himself up into
-a blind fury, sprang upon the second Toreador as he entered and threw
-him to the ground. The second Toreador pulled the first down with him,
-and they fought fiercely in the dark upon the floor of the coach-house,
-with inarticulate bellows of rage and rendings of clothes and hurling
-of curses....
-
- * * * * *
-
-Aghast, and apprehensive of consequences, the Brigands turned and went
-quickly towards the house so as to be as far as possible from the scene
-of the crime.
-
-But all was changed at the house. There was no dancing. The band was
-mute. In the middle of the ballroom was a little heap of clothes, a
-Page’s costume, an Ace of Clubs costume, a Gondolier’s costume, and a
-Goat Herd’s costume, and over it stood four distraught mothers. Mrs.
-Brown was almost hysterical. The guests stood in wondering groups
-around.
-
-“The clothes have been found near the lake,” sobbed Mrs. Brown.
-
-“There’s no trace of them anywhere,” sobbed Ginger’s mother.
-
-“The grounds have been searched.”
-
-“They’re nowhere in the house.”
-
-“They must have taken off their clothes to swim.”
-
-“And they’re _drowned_.”
-
-“_Drowned._”
-
-“Now don’t take on,” said Mrs. Bott soothingly to the distraught
-mothers, “don’t take on so, dearies. Botty’ll have the lake dragged at
-once. There’s nothing to worry about.”
-
-The mothers went down to the lake followed by the whole assembly. The
-Brigands, feeling that the situation had got far beyond their control,
-followed cautiously in the rear keeping well in the shadow of the
-bushes.
-
-It was bright moonlight. All the guests stood round the lake gazing
-with mournful anticipation at its calm surface. The mothers clung to
-each other sobbing.
-
-“He was always such a _good_ boy,” sobbed Mrs. Brown. “And he looked so
-_sweet_ in his little blue suit.”
-
-Henry V, with one arm round Spring, was leaning over the lake and
-vaguely fishing in it with a garden rake that he had picked up near by.
-“You didn’t know him, of course,” he said to Spring, “but he was such a
-dear little chap and so fond of me.”
-
-Then the Toreadors arrived, torn and battered and cobwebby and grimy.
-“Where are they?” they panted as they ran. “We’ve been insulted. We’ve
-been outraged. We’ve been _shamefully_ treated. We demand those boys.
-We--_ah!_”
-
-They caught sight of four Brigands cowering behind the bushes, and
-sprang at them.
-
-The Brigands fled from them towards the lake. Henry V and Spring
-blocked William’s way. He pushed them on to one side, and both fell
-with a splash into the lake.
-
-Then the guests and fate closed round the Brigands.
-
-In the scene of retribution that followed Robert showed himself
-unsympathetic, even glorying in William’s afflictions.... For a whole
-week after the fancy dress dance Robert repeatedly proclaimed that
-William had spoilt his life again.
-
-“She’ll never look at me now, of course,” he said bitterly to his
-mother. “How could she look at the brother of the boy who nearly
-drowned her. And the only girl I’ve ever met who really understood me.
-And her mother says she’s had a cold in her head ever since.”
-
-“What was her name? Glory something, wasn’t it, dear?”
-
-“No, Mother,” impatiently, “That’s a girl I knew ever so long ago,
-and who never really understood me. This one----” William entered and
-Robert stopped abruptly.
-
-“How do you like those new socks I made for you, dear?” said his mother
-to William. “Are they all right?”
-
-William felt that his hour had come. He’d had a rotten time but he was
-going to do just a little scoring on his own.
-
-“Yes,” said William slowly, “and just to think that this time last week
-I didn’t know them. They’ve given an entirely new meaning to my life.
-I shall give up all my life trying to be more worthy of them. I’ve
-not got them on now because I don’t want them profaned by people who
-don’ know or care about them----” Then William gave a little groan and
-flopped into a chair in a fainting position.
-
-“_William_,” said Mrs. Brown, “What _ever’s_ the matter with you?”
-
-But Robert had gone a deep purple and was creeping quickly from the
-room.
-
-William watched him, smoothing back his unsmoothable hair.
-
-“Oh, Glor!” he ejaculated softly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE CAT AND THE MOUSE
-
-
-William’s signal failure as a student of science was not due to any
-lack of interest. It was due to excess of zeal rather than to lack of
-zeal. William liked to experiment. He liked to experiment with his
-experiments. He liked to put in one or two extra things and see what
-happened. He liked to heat things when he was not told to heat them
-just to see what happened. And strange things happened. On several
-occasions William was deprived of his eyebrows and front hair. William
-in this condition felt proud of himself. He felt that everyone who saw
-him must imagine him to be the hero of some desperate adventure. He
-cultivated a stern frown with his hairless eyebrows. Old Stinks the
-Science Master rather liked William. He kept him in for hours in the
-lab. after school washing up innumerable test tubes and cleaning the
-benches as atonement for his unauthorised experiments; but he would
-generally stay there himself, as well, smoking by the fire and drawing
-from William his views on life in general. On more than one occasion he
-gravely accepted from William the peace offering of a liquorice stick.
-In spite of William’s really well-meant efforts, Old Stinks generally
-had to re-wash all the test tubes and other implements when William had
-gone. Occasionally he invited William to tea and sat fascinated at the
-sight of the vast amount of nourishment that William’s frame seemed
-able to assimilate. In return William lent him his original stories and
-plays to read (for William rather fancied himself as an author and had
-burnt much midnight candle over “The Hand of Deth” and “The Tru Story
-of an Indian Brave”). It is not too much to say that “Stinks” enjoyed
-these far more than he did many works of better known authors.
-
-But this term, Old Stinks, having foolishly contracted Scarlet Fever
-on the last day of the holidays, was absent and his place was taken by
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, an elegant young man with spats, very sleek hair
-and a microscopic moustache. From the moment he first saw him William
-felt that Mr. Evelyn Courtnay was the sort of man who would dislike
-him intensely. His fears were not ill-founded. Mr. Courtnay disliked
-William’s voice and William’s clothes and William’s appearance. He
-disliked everything about William. It is only fair to add that this
-dislike was heartily reciprocated by William. William, however, was
-quite willing to lie low. It was Mr. Courtnay who opened the campaign.
-He set William a hundred lines for overbalancing on his stool in an
-attempt to regain a piece of his litmus paper that had been taken
-with felonious intent by his vis-à-vis. When William expostulated he
-increased it to three hundred. When William, turning back to his desk
-and encountering a whiff of hydrochloric acid gas of his neighbour’s
-manufacture, sneezed, he increased it to four hundred. Then came a
-strange time for William. William had previously escaped scot free
-for most of his crimes. Now to his amazement and indignation he found
-himself in the unfamiliar position of a scapegoat. Any disturbance
-in William’s part of the room was visited on William and quite
-occasionally William was not guilty of it. Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, having
-taken a dislike to William, gratified his dislike to the full. Most
-people considered that this was very good for William, but it was a
-view that was not shared by William himself. He wrote lines in most
-of his spare time and made a thorough and systematic study of Mr.
-Courtnay. Silently he studied his habits and his mode of life and his
-character. He did this because he had a vague idea that Fate might some
-day deliver his enemy into his hand.
-
-William rarely trusted Fate in vain.... He gleaned much of his
-knowledge of the ways of Mr. Courtnay from Eliza, Mr. Courtnay’s maid
-who occasionally spent the evening with Ellen, the Brown’s housemaid.
-
-“’Is aunt’s comin’ to dine wif ’im to-morrer night,” said Eliza one
-evening.
-
-William, who was whittling sticks in the back garden near the open
-kitchen door, put his penknife in his pocket, scowled and began to
-listen.
-
-“Yes, it’s goin’ to be a set out an’ no mistake,” went on Eliza. “From
-what I makes out ’e’s expectin’ of money from ’er an’--oh my! the
-fuss--such a set out of a dinner an’ all! I can’t abide a young man
-what fusses to the hextent ’e does. An’ ’e sez the larst time she ’ad
-dinner wif ’im she seed a mouse an’ screamed the place down an’ went
-orf in an ’uff so there’s got to be mousetraps down in the dining room
-all night before she comes as well as all the hother fuss.”
-
-“Well, I never!” said Ellen.
-
-William took out his penknife and moved away in search of fresh sticks
-to whittle.
-
-But he moved away thoughtfully.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The next morning William had a Science lesson. He was still thoughtful.
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay was jocular and facetious. In the course of a
-few jocular remarks to the front row he said, “The feline species is
-as abhorrent to me as it was to the great Napoleon. Contact with it
-destroys my nerve entirely.”
-
-“What’s he mean?” whispered William to his neighbour.
-
-“He means he don’t like cats,” said William’s neighbour.
-
-“Well, why don’t he say so then?” said William scornfully.
-
-Someone near William dropped a test tube. Mr. Courtnay turned his
-languid eye upon William.
-
-“A hundred lines, Brown,” he said pleasantly.
-
-“It wasn’t me what did it, sir,” said William indignantly.
-
-“Two hundred,” said Mr. Courtnay.
-
-“_Well!_” gasped William in outraged innocence.
-
-“Four hundred,” said Mr. Courtnay.
-
-William was too infuriated to reply. He angrily mixed two liquids from
-the nearest bottles and heated them over his bunsen burner to relieve
-his feelings. There was a loud report. William blinked and wiped
-something warm off his face. His hand was bleeding from the broken
-glass.
-
-Mr. Courtnay watched from a distance.
-
-“Six hundred,” he said as William took a bit of test tube from his
-hair, “and to be done before Saturday, please.”
-
-“Don’t do ’em,” said Ginger as he walked homeward with William.
-
-“Yes,” said William bitterly, “an’ that means go to the Head an’ you
-know what _that_ means.”
-
-“Well, Douglas ’n Henry ’n me’ll all help,” said Ginger.
-
-William’s countenance softened, then became sphinx-like.
-
-“Thanks,” he said. “I’ve thought of a better plan than that but thanks
-all the same.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William walked slowly down the road. One hand was in his pocket. The
-other held a covered basket. He approached with a stern frown and
-many cautious glances around him the house of Mr. Evelyn Courtnay. He
-entered the back gate warily. His entry did not suggest the welcome
-guest or even anyone who had the right of entry. There was something
-distinctly furtive about it. He made his way round to the house by
-the wall behind the bushes. He peeped in at the dining-room window.
-The perspiring Eliza was engaged in putting the last touches to the
-dining table. He peeped into the drawing-room window. There sat Mr.
-Evelyn Courtnay in the most elegant of elegant dress suits, engaged in
-the process of charming his aunt, Miss Felicia Courtnay. Miss Felicia
-Courtnay was elderly and grim and not very susceptible to charm, but
-her nephew was doing his best. Through the open window William could
-hear plainly.
-
-[Illustration: “CATCH THE MOUSE,” SCREAMED MISS FELICIA. “GET DOWN AND
-CATCH THAT MOUSE!”]
-
-“Oh yes, I get on splendidly, Aunt. I’m so fond of children--devoted to
-them. In some ways, of course, teaching is a waste of my talents, but
-on the whole--”
-
-It was here that William drew his hand from his pocket and noiselessly
-deposited something on the floor through the open window. The
-something scuttled along the floor by the skirting board. William
-withdrew into the shadow. Suddenly a piercing scream came from within.
-
-[Illustration: MR. EVELYN COURTNAY SPRANG UP WITH A YELL AND LEAPT UPON
-THE GRAND PIANO. “THE BRUTE TOUCHED ME!” HE SHOUTED.]
-
-“It’s a _mouse_, Evelyn! Help! _Help! HELP!_”
-
-More screams followed.
-
-William peeped in at the window and enjoyed the diverting spectacle
-of Miss Felicia Courtnay standing on a chair holding up her skirts
-and screaming, and of Mr. Evelyn Courtnay on his knees with the poker
-in one hand, trying to reach the mouse who had taken refuge beneath a
-very low sofa. It was at that moment that William took Terence from the
-basket and deposited him upon the floor. Now Terence, William’s cat,
-though he disliked William intensely, was of a sociable disposition. He
-found himself in a strange room with a fire upon the hearth. He liked
-fires. He did not like the basket in which he had just made his journey
-with William. He did not wish to go in the basket again. He wished to
-stay in the room. He decided that the best policy was to make up to the
-occupants of the room in the hopes that they would allow him to sit on
-the hearthrug in front of the fire. He approached the only occupant he
-could see. Terence may have known that there was a mouse in the room or
-he may not. He was not interested. He was a lover of comfort only. He
-was no mouser.
-
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, who was now lying at full length on the floor
-trying to look beneath the low sofa, felt suddenly something soft and
-warm and furry and purring rub itself hard against his face. He sprang
-up with a yell and leapt upon the grand piano.
-
-“The brute!” he screamed. “The brute! It _touched_ me.”
-
-The episode seemed to have driven him into a state closely bordering on
-lunacy.
-
-William’s cat purred ingratiatingly at the foot of the grand piano.
-
-“Catch the mouse!” screamed Miss Felicia Courtnay. “Get down and catch
-the mouse!”
-
-“I can’t while that brute’s in the room,” screamed Mr. Evelyn Courtnay
-from the grand piano. “I can’t--I tell you. I can’t bear ’em. It
-_touched_ me!”
-
-“You _coward!_ I’m going to faint in a minute.”
-
-“So am I, I tell you. I can’t get down. It’s looking at me.”
-
-“I shall never forget this--_never!_ You
-_brute_--you--you--_tyrant_----”
-
-“I shan’t either. Go away, you nasty beast, go _away!_”
-
-At that moment two things happened. The mouse put its little whiskered
-head out of its retreat to reconnoitre and Terence, determined to make
-friends with this new and strange acquaintance, leapt upon the grand
-piano on to the very top of Mr. Evelyn Courtnay. Two screams rent the
-air--one a fine soprano, one a fine tenor.
-
-“I can see it. Oh, this will _kill_ me!”
-
-“Get _down_, you brute. Get _down!_”
-
-At this critical moment William entered like a _deus ex machina_. He
-swooped down upon the mouse before it realised what was happening,
-caught it by its tail and dropped it through the open window. Then he
-picked up Terence and did the same with him. Miss Felicia Courtnay,
-tearful and trembling, descended from her chair and literally fell upon
-William’s neck.
-
-“Oh you _brave_ boy!” she sobbed. “You _brave_ boy! What _should_ I
-have done without you?”
-
-“I happened to see you through the window trying to catch the mouse,”
-said William, looking at her with an inscrutable expression and wide
-innocent eyes, “an’ I di’n’ want to disturb you by comin’ in myself so
-I just put the cat in an’ when I saw that wasn’t no good I jus’ come in
-myself.”
-
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay had descended hastily from his grand piano and was
-smoothing his hair with both hands and glaring at William.
-
-“Thank the dear little boy, Evelyn,” said Miss Felicia giving her
-nephew a cold glance. “I don’t know what I should have done without his
-protection. He practically saved my life.”
-
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay glared still more ferociously at William and
-muttered threateningly.
-
-“A little child rushing in where grown men fear to tread,” misquoted
-Miss Felicia sententiously, still beaming fondly at William. “He must
-certainly stay to dinner after that.”
-
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, to his fury, had to provide William with a large
-meal to which William did full justice, munching in silence except when
-Miss Felicia’s remarks demanded an answer. Miss Felicia ignored her
-nephew and talked with fond and grateful affection to William only. It
-was William who volunteered the information that her nephew taught him
-Science.
-
-“I hope he’s kind to you,” said Miss Felicia.
-
-William gave her a pathetic glance like one who wishes to avoid a dark
-and painful subject.
-
-“I--I expect he means to be,” he said sadly.
-
-William departed immediately after dinner. He seldom risked an
-anticlimax. He possessed the artistic instinct. Mr. Evelyn Courtnay
-accompanied him to the door.
-
-“No need to talk of this, my boy,” said Mr. Courtnay with elaborate
-nonchalance.
-
-William made no answer.
-
-“And no need to do those lines,” said Mr. Courtnay.
-
-“Thank you,” said William. “Good-night.”
-
-He walked briskly down the road. He’d enjoyed the evening. Its only
-drawback was that he could never tell anyone about it. For William,
-with all his faults, was a sportsman.
-
-But he’d scored! He’d scored! He’d scored!
-
-And Old Stinks was coming back next week!
-
-Unable to restrain his feelings, William turned head over heels in the
-road.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-WILLIAM AND UNCLE GEORGE
-
-
-It was William who bought the horn-rimmed spectacles. He bought them
-for sixpence from a boy who had bought them for a shilling from a boy
-to whose dead aunt’s cousin’s grandfather they had belonged.
-
-William was intensely proud of them. He wore them in school all the
-morning. They made everything look vague and blurred, but he bore that
-inconvenience gladly for the sake of the prestige they lent him.
-
-Ginger borrowed them for the afternoon and got all his sums wrong
-because he could not see the figures, but that was a trifling matter
-compared with the joy of wearing horn-rimmed spectacles. Douglas bagged
-them for the next day and Henry for the day after that. William had
-many humble requests for the loan of them from other boys which he
-coldly refused. The horn-rimmed spectacles were to be the badge of
-superiority of the Outlaws.
-
-On the third day one of the masters who discovered that the horn-rimmed
-spectacles were the common property of William and his boon companions
-and were, optically speaking, unnecessary, forbade their future
-appearance in school. The Outlaws then wore them in turn on the way to
-school and between lessons.
-
-“My father,” said Douglas proudly, as he and William and Ginger
-strolled through the village together, “’s got a pair of spectacles
-an’s gotter wear ’em _always_.”
-
-“Not like these,” objected William who was wearing the horn-rimmed
-spectacles. “Not great thick ’uns like these.”
-
-“Well, anyway,” said Ginger. “I’ve gotter aunt what’s got false teeth.”
-
-“That’s nothin’,” said William. “False teeth isn’t like spectacles.
-They look just like ornery teeth. You can’t _see_ they’re false teeth.”
-
-“No, but you can _hear_ ’em,” said Ginger. “They tick.”
-
-“Well, anyway,” said Douglas, “my cousin knows a man what’s gotter
-false eye. It stays still while the other looks about.”
-
-“Well,” said William determined not to be outdone, “my father knows a
-man what’s gotter false leg.”
-
-“I think I remember once hearin’,” said Ginger somewhat vaguely, “’bout
-a man with all false arms an’ legs an’ only his body real.”
-
-“That’s nothin’,” said William giving rein to his glorious imagination.
-“I once heard of a man with a false body an’ only legs an’ arms reel.”
-
-His companions’ united yell of derision intimated to him that he had
-overstepped the bounds of credulity, and adjusting his horn-rimmed
-spectacles with a careless flourish he continued unperturbed, “Or I
-might have dreamed about him. I don’ _quite_ remember which.”
-
-“I bet you _dreamed_ about him,” said Ginger indignantly. “I bet it
-isn’t _possible_. How’d his stomach work ’f he hadn’t gotter real one?”
-
-“An’ I bet it _is_ possible,” said William stoutly. “It’d work with
-machinery an’ wheels an’ springs an’ things same as a clock works an’
-he’d hafter wind it up every mornin’.”
-
-The other Outlaws were impressed by William’s tone of certainty.
-
-“Well,” said Ginger guardedly, “I don’ say it isn’t _possible_. I only
-say it isn’t _prob’le_.”
-
-The vast knowledge of the resources of the English language displayed
-by this remark vaguely depressed the others, and they dropped the
-subject hastily.
-
-“I can walk like a man with a false leg,” said William, and he began to
-walk along, swinging one stiff leg with a flourish.
-
-“Well, I can click my teeth ’s if they was false,” said Ginger, and
-proceeded to bite the air vigorously.
-
-“I bet I can look ’s if I had a glass eye,” said Douglas, making
-valiant if unsuccessful efforts to keep one eye still and roll the
-other.
-
-They walked on in silence, each of them wholly and frowningly absorbed
-in his task, William limping stiffly, Ginger clicking valiantly, and
-Douglas rolling his eyes.
-
-A little short-sighted man who met them stopped still and stared in
-amazement.
-
-“Dear me!” he said.
-
-“I’ve gotter false leg,” William condescended to explain, “and _he_,”
-indicating Douglas, “’s gotter glass eye, an’ _he’s_ got false teeth.”
-
-“Dear me!” gasped the little old man. “How very extraordinary!”
-
-They left him staring after them....
-
-Douglas, wildly cross-eyed, set off at the turning to his home. He was
-labouring under the delusion that he had at last acquired the knack of
-keeping one eye still while he rolled the other, though William and
-Ginger informed him repeatedly that he was mistaken.
-
-“They’re _both_ movin’.”
-
-“They’re _not_, I tell you. One’s keepin’ still. I can feel it keepin’
-still.”
-
-“Well, we can _see_ it, can’t we? We oughter know.”
-
-“I don’ care what you can _see_. I know what I _do_, don’ I? It’s _my_
-eye an’ I move it an’ _I_ oughter be able to tell when I’m _not_ movin’
-it.... So _there!_”
-
-He rolled both eyes at them fiercely as he departed.
-
-William and Ginger went on together, stumping and clicking with great
-determination. Suddenly they both stopped.
-
-On the footpath just outside a door that opened straight on to the
-street, stood a bath-chair. In it were a rug and a scarf.
-
-“Here’s my bath-chair,” said William. “’S tirin’ walkin’ like this with
-a false leg all the time.”
-
-He sat down in the chair with such a jerk that his horn-rimmed
-spectacles fell off. Though it was somewhat of a relief to see the
-world clearly, he missed the air of distinction that he imagined they
-imparted to him and, picking them up, adjusted them carefully on
-his nose. The sensation of being the possessor of both horn-rimmed
-spectacles and a false leg had been a proud and happy one. He wrapped
-the rug around his knees.
-
-“You’d better push me a bit,” he said to Ginger. “’S not tirin’ havin’
-false teeth. You oughter be the one to push.”
-
-But Ginger, unlike William, was not quite lost in his rôle.
-
-“It’s not our bath-chair. Someone’ll be comin’ out an’ makin’ a fuss if
-we start playin’ with it. Besides,” with some indignation, “how d’you
-know havin’ false teeth isn’t tirin’? Ever tried ’em? An’ let me _tell_
-you clickin’ _is_ tirin’. It’s makin’ my jaws ache somethin’ terrible.”
-
-“Oh, come on!” said William impatiently, “do stop talkin’ about your
-false teeth. Anyway it couldn’t rest your _jaws_ ridin’ in a _chair_,
-could it? A _chair_ couldn’t rest your jaw _or_ your teeth, could it?
-Well, it _could_ rest my false leg an’, anyway, we’ll only go a bit
-an’ whosever it is won’t miss it before we bring it back, an’ anyway I
-don’t suppose they mind lendin’ it to help a pore ole man with a false
-leg an’ another with false teeth.”
-
-“Not much helpin’ _me_ pushin’ _you!_” said Ginger bitterly.
-
-“Your false teeth seems to be makin’ you very grumpy!” said William
-severely. “Oh, come on! They’ll be comin’ out soon.”
-
-Ginger began to push the bath-chair at first reluctantly, but finally
-warmed to his task. He tore along at a break-neck speed. William’s
-face was wreathed in blissful smiles. He held the precious horn-rimmed
-spectacles in place with one hand and with the other clutched on to
-the side of the bath-chair, which swayed wildly as Ginger pursued his
-lightning and uneven way. They stopped for breath at the end of the
-street.
-
-“You’re a jolly good pusher!” said William.
-
-Praise from William was rare. Ginger, in spite of his breathlessness,
-looked pleased.
-
-“Oh, that’s nothin’,” he said modestly. “I could do it ten times as
-fast as that. I’m a bit tired of false teeth though. I’m goin’ to stop
-clickin’ for a bit.”
-
-William tucked in his rug and adjusted his spectacles again.
-
-“Do I look like a pore old man?” he said proudly.
-
-Ginger gave a scornful laugh.
-
-“No, you don’t. You’ve gotter boy’s face. You’ve got no lines nor
-whiskers nor screwedupness like an old man.”
-
-William drew his mouth down and screwed up his eyes into a hideous
-contortion.
-
-“Do I now?” he said as clearly as he could through his distorted mask
-of twisted muscles.
-
-Ginger looked at him dispassionately.
-
-“You look like a kinder monkey now,” he said.
-
-William took the long knitted scarf that was at the bottom of the
-bath-chair and wound it round and round his head and face till only
-his horn-rimmed spectacles could be seen.
-
-“Do I now?” he said in a muffled voice.
-
-Ginger stared at him in critical silence for a minute and said:
-
-“Yes, you do now. At least you look’s if you might be _anything_ now.”
-
-“All right,” said William in his far-away muffled voice. “Pretend I’m
-an old man. Wheel me back now ... _slowly_, mind! ’cause I’m an old
-man.”
-
-They began the return journey. Ginger walked very slowly, chiefly
-because it was uphill and he was still out of breath. William leant
-back feebly in his chair enjoying the rôle of aged invalid, his
-horn-rimmed spectacles peering out with an air of deep wisdom from a
-waste of woollen muffler.
-
-Suddenly a woman who was passing stopped.
-
-“Uncle George!” she said in a tone of welcome and surprise.
-
-She was tall and thin and grey-haired and skittish-looking and gaily
-dressed.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Well, this _is_ a pleasant surprise,” she said. “When you didn’t
-answer our letter we thought you really weren’t going to come to see
-us. We really did. And now I find you on your way to our house. _What_
-a treat for us! I’d have known you anywhere, _dear_ Uncle George, even
-if I hadn’t recognised the bath-chair and the muffler that I knitted
-for you on your last birthday. How _sweet_ of you to wear it! And
-you’re looking _so_ well!” She dropped a vague kiss upon the woollen
-muffler and then turned to Ginger. “This little boy can go. I can take
-you on to the house.” She slipped a coin into Ginger’s hand. “Now run
-away, little boy! I’ll look after him.”
-
-Ginger, after one bewildered look, fled, and the lady began to push
-William’s chair along briskly. William was so entirely taken aback
-that he could for the moment devise no plan of action, and meekly
-allowed himself to be propelled down the village street. With an
-instinctive desire to conceal his identity he had pulled the rug up to
-his elbows and arranged the flowing ends of the all-enveloping scarf to
-cover the front of his coat. Wistfully he watched Ginger’s figure which
-was fast disappearing in the distance. Then the tall female bent down
-and shouted into his ear.
-
-“And how _are_ you, dear Uncle George?”
-
-William looked desperately round for some chance of escape, but saw
-none. Feeling that some reply was necessary, and not wishing to let his
-voice betray him he growled.
-
-“_So_ glad,” yelled the tall lady into the muffler. “_So_ glad. If you
-_think_ you’re better, you _will_ be better you know, as I always used
-to tell you.”
-
-To his horror, William saw that he was being taken in through a large
-gateway and up a drive. He felt as though he had been captured by some
-terrible enemy. Would he ever escape? What would the dreadful woman do
-to him when she found out? He couldn’t breathe, and he could hardly
-see, and he didn’t know what was going to happen to him.... He growled
-again rather ferociously, and she leant down to the presumptive region
-of his ear and shouted.
-
-“_Much_ better, dear Uncle George!... _Ever_ so much better ... it’s
-only a question of _will_ power.”
-
-She left him on a small lawn and went through an opening in the box
-hedge. William could hear her talking to some people on the other side.
-
-“He’s _come!_ Uncle George’s _come!_” she said in a penetrating whisper.
-
-“Oh, _dear!_” said another voice. “He’s _so_ trying! What shall we do?”
-
-“He’s _wealthy_. Anyway we may as well try to placate him a bit.”
-
-“Hush! He’ll hear you.”
-
-“Oh, no, he’s been as deaf as a post for years.”
-
-“How did you meet him, Frederica, darling?”
-
-“I met him _quite_ by accident,” said Frederica darling in her shrill
-and cheerful voice. “He was being brought here by a boy.”
-
-“And did you recognise him? It’s ten years since you saw him last.”
-
-“I recognised the bath-chair. It’s the one poor, dear Aunt Ferdinanda
-used to have, and the darling was wearing that scarf I knitted for
-him. Oh, but I think I’d have recognised the old man anyway. He hasn’t
-changed a bit; though he’s dreadfully muffled up. You know he was
-always so frightened of fresh air ... and he’s shrunk a bit, I think
-... you know, old people do--and I’m afraid he’s as touchy as ever. He
-was _quite_ huffy on the way here because I said that if he’d _will_ to
-be well he _would_ be well. That always annoyed him, but I must be true
-to my principles, mustn’t I?”
-
-“Hadn’t someone better go to him? Won’t it annoy him to be left alone?”
-
-“Oh, I don’t know. He’s not sociable, you know--and as deaf as a post
-and----”
-
-“Perhaps you’d better explain to the boys, Frederica----”
-
-“Oh, _yes!_ It’s your great Uncle George, you know--_ever_ so old,
-and we’ve not seen him for _ten_ years, and he’s just come to live
-here with his _male_ attendant, you know--taken a furnished house,
-and though we asked him to come to see us (he’s most _eccentric_,
-you know--simply won’t see _anyone_ at his own house) he never even
-answered and we thought he must be still annoyed. I told him the last
-time I saw him, ten years ago, that if only he’d think he could walk,
-he’d be _able_ to walk, and it annoyed him, but I must be true to my
-principles--anyway to my surprise I found him on his _way_ to our house
-this afternoon and----”
-
-Frederica paused for breath.
-
-“We’d better go to him, dear. He might be feeling lonely.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-William was far from lonely. He was listening with mingled interest and
-apprehension to the conversation on the other side of the hedge and
-revolving in his mind the question whether they’d see him if he crawled
-across the lawn to the gate--or perhaps it would be better to make a
-dash for it, tear off the rug and muffler and run for all he was worth
-to the gate and down the road.
-
-He had almost decided to do that when they all suddenly appeared
-through the opening in the hedge. William gave a gasp as he saw
-them. First came Frederica--the tall and agile lady who had captured
-him--next a very old lady with a Roman nose, and expression of grim
-determination and a pair of lorgnettes--next came a young curate--next
-a muscular young man in a college blazer, and last a little girl.
-
-William knew the little girl.
-
-Her name was Emmeline, and she went to the same school as William--and
-William detested her. William now allowed himself the slight
-satisfaction of putting out his tongue at her beneath his expanse of
-muffler.
-
-But his heart sank as they surrounded him. They all surveyed him with
-the greatest interest. He looked about desperately once more for some
-way of escape, but his opportunity had gone. Like the psalmist’s
-enemies, they closed him in on every side. Nervously he pulled up
-his rug, spread out his muffler and crouched yet further down in his
-bath-chair.
-
-[Illustration: “YOU REMEMBER MOTHER, DEAR UNCLE GEORGE, DON’T YOU?”
-FREDERICA SCREAMED INTO THE MUFFLER.
-
-WILLIAM MERELY GROWLED.]
-
-“You remember Mother, dear Uncle George, don’t you?” screamed Frederica
-into the muffler.
-
-The dignified dame raised the lorgnettes and held out a majestic hand.
-William merely growled. He was beginning to find the growl effective.
-They all hastily took a step back.
-
-“Sulking!” explained Frederica in her penetrating whisper. “_Sulking!_
-Just because I told him on the way here that if he _willed_ to be well
-he _would_ be well. It always annoyed him, but I must be true to my
-principles, mustn’t I?--even if it makes him _sulk_--even if he cuts me
-out of his will I must----”
-
-[Illustration: THEY ALL SURVEYED THE OCCUPANT OF THE BATH-CHAIR WITH
-GREAT INTEREST.]
-
-“Hush, Frederica! He’ll hear you!”
-
-“No, dear, he’s almost stone deaf.”
-
-She leant down again to his ear.
-
-“Is your DEAFNESS any better, Uncle George?” she screamed.
-
-She seemed to regard Uncle George as her own special property.
-
-William growled again.
-
-The circle drew another step farther back. The old lady looked anxious.
-
-“I’m afraid he’s ill,” she said. “I hope it’s nothing infectious!
-James, I think you’d better examine him.”
-
-Frederica drew one of the bashful and unwilling young men forward.
-
-“This is your great-nephew, James,” she shouted. “DEAR Uncle George.
-He’s a MEDICAL STUDENT, and he’d SO love to talk to you.”
-
-The rest withdrew to the other end of the lawn and watched proceedings
-from a distance. It would be difficult to say whether James or William
-felt the more desperate.
-
-“Er--how are you, Uncle George,” said James politely, then, remembering
-Uncle George’s deafness, changed his soft bass to a shrill tenor. “HOW
-ARE YOU?”
-
-William did not answer. He was wondering how long it would be before
-one of them tore off his rug and muffler, and horn-rimmed spectacles,
-and hoping that it would not be either of the young men who would
-administer punishment.
-
-“Er--may I--er--feel your pulse?” went on James, then remembered and
-yelled “PULSE.”
-
-William sat on his hands and growled. James mopped his brow.
-
-“If I could see your tongue--er--TONGUE--you seem to be in
-pain--perhaps--TONGUE--allow me.”
-
-He took hold of the muffler about William’s head. William gave a sudden
-shake and a fierce growl and James started back as though he had been
-bitten. William was certainly perfecting the growl.
-
-It was gaining a note of savage, almost blood-curdling ferocity. James
-gazed at him apprehensively, then, as another growl began to arise from
-the depth of William’s chair, hastily rejoined the others.
-
-“I’ve--er--examined him,” he said, making a gesture as though to loosen
-his collar, and still gazing apprehensively in the direction of Uncle
-George. “I’ve--er--examined him. There’s nothing--er--fundamentally
-wrong with him. He’s just--er--got a foul temper, that’s all.”
-
-“It is a case for you, then, I think, Jonathan,” said the old lady
-grimly.
-
-Frederica drew the second reluctant youth across the lawn.
-
-“This is your great-nephew Jonathan,” she yelled into the muffler.
-“He’s in the CHURCH. He’s looking forward SO much to a TALK with you,
-DEAR Uncle George.”
-
-With a sprightly nod at the horn-rimmed spectacles, she departed.
-Jonathan smiled mirthlessly. Then he proceeded to shout at William with
-_sotto voce_ interjections.
-
-“GOOD AFTERNOON, UNCLE GEORGE--confound you--WE’RE SO GLAD TO
-SEE YOU--don’t think--WE EXPECT TO SEE A LOT OF YOU NOW--worse
-luck--WE WANT TO BE A HAPPY, UNITED FAMILY--you crusty old mummy--WE
-HOPE--er--WE HOPE--er----”
-
-He couldn’t think what else to hope, so, purple with the effort of
-shouting, he stopped for breath. William, who was enjoying this part,
-chuckled. Jonathan with a sigh of relief departed. He went to the
-others who were watching expectantly.
-
-“It’s all right,” he said airily. “The old chap’s quite good-tempered
-now--my few words seemed to hit the spot.”
-
-William watched the group, wondering what was going to be done next and
-who was going to do it. He hardly dared move in case his spectacles or
-muffler or rug fell off and revealed him to the cold light of day. He
-felt instinctively that the cold light of day would have little pity on
-him.
-
-Then he saw two maids come round the house to the lawn. One carried a
-table and the other a tray on which were some cakes that made William’s
-mouth water. Would he--Oh, would he have to sit fasting and watch these
-unworthy people eat those glorious cakes and, Oh, scrummy!--there was a
-bowl of fruit salad. Surely----
-
-Oh, surely he deserved a bit of food after all he’d been through. His
-eyes shone eagerly and hungrily through his horn-rimmed spectacles--if
-he just undid his muffler enough to eat a bit of fruit salad--and that
-chocolate cake--_and_ the one with green icing--Oh, _and_ that one with
-nuts on the top--surely eating just a little like that wouldn’t give
-him away. He couldn’t starve for ever.
-
-And what was going to happen to him, anyway--he couldn’t stay all his
-life in a bath-chair in that garden starving and growling at people--he
-was jolly sick of it already, but he didn’t know what to do--they’d
-have to find out sometime--and he didn’t know what they’d do when
-they did find out--and he was sick of the whole thing--and it was all
-Ginger’s fault going off and leaving him and-- He looked across the
-lawn at them. His gaze through the horn-rimmed spectacles was wistful.
-
-To his horror he saw Emmeline being launched across the lawn to him by
-Frederica. Emmeline wore a super-sweet expression and carried in her
-hand a bunch of roses. She laid them on the bath-chair with an artless
-and confiding smile.
-
-“Dear, Great great Uncle George,” she said in her squeaky little voice.
-“We’re all so glad to see you and love you so much an’----”
-
-The elders were watching the tableau with proud smiles, and William
-was summoning his breath for a really ferocious growl when suddenly
-everyone turned round. A little old man, purple with anger, had
-appeared running up the drive.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Where is he?” screamed the little old man in fury. “They said he came
-in here--my bath-chair--where is he?--the thief--the blackguard--how
-dare he?--I’ll teach him--where is he?”
-
-William did not wait to be taught. With admirable presence of mind he
-tore off his wrappings, flung away his horn spectacles, and dashed with
-all his might through the opening in the hedge and across the back
-lawn. The little old man caught up a trowel that the gardener had left
-near a bed and flung it after William. It caught him neatly on the
-ankle and changed his swift flight to a limp.
-
-“Dear Uncle George,” cooed Frederica to the old man. “I don’t know
-what’s happened, but I _always_ said you could walk quite well if you
-liked.”
-
-With a howl of fury the old man turned on her, snatched up the bowl of
-fruit salad and emptied it over her.
-
-Meanwhile the muscular young medical student had overtaken William
-just as he was disappearing through the gate and in spite of William’s
-struggles was administering fairly adequate physical correction....
-Occasionally Nemesis did overtake William.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The next day William met Ginger on the way to school.
-
-“Well, _you’re_ brave, aren’t you?” he said sarcastically, “goin’ off
-an’ leavin’ me an’ not rescuin’ me nor nothin’.”
-
-“I like that,” said Ginger indignantly. “What could I do, I’d like to
-know. You _would_ ride an’ me push. ’F you’d bin unselfish an’ pushed
-an’ me rode _you’d_ ’ve got off.”
-
-This was unanswerable, but while William was trying to think out an
-answer Ginger said scornfully:
-
-“You still practisin’ havin’ a false leg? I stopped clickin’ ever so
-long ago. I should think you was tired of that old game.”
-
-“Well, I’m _not!_” said William with great self-possession. “I’m goin’
-to go on sometime yet jus’ to show I _can_.”
-
-Just then Emmeline appeared on the road, wearing the horn-rimmed
-spectacles.
-
-“I say, those is ours!” said Ginger.
-
-“Oh, _no!_” said Emmeline with a shrill triumphant laugh. “I found them
-on our front lawn. They’re _mine_ now. You ask William Brown _how_ I
-found them on our front lawn. But they’re _mine_ now. So there!”
-
-For a moment William was nonplussed. Then a beatific smile overspread
-his freckled face.
-
-“Dear great great Uncle George!” he mimicked in a shrill falsetto.
-“We’re all so glad to see you--we love you so much.”
-
-Emmeline gave a howl of anger and ran down the road holding her
-horn-rimmed spectacles on as she ran.
-
-“Boo-hoo!” she sobbed. “_Nasty_ William Brown! Comin’ into our garden
-an’ breathin’ our air an’ runnin’ over our beds an’ makin’ Uncle George
-cross an’ wastin’ our fruit salad an’ bein’ nasty to me--_Nasty_
-William Brown--they’re my spectacles, they is--Boo-hoo!”
-
-“I say, what happened yesterday?” said Ginger when she had disappeared.
-
-“Oh, I almost forget,” said William evasively. “I growled at ’em an’
-scared ’em no end an’ I didn’t get any tea an’ he threw somethin’ at
-me--Oh, a lot of things like that--I almost forget--But,” with sudden
-interest, “how much did she give you?”
-
-“Sixpence,” said Ginger proudly, taking it out of his pocket.
-
-“Come on!” said William joyfully, giving a cheerful little limp
-forward. “Come on an’ let’s spend it.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-WILLIAM AND SAINT VALENTINE
-
-
-William was, as not infrequently, under a cloud. His mother had gone
-to put some socks into one of his bedroom drawers and had found that
-most of the drawer space was occupied by insects of various kinds,
-including a large stag beetle, and that along the side of the drawer
-was their larder, consisting of crumby bits of bread and a little pool
-of marmalade.
-
-“But it _eats_ marmalade,” pleaded William. “The stag beetle does. I
-know it does. The marmalade gets a little less every day.”
-
-“Because it’s soaking into the wood,” said Mrs. Brown sternly.
-“_That’s_ why. I don’t know why you _do_ such things, William!”
-
-“But they’re doing no harm,” said William. “They’re _friends_ of mine.
-They _know_ me. The stag beetle does anyway and the others will soon.
-I’m teaching the stag beetle tricks.... _Honest_, it knows me and it
-knows its name. Call ‘Albert’ to it and see if it moves.”
-
-“I shall do nothing of the sort, William. Take the creatures out at
-once. I shall have to scrub the drawers and have everything washed.
-You’ve got marmalade and crumbs all over your socks and handkerchiefs.”
-
-“Well, I moved ’em right away when I put them in. They’ve sort of
-spread back.”
-
-“Why ever didn’t you keep the things outside?”
-
-“I wanted to have ’em and play with ’em at nights an’ mornin’s.”
-
-“And here’s one of them _dead!_”
-
-“I hope it didn’t die of anythin’ catchin’,” said William anxiously. “I
-shun’t like Albert to get anythin’. There’s no _reason_ for ’em to die.
-They’ve got plenty of food an’ plenty of room to play about in an’ air
-gets in through the keyhole.”
-
-“Take them _away!_”
-
-William lovingly gathered up his stag beetle and woodlice and
-centipedes and earwigs and took them downstairs, leaving his mother
-groaning over the crumby marmalady drawer....
-
-He put them into cardboard boxes and punched holes in the tops. He put
-Albert, the gem of the collection, in a small box in his pocket.
-
-Then it began to rain and he came back to the house.
-
-There was nothing to do....
-
-He wandered from room to room. No one was in. The only sounds were
-the sounds of the rain and of his mother furiously scrubbing at the
-drawer upstairs. He wandered into the kitchen. It was empty. On the
-table by the window was a row of jam jars freshly filled and covered.
-His mother had made jam that morning. William stood by the table, half
-sprawling over it, resting his head on his hands and watched the rain
-disconsolately. There was a small knife on the table. William took
-it up and, still watching the rain, absent-mindedly “nicked” in all
-the taut parchment covers one by one. He was thinking of Albert. As
-he nicked in the parchment, he was vaguely conscious of a pleasant
-sensation like walking through heaped-up fallen leaves or popping
-fuschia buds or breaking ice or treading on nice fat acorns.... He was
-vaguely sorry when the last one was “nicked.”
-
-Then his mother came in.
-
-“_William!_” she screamed as she saw the jam jars.
-
-“What’ve I done now?” said William innocently. “Oh ... those! I jus’
-wasn’t thinking what I was doin’. Sorry!”
-
-Mrs. Brown sat down weakly on a kitchen chair.
-
-“I don’t think anyone ever had a boy like you ever before William,” she
-said with deep emotion. “The work of _hours_.... And it’s _after_ time
-for you to get ready for Miss Lomas’ class. Do go, and then perhaps
-I’ll get a little peace!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Miss Lomas lived at the other end of the village. She held a Bible
-class for the Sons and Daughters of Gentlefolk every Saturday
-afternoon. She did it entirely out of the goodness of her heart,
-and she had more than once regretted the goodness of her heart
-since that Son of Gentlefolk known to the world as William Brown
-had joined her class. She had worked hard to persuade Mrs. Brown to
-send him. She thought that she could influence William for good. She
-realised when William became a regular attendant of her class that
-she had considerably over-estimated her powers. William could only be
-persuaded to join the class because most of his friends, not without
-much exertion of maternal authority, went there every Saturday. But
-something seemed to have happened to the class since William joined it.
-The beautiful atmosphere was destroyed. No beautiful atmosphere was
-proof against William. Every Saturday Miss Lomas hoped that something
-would have happened to William so that he could not come, and every
-Saturday William hoped equally fervently that something would have
-happened to Miss Lomas so that she could not take the class. There was
-something dispirited and hopeless in their greeting of each other....
-
-William took his seat in the dining-room where Miss Lomas always held
-her class. He glanced round at his fellow students, greeting his
-friends Ginger and Henry and Douglas with a hideous contortion of his
-face....
-
-Then he took a large nut out of his pocket and cracked it with his
-teeth.
-
-“_Not_ in here, William,” said Miss Lomas faintly.
-
-“I was goin’ to put the bits of shell into my pocket,” said William.
-“I wasn’t goin’ to put ’em on your carpet or anything, but ’f you
-don’t want me to’s all right,” he said obligingly, putting nut and
-dismembered shell into his pocket.
-
-“Now we’ll say our verses,” said Miss Lomas brightly but keeping a
-fascinated apprehensive eye on William. “William, you begin.”
-
-“’Fraid I din’t learn ’em,” said William very politely. “I was goin’
-to last night an’ I got out my Bible an’ I got readin’ ’bout Jonah in
-the whale’s belly an’ I thought maybe it’d do me more good than St.
-Stephen’s speech an’ it was ever so much more int’restin’.”
-
-“That will do, William,” said Miss Lomas. “We’ll--er--all take our
-verses for granted this afternoon, I think. Now, I want to give you a
-little talk on Brotherly Love.”
-
-“Who’s Saint Valentine?” said William who was burrowing in his
-prayer-book.
-
-“Why, William?” said Miss Lomas patiently.
-
-“Well, his day seems to be comin’ this month,” said William.
-
-Miss Lomas, with a good deal of confusion, launched into a not very
-clear account of the institution of Saint Valentine’s Day.
-
-“Well, I don’t think much of _him_ ’s a saint,” was William’s verdict,
-as he took out another nut and absent-mindedly cracked it, “writin’
-soppy letters to girls instead of gettin’ martyred prop’ly like Peter
-an’ the others.”
-
-Miss Lomas put her hand to her head.
-
-“You misunderstand me, William,” she said. “What I meant to say was--
-Well, suppose we leave Saint Valentine till later, and have our little
-talk on Brotherly Love first.... _Ow-w-w!_”
-
-Albert’s box had been accidentally opened in William’s pocket, and
-Albert was now discovered taking a voyage of discovery up Miss Lomas’
-jumper. Miss Lomas’ spectacles fell off. She tore off Albert and rushed
-from the room.
-
-William gathered up Albert and carefully examined him. “She might have
-hurt him, throwing him about like that,” he said sternly. “She oughter
-be more careful.”
-
-Then he replaced Albert tenderly in his box.
-
-“Give us a nut,” said Ginger.
-
-Soon all the Sons and Daughters of Gentlefolk were cracking nuts, and
-William was regaling them with a racy account of Jonah in the whale’s
-belly, and trying to entice Albert to show off his tricks....
-
-“Seems to me,” said William at last thoughtfully, looking round the
-room, “we might get up a good game in this room ... something sort of
-quiet, I mean, jus’ till she comes back.”
-
-But the room was mercifully spared one of William’s “quiet” games by
-the entrance of Miss Dobson, Miss Lomas’ cousin, who was staying with
-her. Miss Dobson was very young and very pretty. She had short golden
-curls and blue eyes and small white teeth and an attractive smile.
-
-“My cousin’s not well enough to finish the lesson,” she said. “So
-I’m going to read to you till it’s time to go home. Now, let’s be
-comfortable. Come and sit on the hearthrug. That’s right. I’m going to
-read to you ‘Scalped by the Reds.’”
-
-William drew a deep breath of delight.
-
-At the end of the first chapter he had decided that he wouldn’t mind
-coming to this sort of Bible class every day.
-
-At the end of the second he had decided to marry Miss Dobson as soon as
-he grew up....
-
- * * * * *
-
-When William woke up the next morning his determination to marry
-Miss Dobson was unchanged. He had previously agreed quite informally
-to marry Joan Crewe, his friend and playmate and adorer, but Joan
-was small and dark-haired and rather silent. She was not gloriously
-grown-up and tall and fair and vivacious. William was aware that
-marriage must be preceded by courtship, and that courtship was an
-arduous business. It was not for nothing that William had a sister who
-was acknowledged to be the beauty of the neighbourhood, and a brother
-who was generally involved in a passionate if short-lived _affaire
-d’amour_. William had ample opportunities of learning how it was done.
-So far he had wasted these opportunities or only used them in a spirit
-of mockery and ridicule, but now he determined to use them seriously
-and to the full.
-
-He went to the garden shed directly after breakfast and discovered that
-he had made the holes in his cardboard boxes rather too large and the
-inmates had all escaped during the night. It was a blow, but William
-had more serious business on hand than collecting insects. And he
-still had Albert. He put his face down to where he imagined Albert’s
-ear to be and yelled “Albert” with all the force of his lungs. Albert
-moved--in fact scuttled wildly up the side of his box.
-
-“Well, he cert’n’ly knows his name now,” said William with a sigh of
-satisfaction. “It’s took enough trouble to teach him that. I’ll go on
-with tricks now.”
-
-He went to school after that. Albert accompanied him, but was
-confiscated by the French master just as William and Ginger were
-teaching it a trick. The trick was to climb over a pencil, and Albert,
-who was labouring under a delusion that freedom lay beyond the pencil,
-was picking it up surprisingly well. William handed him to the French
-master shut up in his box, and was slightly comforted for his loss by
-seeing the master on opening it get his fingers covered with Albert’s
-marmalade ration for the day, which was enclosed in the box with
-Albert. The master emptied Albert out of the window and William spent
-“break” in fruitless search for him, calling “Albert!” in his most
-persuasive tones ... in vain, for Albert had presumably returned to his
-mourning family for a much-needed “rest cure.”
-
-“Well, _I_ call it stealin’,” said William sternly, “takin’ beetles
-that belong to other people.... It’d serve ’em right if I turned a
-Bolshevist.”
-
-“I don’t suppose they’d mind what you turned,” said Ginger unfeelingly
-but with perfect truth.
-
-It was a half-holiday that afternoon, and to the consternation of his
-family William announced his intention of staying at home instead of as
-usual joining his friends the Outlaws in their lawless pursuits.
-
-“But, William, some people are coming to tea,” said Mrs. Brown
-helplessly.
-
-“I know,” said William. “I thought p’raps you’d like me to be in to
-help with ’em.”
-
-The thought of this desire for William’s social help attributed to her
-by William, left Mrs. Brown speechless. But Ethel was not speechless.
-
-“Well, of course,” she remarked to the air in front of her, “that means
-that the whole afternoon is spoilt.”
-
-William could think of no better retort to this than, “Oh, yes, it
-does, does it? Well, I never!”
-
-Though he uttered these words in a tone of biting sarcasm and with what
-he fondly imagined to be a sarcastic smile, even William felt them to
-be rather feeble and added hastily in his normal manner:
-
-“’Fraid I’ll eat up all the cakes, I s’pose? Well, I will if I get the
-chance.”
-
-“William, dear,” said Mrs. Brown, roused to effort by the horror of the
-vision thus called up, “do you think it’s quite fair to your friends
-to desert them like this? It’s the only half-holiday in the week, you
-know.”
-
-“Oh, ’s all right,” said William. “I’ve told ’em I’m not comin’.
-They’ll get on all right.”
-
-“Oh, yes, _they’ll_ be all right,” said Ethel in a meaning voice and
-William could think of no adequate reply.
-
-But William was determined to be at home that afternoon. He knew that
-Laurence Hinlock, Ethel’s latest admirer, was expected and William
-wished to study at near quarters the delicate art of courtship. He
-realised that he could not marry Miss Dobson for many years to come,
-but he did not see why his courtship of her should not begin at
-once.... He was going to learn how it was done from Laurence Hinlock
-and Ethel....
-
-He spent the earlier part of the afternoon collecting a few more
-insects for his empty boxes. He was still mourning bitterly the loss of
-Albert. He deliberately did not catch a stag beetle that crossed his
-path because he was sure that it was not Albert. He found an earwig
-that showed distinct signs of intelligence and put it in a large, airy
-box with a spider for company and some leaves and crumbs and a bit of
-raspberry jam for nourishment. He did not give it marmalade because
-marmalade reminded him so poignantly of Albert....
-
-Then he went indoors. There were several people in the drawing-room. He
-greeted them rather coldly, his eye roving round the while for what he
-sought. He saw it at last.... Ethel and a tall, lank young man sitting
-in the window alcove in two comfortable chairs, talking vivaciously
-and confidentially. William took a chair from the wall and carried it
-over to them, put it down by the young man’s chair, and sat down.
-
-[Illustration: “DON’T YOU WANT TO GO AND PLAY WITH YOUR FRIENDS?” ASKED
-THE YOUNG MAN.]
-
-There was a short, pregnant silence.
-
-“Good afternoon,” said William at last.
-
-“Er--good afternoon,” said the young man.
-
-There was another silence.
-
-“Hadn’t you better go and speak to the others?” said Ethel.
-
-“I’ve spoke to them,” said William.
-
-There was another silence.
-
-“Don’t you want to go and play with your friends?” asked the young man.
-
-“No, thank you,” said William.
-
-Silence again.
-
-“I think Mrs. Franks would like you to go and talk to her,” said Ethel.
-
-“No, I don’t think she would,” said William with perfect truth.
-
-[Illustration: “NO, THANK YOU,” SAID WILLIAM.]
-
-The young man took out a shilling and handed it to William.
-
-“Go and buy some sweets, for yourself,” he said.
-
-William put the shilling in his pocket.
-
-“Thanks,” he said. “I’ll go and get them to-night when you’ve all gone.”
-
-There was another and yet deeper silence. Then Ethel and the young man
-began to talk together again. They had evidently decided to ignore
-William’s presence. William listened with rapt attention. He wanted to
-know what you said and the sort of voice you said it in.
-
-“St. Valentine’s Day next week,” said Laurence soulfully.
-
-“Oh, no one takes any notice of that nowadays,” said Ethel.
-
-“I’m going to,” said Laurence. “I think it’s a beautiful idea. Its
-meaning, you know ... true love.... If I send you a Valentine, will you
-accept it?”
-
-“That depends on the Valentine,” said Ethel with a smile.
-
-“It’s the thought that’s behind it that’s the vital thing,” said
-Laurence soulfully. “It’s that that matters. Ethel ... you’re in all my
-waking dreams.”
-
-“I’m sure I’m not,” said Ethel.
-
-“You are.... Has anyone told you before that you’re a perfect
-Botticelli?”
-
-“Heaps of people,” said Ethel calmly.
-
-“I was thinking about love last night,” said Laurence. “Love at first
-sight. That’s the only sort of love.... When first I saw you my heart
-leapt at the sight of you.” Laurence was a great reader of romances. “I
-think that we’re predestined for each other. We must have known each
-other in former existences. We----”
-
-“Do speak up,” said William irritably. “You’re speaking so low that I
-can’t hear what you’re saying.”
-
-“_What!_”
-
-The young man turned a flaming face of fury on to him. William returned
-his gaze quite unabashed.
-
-“I don’ mean I want you to _shout_,” said William, “but just speak so’s
-I can hear.”
-
-The young man turned to Ethel.
-
-“Can you get a wrap and come into the garden?” he said.
-
-“Yes.... I’ve got one in the hall,” said Ethel, rising.
-
-William fetched his coat and patiently accompanied them round the
-garden.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“What do people mean by sayin’ they’ll send a Valentine, Mother?” said
-William that evening. “I thought he was a sort of saint. I don’ see
-how you can send a saint to anyone, specially when he’s dead ’n in the
-Prayer Book.”
-
-“Oh, it’s just a figure of speech, William,” said Mrs. Brown vaguely.
-
-“A figure of what?” said William blankly.
-
-“I mean, its a kind of Christmas card only it’s a Valentine, I mean....
-Well, it had gone out in my day, but I remember your grandmother
-showing me some that had been sent to her ... dried ferns and flowers
-pasted on cardboard ... very pretty.”
-
-“Seems sort of silly to me,” said William after silent consideration.
-
-“People were more romantic in those days,” said Mrs. Brown with a sigh.
-
-“Oh, I’m romantic,” said William, “if that means bein’ in love. I’m
-that all right. But I don’ see any sense in sendin’ pasted ferns an’
-dead saints and things.... But still,” determinedly, “I’m goin’ to do
-all the sort of things they do.”
-
-“What _are_ you talking about, William?” said Mrs. Brown.
-
-Then Ethel came in. She looked angrily at William.
-
-“Mother, William behaved abominably this afternoon.”
-
-“I thought he was rather good, dear,” said Mrs. Brown mildly.
-
-“What did I do wrong?” said William with interest.
-
-“Followed us round everywhere listening to everything we said.”
-
-“Well, I jus’ listened, din’ I?” said William rather indignantly. “I
-din’ interrupt ’cept when I couldn’t hear or couldn’t understand.
-There’s nothing wrong with jus’ _listenin’_, is there?”
-
-“But we didn’t _want_ you,” said Ethel furiously.
-
-“Oh ... that!” said William. “Well, I can’t help people not _wanting_
-me, can I? That’s not _my_ fault.”
-
-Interest in Saint Valentine’s Day seemed to have infected the whole
-household. On February 13th William came upon his brother Robert
-wrapping up a large box of chocolates.
-
-“What’s that?” said William.
-
-“A Valentine,” said Robert shortly.
-
-“Well, Miss Lomas said it was a dead Saint, and Mother said it was a
-pasted fern, an’ now you start sayin’ it’s a box of chocolates! No one
-seems to know what it is. Who’s it for, anyway?”
-
-“Doreen Dobson,” said Robert, answering without thinking and with a
-glorifying blush.
-
-“Oh, I _say!_” said William indignantly. “You can’t. I’ve bagged her.
-I’m going to do a fern for her. I’ve had her ever since the Bible
-Class.”
-
-“Shut up and get out,” said Robert.
-
-Robert was twice William’s size.
-
-William shut up and got out.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Lomas family was giving a party on Saint Valentine’s Day, and
-William had been invited with Robert and Ethel. William spent two hours
-on his Valentine. He could not find a fern, so he picked a large spray
-of yew-tree instead. There was no time to dry it, so he tried to affix
-it to paper as it was. At first he tried with a piece of note-paper
-and flour and water, but except for a generous coating of himself
-with the paste there was no result. The yew refused to yield to
-treatment. It was too strong and too large for its paper. Fortunately,
-however, he found a large piece of thick cardboard, about the size of
-a drawing-board, and a bottle of glue, in the cupboard of his father’s
-writing desk. It took the whole bottle of glue to fix the spray of
-yew-tree on to the cardboard, and the glue mingled freely with the
-flour and water on William’s clothing and person. Finally he surveyed
-his handiwork.
-
-“Well, I don’ see much _in_ it now it’s done,” he said, “but I’m jolly
-well going to do all the things they do do.”
-
-He went to put on his overcoat to hide the ravages beneath, and met
-Mrs. Brown in the hall.
-
-“Why are you wearing your coat, dear?” she said solicitously. “Are you
-feeling cold?”
-
-“No. I’m just getting ready to go out to tea. That’s all,” said William.
-
-“But you aren’t going out to tea for half an hour or so yet.”
-
-“No, but you always say that I ought to start gettin’ ready in good
-time,” said William virtuously.
-
-“Yes, of course, dear. That’s very thoughtful of you,” said Mrs. Brown,
-touched.
-
-William spent the time before he started to the party inspecting his
-insect collection. He found that the spider had escaped and the earwig
-was stuck fast in the raspberry jam. He freed it, washed it, and
-christened it “Fred.” It was beginning to take Albert’s place in his
-affections.
-
-Then he set off to Miss Lomas’ carrying his Valentine under his arm.
-He started out before Ethel and Robert because he wanted to begin his
-courtship of Miss Dobson before anyone else was in the field.
-
-[Illustration: “WHAT IS IT, WILLIAM?” ASKED MISS DOBSON. “A VALENTINE,”
-REPEATED WILLIAM. “_MY_ VALENTINE.”]
-
-Miss Lomas opened the door. She paled slightly as she saw William.
-
-“Oh ... William,” she said without enthusiasm.
-
-“I’ve come to tea,” William said, and added hastily, “I’ve been
-invited.”
-
-“You’re rather early,” said Miss Lomas.
-
-“Yes, I thought I’d come early so’s to be sure to be in time,” said
-William, entering and wiping his feet on the mat. “Which room’re we
-goin’ to have tea in?”
-
-With a gesture of hopelessness Miss Lomas showed him into the empty
-drawing-room.
-
-“It’s Miss Dobson I’ve really come for,” explained William obligingly
-as he sat down.
-
-Miss Lomas fled, but Miss Dobson did not appear.
-
-William spent the interval wrestling with his Valentine. He had carried
-it sticky side towards his coat, and it now adhered closely to him. He
-managed at last to tear it away, leaving a good deal of glue and bits
-of yew-tree still attached to his coat.... No one came.... He resisted
-the temptation to sample a plate of cakes on a side table, and amused
-himself by pulling sticky bits of yew off his coat and throwing them
-into the fire from where he sat. A good many landed on the hearthrug.
-One attached itself to a priceless Chinese vase on the mantelpiece.
-William looked at what was left of his Valentine with a certain dismay.
-Well ... he didn’t call it pretty, but if it was the sort of thing they
-did he was jolly well going to do it.... That was all.... Then the
-guests began to arrive, Robert and Ethel among the first. Miss Dobson
-came in with Robert. He handed her a large box of chocolates.
-
-“A Valentine,” he said.
-
-“Oh ... thank you,” said Miss Dobson, blushing.
-
-William took up his enormous piece of gluey cardboard with bits of
-battered yew adhering at intervals.
-
-“A Valentine,” he said.
-
-Miss Dobson looked at it in silence. Then:
-
-“W-what is it, William?” she said faintly.
-
-“A Valentine,” repeated William shortly, annoyed at its reception.
-
-“Oh,” said Miss Dobson.
-
-Robert led her over to the recess by the window which contained two
-chairs. William followed, carrying his chair. He sat down beside them.
-Both ignored him.
-
-“Quite a nice day, isn’t it?” said Robert.
-
-“Isn’t it?” said Miss Dobson.
-
-“Miss Dobson,” said William, “I’m always dreamin’ of you when I’m
-awake.”
-
-“What a pretty idea of yours to have a Valentine’s Day party,” said
-Robert.
-
-“Do you think so?” said Miss Dobson coyly.
-
-“Has anyone ever told you that you’re like a bottled cherry?” said
-William doggedly.
-
-“Do you know ... this is the first Valentine I’ve ever given anyone?”
-said Robert.
-
-Miss Dobson lowered her eyes.
-
-“Oh ... is it?” she said.
-
-“I’ve been thinkin’ about love at first sight,” said William
-monotonously. “I got such a fright when I saw you first. I think we’re
-pre-existed for each other. I----”
-
-“Will you allow me to take you out in my side-car to-morrow?” said
-Robert.
-
-“Oh, how lovely!” said Miss Dobson.
-
-“No ... pre-destinated ... that’s it,” said William.
-
-Neither of them took any notice of him. He felt depressed and
-disillusioned. She wasn’t much catch anyway. He didn’t know why he’d
-ever bothered about her.
-
-“Quite a lady-killer, William,” said General Moult from the hearth-rug.
-
-“Beg pardon?” said William.
-
-“I say you’re a lady-killer.”
-
-“I’m not,” said William, indignant at the aspersion. “I’ve never killed
-no ladies.”
-
-“I mean you’re fond of ladies.”
-
-“I think insects is nicer,” said William dispiritedly.
-
-He was quiet for a minute or two. No one was taking any notice of him.
-Then he took up his Valentine, which was lying on the floor, and walked
-out.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Outlaws were in the old barn. They greeted William joyfully. Joan,
-the only girl member, was there with them. William handed her his
-cardboard.
-
-“A Valentine,” he said.
-
-“What’s a Valentine?” said Joan who did not attend Miss Lomas’ class.
-
-“Some say it’s a Saint what wrote soppy letters to girls ’stead of
-gettin’ martyred prop’ly, like Peter an’ the others, an’ some say it’s
-a bit of fern like this, an’ some say it’s a box of chocolates.”
-
-“Well, I never!” said Joan, surprised, “but it’s beautiful of you to
-give it to me, William.”
-
-“It’s a jolly good piece of cardboard,” said Ginger, ’f we scrape way
-these messy leaves an’ stuff.”
-
-William joined with zest in the scraping.
-
-“How’s Albert?” said Joan.
-
-After all there was no one quite like Joan. He’d never contemplate
-marrying anyone else ever again.
-
-“He’s been took off me,” said William.
-
-“Oh, what a _shame_, William!”
-
-“But I’ve got another ... an earwig ... called Fred.”
-
-“I’m so glad.”
-
-“But I like you better than _any_ insect, Joan,” he said generously.
-
-“Oh, William, do you _really?_” said Joan, deeply touched.
-
-“Yes--an’ I’m goin’ to marry you when I grow up if you won’t want me to
-talk a lot of soppy stuff that no one can understand.”
-
-“Oh, thank you, William.... No, I won’t.”
-
-“All right.... Now come on an’ let’s play Red Indians.”
-
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
- Transcriber’s Notes:
-
- Italics are shown thus: _sloping_.
-
- Small capitals have been capitalised.
-
- Variations in spelling and hyphenation are retained.
-
- Perceived typographical errors have been changed.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STILL--WILLIAM ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67238-0.zip b/old/67238-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 54eb879..0000000
--- a/old/67238-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h.zip b/old/67238-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 4a1f3dd..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/67238-h.htm b/old/67238-h/67238-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 3ee6914..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/67238-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11616 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Still--William, by Richmal Crompton&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 12%;
- margin-right: 12%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h1 {
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: 300%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- }
-
-h2 {font-weight: normal;}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p4d {margin-bottom: 4em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.full {width: 95%; margin-left: 2.5%; margin-right: 2.5%;}
-
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-
-.tdl {text-align: left;}
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-.tdc {text-align: center;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 85%;
-}
-
-.bbox {border-bottom: 1px solid;
- border-left: 2px solid;
- border-top: 2px solid;
- border-right: 2px solid;
- width: 70%;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- margin-top: 4em;}
-
-.bbox1 {border-bottom: 1px solid;
- border-left: 2px solid;
- border-top: 1px solid;
- border-right: 2px solid;
- width: 70%;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;}
-
-.bbox2 {border-bottom: 2px solid;
- border-left: 2px solid;
- border-top: 1px solid;
- border-right: 2px solid;
- width: 70%;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- margin-bottom: 4em;}
-
-.ph2 {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em;
- font-size: 160%;
- margin-top: 1em;}
-
-.big {font-size: 300%;}
-.xlarge {font-size: 140%;}
-.large {font-size: 120%;}
-.less {font-size: 90%;}
-.tiny {font-size: 60%;}
-
-.sans {font-family: sans-serif;}
-
-.c {text-align: center;}
-
-.space {word-spacing: 1em;}
-
-.gtb {letter-spacing: 3em;
- font-size: 130%;
- text-align: center;
- margin-right: -2em;
- font-weight: bold;}
-
-.caption {font-weight: bold;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 80%;}
-
-.r {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 2em;}
-
-.rm {text-align: right;
- margin-right: -2em;}
-
-.r1 {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 6em;}
-
-.l {text-align: left;
- margin-left: 6em;}
-
-.ml {margin-left: -1em;}
-
-.mr {margin-left: .5em;}
-
-.bbox {border: 2px solid;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figcenter1 {
- padding-top: 4em;
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figleft {
- float: left;
- clear: left;
- margin-left: 0;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-right: 1em;
- padding: 0;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
- .x-ebookmaker .figleft {float: left;}
-
-.figright {
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- margin-left: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-right: 0;
- padding: 0;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-.x-ebookmaker .figright {float: right;}
-
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;
- font-size:85%;}
-
- .poetry {display: inline-block;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {display: block;}
-
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;}
-
-@media handheld {
- .pagenum {visibility: hidden; display: none;}
-}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Still--William, by Richmal Crompton</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Still--William</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Richmal Crompton</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 23, 2022 [eBook #67238]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Alan, deaurider and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STILL--WILLIAM ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<h1>STILL&mdash;WILLIAM</h1>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig1.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="c">“NOW YOU MUTH PLAY WITH ME,” LISPED VIOLET<br />
-ELIZABETH, SWEETLY.</p>
-
-<p class="c">“I DON’T PLAY LITTLE GIRL’S GAMES,” ANSWERED THE<br />
-DISGUSTED WILLIAM.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="bbox">
-
-<p class="center big">STILL&mdash;WILLIAM</p>
-
-<p class="center p2">BY</p>
-
-<p class="center xlarge">RICHMAL CROMPTON</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="bbox1">
-
-<div class="figcenter1">
-<img src="images/fig2.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="center sans">ILLUSTRATED BY</p>
-
-<p class="center sans p4d">THOMAS HENRY</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bbox2">
-
-<p class="center large">LONDON</p>
-<p class="center xlarge space">GEORGE NEWNES, LIMITED</p>
-<p class="center large">SOUTHAMPTON ST., STRAND, W.C.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<table cellpadding="0" summary="history">
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>First Published</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>April</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1925</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>October</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1925</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>February</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1926</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>August</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1926</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>December</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1926</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>May</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1927</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>December</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1927</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>June</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1928</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>April</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1929</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>November</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1929</i></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl"><i>Reprinted - - - -</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">- - - - - </td>
- <td class="tdl"><i>October</i></td>
- <td class="tdr"><i>1930</i></td></tr>
-
-</table>
-
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<p class="c less">
-<i>Made and Printed in Great Britain by<br />
-Wyman &amp; Sons, Ltd., London, Fakenham and Reading.</i>
-</p>
-
-
-
-
-<p class="c p4">
-TO<br />
-COLONEL R. E. CROMPTON, C.B., R.E.
-</p>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="ph2">CONTENTS</p>
-</div>
-
-<table cellpadding="2" summary="contents">
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdc"><span class="tiny">CHAPTER</span></td>
-<td class="tdl"></td>
-<td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">PAGE</span></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">I.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Bishop’s Handkerchief</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">13</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">II.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Henri Learns the Language</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">28</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">III.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Sweet Little Girl in White</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">43</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">IV.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William Turns over a New Leaf</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">64</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">V.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Bit of Blackmail</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">85</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">VI.</td>
-<td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">William the Money-Maker</span>”</td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">97</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">VII.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Haunted House</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">118</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">VIII.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William the Match-Maker</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">133</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">IX.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William’s Truthful Christmas</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">157</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">X.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">An Afternoon with William</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">177</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">XI.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William Spoils the Party</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">186</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">XII.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Cat and the Mouse</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">208</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">XIII.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William and Uncle George</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">217</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td class="tdr">XIV.</td>
-<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William and Saint Valentine</span></td>
-<td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">234</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">THE BISHOP’S HANDKERCHIEF</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Until</span> now William had taken no interest in his
-handkerchiefs as toilet accessories. They were greyish
-(once white) squares useful for blotting ink or carrying
-frogs or making lifelike rats to divert the long hours
-of afternoon school, but otherwise he had had no pride
-or interest in them.</p>
-
-<p>But last week, Ginger (a member of the circle
-known to themselves as the Outlaws of which William
-was the leader) had received a handkerchief as a birthday
-present from an aunt in London. William, on
-hearing the news, had jeered, but the sight of the
-handkerchief had silenced him.</p>
-
-<p>It was a large handkerchief, larger than William
-had conceived it possible for handkerchiefs to be. It
-was made of silk, and contained all the colours of the
-rainbow. Round the edge green dragons sported
-upon a red ground. Ginger displayed it at first
-deprecatingly, fully prepared for scorn and merriment,
-and for some moments the fate of the handkerchief
-hung in the balance. But there was something about
-the handkerchief that impressed them.</p>
-
-<p>“Kinder&mdash;funny,” said Henry critically.</p>
-
-<p>“Jolly big, isn’t it?” said Douglas uncertainly.</p>
-
-<p>“’S more like a <i>sheet</i>,” said William, wavering
-between scorn and admiration.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger was relieved. At any rate they had taken
-it seriously. They had not wept tears of mirth
-over it. That afternoon he drew it out of his pocket
-with a flourish and airily wiped his nose with it. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</span>
-next morning Henry appeared with a handkerchief
-almost exactly like it, and the day after that Douglas
-had one. William felt his prestige lowered. He&mdash;the
-born leader&mdash;was the only one of the select circle
-who did not possess a coloured silk handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p>That evening he approached his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think white ones is much use,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t scrape your feet on the carpet, William,”
-said his mother placidly. “I thought white ones
-were the only tame kind&mdash;not that I think your
-father will let you have any more. You know what
-he said when they got all over the floor and bit his
-finger.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not talkin’ about <i>rats</i>,” said William. “I’m
-talkin’ about handkerchiefs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh&mdash;handkerchiefs! White ones are far the
-best. They launder properly. They come out a good
-colour&mdash;at least yours don’t, but that’s because you
-get them so black&mdash;but there’s nothing better than
-white linen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pers’nally,” said William with a judicial air,
-“I think silk’s better than linen an’ white’s so tirin’
-to look at. I think a kind of colour’s better for your
-eyes. My eyes do ache a bit sometimes. I think
-it’s prob’ly with keep lookin’ at white handkerchiefs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be silly, William. I’m not going to buy
-you silk handkerchiefs to get covered with mud and
-ink and coal as yours do.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown calmly cut off her darning wool as she
-spoke, and took another sock from the pile by her chair.
-William sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I wouldn’t do those things with a <i>silk</i> one,”
-he said earnestly. “It’s only because they’re <i>cotton</i>
-ones I do those things.”</p>
-
-<p>“Linen,” corrected Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“Linen an’ cotton’s the same,” said William, “it’s
-not <i>silk</i>. I jus’ want a <i>silk</i> one with colours an’ so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</span>
-on, that’s all. That’s all I want. It’s not much.
-Just a <i>silk</i> handkerchief with colours. Surely&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m <i>not</i> going to buy you another <i>thing</i>, William,”
-said Mrs. Brown firmly. “I had to get you a new
-suit and new collars only last month, and your overcoat’s
-dreadful, because you <i>will</i> crawl through the ditch
-in it&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>William resented this cowardly change of attack.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not talkin’ about suits an’ collars an’ overcoats
-an’ so on&mdash;&mdash;” he said; “I’m talkin’ about
-<i>handkerchiefs</i>. I simply ask you if&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“If you want a silk handkerchief, William,” said
-Mrs. Brown decisively, “you’ll have to buy one.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well!” said William, aghast at the unfairness
-of the remark&mdash;“Well, jus’ fancy you sayin’ that to
-me when you know I’ve not got any money, when you
-<i>know</i> I’m not even <i>going</i> to have any money for years
-an’ years an’ years.”</p>
-
-<p>“You shouldn’t have broken the landing-window,”
-said Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>William was pained and disappointed. He had no
-illusions about his father and elder brother, but he had
-expected more feeling and sympathy from his mother.</p>
-
-<p>Determinedly, but not very hopefully, he went to
-his father, who was reading a newspaper in the library.</p>
-
-<p>“You know, father,” said William confidingly,
-taking his seat upon the newspaper rack, “I think
-white ones is all right for children&mdash;and so on. Wot
-I mean to say is that when you get older coloured
-ones is better.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really?” said his father politely.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said William, encouraged. “They wouldn’t
-show dirt so, either&mdash;not like white ones do. An’
-they’re bigger, too. They’d be cheaper in the end.
-They wouldn’t cost so much for laundry&mdash;an’ so on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly,” murmured his father, turning over to
-the next page.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William boldly, “if you’d very kin’ly
-buy me some, or one would do, or I could buy them
-or it if you’d jus’ give me&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“As I haven’t the remotest idea what you’re
-talking about,” said his father, “I don’t see how I
-can. Would you be so very kind as to remove yourself
-from the newspaper rack for a minute and let me
-get the evening paper? I’m so sorry to trouble you.
-Thank you so much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Handkerchiefs!” said William impatiently. “I
-keep telling you. It’s <i>handkerchiefs</i>. I jus’ want a
-nice silk-coloured one, ’cause I think it would last
-longer and be cheaper in the wash. That’s all. I
-think the ones I have makes such a lot of trouble for
-the laundry. I jus’&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Though deeply moved by your consideration for
-other people,” said Mr. Brown, as he ran his eye down
-the financial column, “I may as well save you any
-further waste of your valuable time and eloquence by
-informing you at once that you won’t get a halfpenny
-out of me if you talk till midnight.”</p>
-
-<p>William went with silent disgust and slow dignity
-from the room.</p>
-
-<p>Next he investigated Robert’s bedroom. He opened
-Robert’s dressing-table drawer and turned over his
-handkerchiefs. He caught his breath with surprise
-and pleasure. There it was beneath all Robert’s other
-handkerchiefs&mdash;larger, silkier, more multi-coloured
-than Ginger’s or Douglas’s or Henry’s. He gazed at
-it in ecstatic joy. He slipped it into his pocket and,
-standing before the looking-glass, took it out with a
-flourish, shaking its lustrous folds. He was absorbed
-in this occupation when Robert entered. Robert
-looked at him with elder-brother disapproval.</p>
-
-<p>“I told you that if I caught you playing monkey
-tricks in my room again&mdash;&mdash;” he began threateningly,
-glancing suspiciously at the bed, in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</span>
-“apple-pie” arrangements of which William was
-an expert.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not, Robert,” said William with disarming
-innocence. “Honest I’m not. I jus’ wanted to
-borrow a handkerchief. I thought you wun’t mind
-lendin’ me a handkerchief.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I would,” said Robert shortly, “so you can
-jolly well clear out.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was this one I thought you wun’t mind lendin’
-me,” said William. “I wun’t take one of your nice
-white ones, but I thought you wun’t mind me having
-this ole coloured dirty-looking one.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you? Well, give it back to me.”</p>
-
-<p>Reluctantly William handed it back to Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“How much’ll you give it me for?” he said shortly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how much have you?” said Robert
-ruthlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothin’&mdash;not jus’ at present,” admitted William.
-“But I’d <i>do</i> something for you for it. I’d do
-anythin’ you want done for it. You just tell me
-what to do for it, an’ I’ll <i>do</i> it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you can&mdash;you can get the Bishop’s
-handkerchief for me, and then I’ll give mine to you.”</p>
-
-<p>The trouble with Robert was that he imagined
-himself a wit.</p>
-
-<p>The trouble with William was that he took things
-literally.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop was expected in the village the next
-day. It was the great event of the summer. He was
-a distant relation of the Vicar’s. He was to open
-the Sale of Work, address a large meeting on
-temperance, spend the night at the vicarage, and
-depart the next morning.</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop was a fatherly, simple-minded old
-man of seventy. He enjoyed the Sale of Work except
-for one thing. Wherever he looked he met the gaze<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</span>
-of a freckled untidy frowning small boy. He could
-not understand it. The boy seemed to be everywhere.
-The boy seemed to follow him about. He
-came to the conclusion that it must be his imagination,
-but it made him feel vaguely uneasy.</p>
-
-<p>Then he addressed the meeting on Temperance,
-his audience consisting chiefly of adults. But, in the
-very front seat, the same earnest frowning boy fixed
-him with a determined gaze. When the Bishop
-first encountered this gaze he became slightly disconcerted,
-and lost his place in his notes. Then he tried
-to forget the disturbing presence and address his
-remarks to the middle of the hall. But there was
-something hypnotic in the small boy’s gaze. In the
-end the Bishop yielded to it. He fixed his eyes
-obediently upon William. He harangued William
-earnestly and forcibly upon the necessity of self-control
-and the effect of alcohol upon the liver. And
-William returned his gaze unblinkingly.</p>
-
-<p>After the meeting William wandered down the
-road to the Vicarage. He pondered gloomily over
-his wasted afternoon. Fate had not thrown the
-Bishop’s handkerchief in his path. But he did not
-yet despair.</p>
-
-<p>On the way he met Ginger. Ginger drew out his
-interminable coloured handkerchief and shook it
-proudly.</p>
-
-<p>“D’ye mean to <i>say</i>,” he said to William, “that
-you still use those old <i>white</i> ones?”</p>
-
-<p>William looked at him with cold scorn.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m too busy to bother with you jus’ now,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger went on.</p>
-
-<p>William looked cautiously through the Vicarage
-hedge. Nothing was to be seen. He crawled inside
-the garden and round to the back of the house, which
-was invisible from the road. The Bishop was tired<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</span>
-after his address. He lay outstretched upon a deck-chair
-beneath a tree.</p>
-
-<p>Over the head and face of His Lordship was stretched
-a large superfine linen handkerchief. William’s set
-stern expression brightened. On hands and knees he
-began to crawl through the grass towards the portly
-form, his tongue protruding from his pursed lips.</p>
-
-<p>Crouching behind the chair, he braced himself for
-the crime; he measured the distance between the chair
-and the garden gate.</p>
-
-<p>One, two, three&mdash;then suddenly the portly form
-stirred, the handkerchief was firmly withdrawn by a
-podgy hand, and a dignified voice yawned and said:
-“Heigh-ho!”</p>
-
-<p>At the same moment the Bishop sat up. William,
-from his refuge behind the chair, looked wildly round.
-The door of the house was opening. There was only
-one thing to do. William was as nimble as a monkey.
-Like a flash of lightning he disappeared up the tree.
-It was a very leafy tree. It completely concealed
-William, but William had a good bird’s eye view of the
-world beneath him. The Vicar came out rubbing
-his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“You rested, my Lord?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid I’ve had forty winks,” said His Lordship
-pleasantly. “Just dropped off, you know. I
-dreamt about that boy who was at the meeting this
-afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>“What boy, my Lord?” asked the Vicar.</p>
-
-<p>“I noticed him at the Sale of Work and the meeting&mdash;he
-looked&mdash;he looked a soulful boy. I daresay
-you know him.”</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar considered.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t think of any boy round here like that,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig3.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">THE BENT PIN CAUGHT THE BISHOP’S EAR,<br />
-AND THE BISHOP SAT UP WITH A<br />
-LITTLE SCREAM.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Bishop sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“He may have been a stranger, of course,” he said<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</span>
-meditatively.
-“It seemed an
-earnest <i>questing</i>
-face&mdash;as
-if the boy
-wanted something&mdash;<i>needed</i>
-something. I
-hope my little
-talk helped
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Without
-doubt it did,
-my Lord,” said
-the Vicar
-politely. “I
-thought we
-might dine out
-here&mdash;the
-days draw out
-so pleasantly
-now.”</p>
-
-<p>Up in his
-tree, William
-with smirks
-and hand-rubbing
-and mincing
-(though
-soundless)
-movements of
-his lips kept
-up a running
-imitation of
-the Vicar’s
-speech, for the edification apparently of a caterpillar
-which was watching him intently.</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar went in to order dinner in the garden.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</span>
-The Bishop drew the
-delicate handkerchief
-once more over his
-rubicund features. In
-the tree William
-abandoned his airy
-pastime, and his face
-took on again the
-expression of soulful
-earnestness that had
-pleased the Bishop.</p>
-
-<p>The breast of the
-Bishop on the lawn
-began to rise and sink.
-The figure of the Vicar
-was visible at the
-study window as he
-gazed with fond pride
-upon the slumbers of
-his distinguished
-guest. William dared
-not descend in view of
-that watching figure.
-Finally it sat down in
-a chair by the window
-and began to read a
-book.</p>
-
-
-
-<p>Then William began
-to act. He took from
-his pocket a bent pin
-attached to a piece of
-string. This apparatus lived permanently in his
-pocket, because he had not given up hope of
-catching a trout in the village stream. He lowered
-this cautiously and drew the bent pin carefully on
-to the white linen expanse.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig4.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">FROM THE TREE WILLIAM MADE A<br />
-LAST DESPERATE EFFORT.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It caught&mdash;joy!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Phut!” said the Bishop, bringing down his hand
-heavily, not on the pin, but near it.</p>
-
-<p>The pin was loosened&mdash;William drew it back
-cautiously up into the tree, and the Bishop settled
-himself once more to his slumbers.</p>
-
-<p>Again the pin descended&mdash;again it caught.</p>
-
-<p>“Phut!” said the Bishop, testily shaking the
-handkerchief, and again loosening the pin.</p>
-
-<p>Leaning down from his leafy retreat William made
-one last desperate effort. He drew the bent pin
-sharply across. It missed the handkerchief and it
-caught the Bishop’s ear. The Bishop sat up with a
-scream. William, pin and string, withdrew into the
-shade of the branches. “Crumbs!” said William
-desperately to the caterpillar, “talk about bad
-<i>luck!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar ran out from the house, full of concern
-at the sound of the Bishop’s scream.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been badly stung in the ear by some insect,”
-said the Bishop in a voice that was pained and
-dignified. “Some virulent tropical insect, I should
-think&mdash;very painful. Very painful indeed&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“My Lord,” said the Vicar, “I am so sorry&mdash;so
-very sorry&mdash;a thousand pardons&mdash;can I procure some
-remedy for you&mdash;vaseline, ammonia&mdash;er&mdash;cold
-cream&mdash;&mdash;?” Up in the tree the pantomimic
-imitation of him went on much to William’s
-satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, no, no,” snapped the Bishop. “This
-must be a bad place for insects, that’s all. Even
-before that some heavy creatures came banging
-against my handkerchief. I put my handkerchief
-over my face for a protection. If I had failed to do
-that I should have been badly stung.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we dine indoors, then, my Lord?” said
-the Vicar.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, no, NO!” said the Bishop impatiently.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Vicar sat down upon his chair. William
-collected a handful of acorns and began to drop them
-one by one upon the Vicar’s bald head. He did this
-simply because he could not help it. The sight of
-the Vicar’s bald head was irresistible. Each time an
-acorn struck the Vicar’s bald head it bounced up into
-the air, and the Vicar put up his hand and rubbed his
-head. At first he tried to continue his conversation
-on the state of the parish finances with the Bishop,
-but his replies became distrait and incoherent. He
-moved his chair slightly. William moved the position
-of his arm and continued to drop acorns.</p>
-
-<p>At last the Bishop noticed it.</p>
-
-<p>“The acorns seem to be falling,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar rubbed his head again.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t they?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Rather early,” commented the Bishop.</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it?” he said as another acorn bounced
-upon his head.</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop began to take quite an interest in the
-unusual phenomenon.</p>
-
-<p>“I shouldn’t be surprised if there was some sort
-of blight in that tree,” he said. “It would account
-for the premature dropping of the acorns and for
-the insects that attacked me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly,” said the Vicar irritably, as yet another
-acorn hit him. William’s aim was unerring.</p>
-
-<p>Here a diversion was caused by the maid who came
-out to lay the table. They watched her in silence.
-The Vicar moved his chair again, and William, after
-pocketing his friend the caterpillar, shifted his position
-in the tree again to get a better aim.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know,” said the Bishop, “I believe that
-there is a cat in the tree. Several times I have heard
-a slight rustling.”</p>
-
-<p>It would have been better for William to remain
-silent, but William’s genius occasionally misled him.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</span>
-He was anxious to prevent investigation; to prove
-once for all his identity as a cat.</p>
-
-<p>He leant forward and uttered a re-echoing
-“Mi-<i>aw-aw-aw!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>As imitations go it was rather good.</p>
-
-<p>There was a slight silence. Then:</p>
-
-<p>“It <i>is</i> a cat,” said the Bishop in triumph.</p>
-
-<p>“Excuse me, my Lord,” said the Vicar.</p>
-
-<p>He went softly into the house and returned holding
-a shoe.</p>
-
-<p>“This will settle his feline majesty,” he smiled.</p>
-
-<p>Then he hurled the shoe violently into the tree.</p>
-
-<p>“Sh! Scoot!” he said as he did it.</p>
-
-<p>William was annoyed. The shoe narrowly missed
-his face. He secured it and waited.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope you haven’t lost the shoe,” said the Bishop
-anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no. The gardener’s boy or someone will
-get it for me. It’s the best thing to do with cats.
-It’s probably scared it on to the roof.”</p>
-
-<p>He settled himself in his chair comfortably with a
-smile.</p>
-
-<p>William leant down, held the shoe deliberately
-over the bald head, then dropped it.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Damn!</i>” said the Vicar. “Excuse me, my Lord.”</p>
-
-<p>“H’m,” said the Bishop. “Er&mdash;yes&mdash;most
-annoying. It lodged in a branch for a time probably,
-and then obeyed the force of gravity.”</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar was rubbing his head. William wanted
-to enjoy the sight of the Vicar rubbing his head.
-He moved a little further up the branch. He forgot
-all caution. He forgot that the branch on which
-he was was not a very secure branch, and that the
-further up he moved the less secure it became.</p>
-
-<p>There was the sound of a rending and a crashing,
-and on to the table between the amazed Vicar and
-Bishop descended William’s branch and William.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Bishop gazed at him. “Why, that’s the boy,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>William sat up among the debris of broken glasses
-and crockery. He discovered that he was bruised
-and that his hand was cut by one of the broken glasses.
-He extricated himself from the branch and the table,
-and stood rubbing his bruises and sucking his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” was all he said.</p>
-
-<p>The Vicar was gazing at him speechlessly.</p>
-
-<p>“You know, my boy,” said the Bishop in mild
-reproach, “that’s a very curious thing to do&mdash;to
-hide up there for the purpose of eavesdropping. I
-know that you are an earnest, well-meaning little boy,
-and that you were interested in my address this afternoon,
-and I daresay you were hoping to listen to me
-again, but this is my time for relaxation, you know.
-Suppose the Vicar and I had been talking about something
-we didn’t want you to hear? I’m sure you
-wouldn’t like to listen to things people didn’t want
-you to hear, would you?”</p>
-
-<p>William stared at him in unconcealed amazement.
-The Vicar, with growing memories of acorns and shoes
-and “damns” and with murder in his heart, was
-picking up twigs and broken glass. He knew that
-he could not, in the Bishop’s presence, say the things
-to William and do the things to William that he wanted
-to do and say. He contented himself with saying:</p>
-
-<p>“You’d better go home now. Tell your father
-I’ll be coming to see him to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“A well-meaning little boy, I’m sure,” said the
-Bishop kindly, “well-meaning, but unwise&mdash;er&mdash;unwise&mdash;but
-your attentiveness during the meeting
-did you credit, my boy&mdash;did you credit.”</p>
-
-<p>William, for all his ingenuity, could think of no
-remark suitable to the occasion.</p>
-
-<p>“Hurry up,” said the Vicar.</p>
-
-<p>William turned to go. He knew when he was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</span>
-beaten. He had spent a lot of time and trouble and
-had not even secured the episcopal handkerchief. He
-had bruised himself and cut himself. He understood
-the Vicar’s veiled threat. He saw his already distant
-chances of pocket-money vanish into nothingness
-when the cost of the Vicar’s glasses and plates was
-added to the landing window. He wouldn’t have
-minded if he’d got the handkerchief. He wouldn’t
-have minded anything if&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t suck your hand, my boy,” said the Bishop.
-“An open cut like that is most dangerous. Poison
-works into the system by it. You remember I told
-you how the poison of alcohol works into the system&mdash;well,
-any kind of poison can work into it by a cut&mdash;don’t
-suck it; keep it covered up&mdash;haven’t you a
-handkerchief?&mdash;here, take mine. You needn’t trouble
-to return it. It’s an old one.”</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop was deeply touched by what he called
-the “bright spirituality” of the smile with which
-William thanked him.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William, limping slightly, his hand covered by a
-grimy rag, came out into the garden, drawing from
-his pocket with a triumphant flourish an enormous
-violently-coloured silk handkerchief. Robert, who
-was weeding the rose-bed, looked up. “Here,” he
-called, “you can jolly well go and put that
-handkerchief of mine back.”</p>
-
-<p>William continued his limping but proud advance.</p>
-
-<p>“’S’ all right,” he called airily, “the Bishop’s is
-on your dressing-table.”</p>
-
-<p>Robert dropped the trowel.</p>
-
-<p>“Gosh!” he gasped, and hastened indoors to
-investigate.</p>
-
-<p>William went down to the gate, smiling very slightly
-to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“The days are drawing out so pleasantly,” he was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</span>
-saying to himself in a mincing accent. “Vaseline&mdash;ammonia&mdash;er&mdash;or
-cold cream&mdash;&mdash;Damn!”</p>
-
-<p>He leant over the gate, took out his caterpillar,
-satisfied himself that it was still alive, put it back
-and looked up and down the road. In the distance
-he caught sight of the figure of his friend.</p>
-
-<p>“Gin&mdash;<i>ger</i>,” he yelled in hideous shrillness.</p>
-
-<p>He waved his coloured handkerchief carelessly in
-greeting as he called. Then he swaggered out into
-the road....</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">HENRI LEARNS THE LANGUAGE</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was Joan who drew William and the Outlaws
-from their immemorial practice of playing at Pirates
-and Red Indians.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m tired of being a squaw,” she said plaintively,
-“an’ I’m tired of walking the plank an’ I want to
-be something else an’ do something else.”</p>
-
-<p>Joan was the only girl whose existence the Outlaws
-officially recognised. This was partly owing to Joan’s
-own personal attractiveness and partly to the fact
-that an admiration for Joan was the only human
-weakness of their manly leader, William. Thus
-Joan was admitted to all such games as required the
-female element. The others she was graciously
-allowed to watch.</p>
-
-<p>They received her outburst with pained
-astonishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Ginger coldly, “wot else is there
-to do an’ be?”</p>
-
-<p>Ginger felt that the very foundation of the Society
-of Outlaws was being threatened. The Outlaws had
-played at Red Indians and Pirates since their
-foundation.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s play at being ordinary people,” said Joan.</p>
-
-<p>“Ordinary people&mdash;&mdash;!” exploded Douglas.
-“There’s no <i>playin’</i> in bein’ <i>ordinary</i> people. Wot’s
-the good&mdash;&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s be Jasmine Villas,” said Joan, warming to her
-theme. “We’ll each be a person in Jasmine Villas&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>William, who had so far preserved a judicial silence,
-now said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’ mind playin’ ornery people s’long as we
-don’ do ornery things.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, William,” said Joan with the air of meekness
-with which she always received William’s oracles,
-“we needn’t do ornery things.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then bags me be ole Mr. Burwash.”</p>
-
-<p>“And me Miss Milton next door,” said Joan hastily.</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws were beginning to see vague possibilities
-in the game.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ me Mr. Luton,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ me Mr. Buck,” said Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>Henry, the remaining outlaw, looked around him
-indignantly. Jasmine Villas only contained four
-houses.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ wot about <i>me?</i>” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you be a policeman wot walks about outside,”
-said William.</p>
-
-<p>Henry, mollified, began to practise a commanding
-strut.</p>
-
-<p>In the field behind the old barn that was the scene
-of most of their activities they began to construct
-Jasmine Villas by boundary lines of twigs. Each
-inhabitant took up their position inside a twig-encircled
-enclosure, and Henry paraded officiously around.</p>
-
-<p>“Now we’ll jus’ have a minute to think of what
-things to do,” said William, “an’ then I’ll begin.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William was sitting in his back garden thinking
-out exploits to perform that afternoon in the character
-of Mr. Burwash. The game of Jasmine Villas had
-“taken on” beyond all expectation. Mr. Burwash
-stole Miss Milton’s washing during her afternoon
-siesta, Mr. Buck locked up Mr. Luton in his coal
-cellar and ate up all his provisions, and always the
-entire population of Jasmine Villas was chased round
-the field by Henry, the policeman, several times
-during a game. Often some of them were arrested,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</span>
-tried, condemned and imprisoned by the stalwart
-Henry, to be rescued later by a joint force of the
-other inhabitants of Jasmine Villas.</p>
-
-<p>William, sitting on an inverted flower pot, absent-mindedly
-chewing grass and throwing sticks for his
-mongrel, Jumble, to worry, was wondering whether
-(in his rôle of Mr. Burwash) it would be more exciting
-to go mad and resist the ubiquitous Henry’s efforts
-to take him to an asylum, or marry Miss Milton.
-The only drawback to the latter plan was that they
-had provided no clergyman. However, perhaps a
-policeman would do.... Finally he decided that it
-would be more exciting to go mad and leave Miss
-Milton to someone else.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ello!”</p>
-
-<p>A thin, lugubrious face appeared over the fence
-that separated William’s garden from the next door
-garden.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ello!” replied William, throwing it a cold glance
-and returning to his pastime of entertaining Jumble.</p>
-
-<p>“I weesh to leearn ze Eengleesh,” went on the
-owner of the lugubrious face. “My godmother ’ere
-she talk ze correct Eengleesh. It ees ze idiomatic
-Eengleesh I weesh to leearn&mdash;how you call it?&mdash;ze
-slang. You talk ze slang&mdash;ees it not?”</p>
-
-<p>William gave the intruder a devastating glare,
-gathering up his twigs and with a commanding “Hi,
-Jumble,” set off round the side of the house.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, William!”</p>
-
-<p>William sighed as he recognised his mother’s voice.
-This was followed by his mother’s head which appeared
-at the open drawing-room window.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m busy <i>jus’</i> now&mdash;&mdash;” said William sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“William, Mrs. Frame next door has a godson
-staying with her and he is so anxious to mix with
-boys and learn colloquial English. I’ve asked him
-to tea this afternoon. Oh here he is.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</span></p>
-
-<p>The owner of the thin lugubrious face&mdash;a young
-man of about eighteen&mdash;appeared behind William.</p>
-
-<p>“I made a way&mdash;’ow say you?&mdash;through a ’ole
-in ze fence. I weeshed to talk wiz ze boy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, now, William,” said Mrs. Brown persuasively,
-“you might spend the afternoon with Henri and
-talk to him.”</p>
-
-<p>William’s face was a study in horror and indignation.</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t know what to say to him,” he said
-desperately. “I can’t talk his kind of talk.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure that’ll be quite all right,” said Mrs.
-Brown, kindly. “He speaks English very well.
-Just talk to him simply and naturally.”</p>
-
-<p>She brought the argument to an end by closing
-the window and leaving an embittered William to
-undertake his new responsibility.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ave you a ’oliday zis afternoon,” began his new
-responsibility.</p>
-
-<p>“I ’ave,” said William simply and naturally.</p>
-
-<p>“Zen we weel talk,” said Henri with enthusiasm.
-“We weel talk an’ you weel teach to me ze slang.”</p>
-
-<p>“’Fraid I’ve gotter play a game this afternoon,”
-said William icily as they set off down the road.</p>
-
-<p>“I weel play,” said Henri pleasantly, “I like ze
-games.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m fraid,” said William with equal pleasantness,
-“there won’t be no room for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I weel watch zen,” said Henri, “I like too ze
-watching.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Henri, who had spent the afternoon watching the
-game, was on his way home. He had enjoyed watching
-the game. He had watched a realistically insane
-Mr. Burwash resist all attempts at capture on the
-part of the local policeman. He had watched Mr.
-Luton propose to Miss Milton, and he had watched
-Mr. Buck in his end house being gloriously and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</span>
-realistically drunk. This was an accomplishment of
-Douglas’s that was forbidden at home under threat
-of severe punishment, but it was greatly appreciated
-by the Outlaws.</p>
-
-<p>Henri walked along jauntily, practising slang to
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, ze Crumbs ... oh, ze Crikey ... ze jolly
-well ... righto ... git out ... ze bash on the
-mug....”</p>
-
-<p>General Moult&mdash;fat and important-looking&mdash;came
-breezily down the road.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Henri ... how are you getting on?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ze jolly well,” said Henri.</p>
-
-<p>“Been for a walk?” said the General yet more
-breezily.</p>
-
-<p>“Non.... I been to Jasmine Villas.... Oh,
-ze Crumbs.... I see ole Meester Burwash go&mdash;’ow
-you say it?&mdash;off ze head&mdash;out of ze chump.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>What?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Henri, “an’ the policeman ’e come
-an’ try to take ’im away an’ ’e fight an’ fight, an’
-ze policeman ’e go for ’elp&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The General’s mouth was hanging open in
-amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“B-but, are you <i>sure?</i>” he gasped.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Henri cheerfully. “I ’ave <i>been</i>
-zere. I ’ave ze jolly well watch eet.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, good heavens!” said the General, and
-hastened in the direction of Jasmine Villas.</p>
-
-<p>Henri sauntered on by himself.</p>
-
-<p>“Ze ’oly aunt ... a’right ... ze boose ...” he
-murmured softly.</p>
-
-<p>At the corner of the road he ran into Mr. Graham
-Graham. Mr. Graham Graham was tall and lank,
-with pince-nez and an earnest expression. Mr.
-Graham Graham’s earnest expression did not belie
-his character. He was, among other things, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</span>
-President of the local Temperance Society. He had
-met Henri with his godmother the day before.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Henri,” he said earnestly. “And how
-have you been spending your time?”</p>
-
-<p>“I ’ave been to Jasmine Villas,” said Henri.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, yes&mdash;to whom&mdash;&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>Henri interrupted.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I ’ave seen Meester Buck ... oh, ze crumbs
-... ’ow say you? ... tight ... boozed ... derrunk.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Graham Graham paled.</p>
-
-<p>“Never!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Buck was the Secretary of the local Temperance
-Society.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, ze ’oly aunt!” said Henri, “ze policeman
-’e ’elp ’im into the ’ouse&mdash;’e was, ’ow say you?
-ro-o-o-o-olling.”</p>
-
-<p>“This is impossible,” said Mr. Graham Graham
-sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“I ’ave seed it,” said Henri simply. “I laugh ...
-oh, ze Crikey ... <i>’ow</i> I laugh....”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Graham Graham turned upon Henri a cold
-condemning silent glance then set off in the direction
-of Jasmine Villas.</p>
-
-<p>Henri wandered homewards.</p>
-
-<p>He met his godmother coming out of her front gate.</p>
-
-<p>“We’re going to Mrs. Brown’s to tea, you know,
-Henri,” she reminded him.</p>
-
-<p>“A’right,” said Henri. “A’right&mdash;righto.”</p>
-
-<p>He accompanied her to Mrs. Brown’s.</p>
-
-<p>“And did you spend the afternoon with William?”
-said Mrs. Brown pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Henri as he sat down comfortably
-by the fire, “at ze Jasmine Villas.... Mr. Luton
-’e kees Miss Milton in the garden.”</p>
-
-<p>Henri’s godmother dropped her buttered scone.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Nonsense!</i>” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“’E did,” said Henri calmly. “I ’ave seed ’im.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</span>
-An’ she gave ’im&mdash;’ow say you?&mdash;ze bash on ze
-mug. But she tell me she goin’ to marry ’im&mdash;righto.”</p>
-
-<p>“She <i>told</i> you?” gasped Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Henri, “she tell me so ’erself.”</p>
-
-<p>Both Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother were pale.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think she doesn’t know that he’s married
-and separated from his wife?” said Henri’s godmother.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Mrs. Brown. “I feel that I
-can’t eat a thing now. Someone ought to tell her
-at once.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s go,” said Henri’s godmother suddenly,
-“before she tells anyone else. The poor woman!”</p>
-
-<p>They went out quickly, leaving Henri alone in the
-drawing-room. Henri chose a large sugared cake and
-began to munch it.</p>
-
-<p>“Ze jolly well good,” he commented contentedly.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The General approached Mr. Burwash’s house
-cautiously. There was no sign of a disturbance.
-Evidently the policeman had not yet returned with
-help. The General entered the garden and went on
-tiptoe to the morning-room window. He was full
-of curiosity. There was the madman. He was
-sitting at a table with his back to the window. There
-was a mad look about his very back. The General
-was suddenly inspired by the idea of making the
-capture single-handed. It would be a glorious page
-in the annals of the village. The front door was
-open. The General entered and walked very slowly
-down the hall. The morning-room door was open.
-It was here that the General made the painful discovery
-that his boots squeaked. The squeaking would
-undoubtedly attract the attention of the lunatic
-as he entered. The General had another inspiration.
-He dropped down upon his hands and knees. He
-could thus make his way unseen and unheard to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</span>
-back of the madman, then spring to his feet and
-overpower him.</p>
-
-<p>He entered the room.</p>
-
-<p>He reached the middle of the room.</p>
-
-<p>Then Mr. Burwash turned round.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Burwash was met by the sight of the General
-creeping gingerly and delicately across his morning-room
-carpet on hands and knees. Mr. Burwash leapt
-to the not unreasonable conclusion that the General
-had gone mad. Mr. Burwash knew that a madman
-must be humoured. He also dropped upon his
-hands and knees.</p>
-
-<p>“Bow-wow!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>If the General thought he was a dog, the General
-must be humoured.</p>
-
-<p>“Bow-wow!” promptly replied the General.</p>
-
-<p>The General also knew that madmen must be
-humoured.</p>
-
-<p>They continued this conversation for several minutes.</p>
-
-<p>Then Mr. Burwash, intent on escape, made a leap
-towards the door, and the General, intent on capture,
-made a leap to intercept him.</p>
-
-<p>They leapt about the room excitedly uttering
-short, shrill barks. The General never quite knew
-what made him change into a cat. It was partly
-that he was tired of barking and partly that he hoped
-to lure Mr. Burwash after him into the more open
-space of the hall and there overpower him. Mr.
-Burwash’s pursuit was realistic, and the General,
-violently chased into the hall, decided to leave the
-capture to the police after all, and made for the hall
-door. But a furiously barking Mr. Burwash cut off
-his retreat. The General, still miaowing unconsciously
-in a high treble voice, scampered on all fours
-up the stairs and took refuge in a small room at the
-top, slamming the door against the pursuing lunatic.
-The key was turned in the lock from outside.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</span></p>
-
-<p>At the top of the stairs Mr. Burwash stood trembling
-slightly, and wiped his brow. A violent sound of
-kicking came from the locked room.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother heard vaguely
-the distant sounds of the kicking next door, but their
-delicate interview with Miss Milton was taking all
-their attention.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Milton, who had been to see a girl whom she
-was engaging as housemaid for Mr. Luton, was just
-taking off her things. Miss Milton kept a purely
-maternal eye upon Mr. Luton.</p>
-
-<p>“You know, dear,” said Henri’s godmother, “we
-felt we had to come and tell you as soon as we heard
-the news. He’s got one already.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who?” said Miss Milton, angular and severe
-looking.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Luton.”</p>
-
-<p>“He might have told me,” said Miss Milton.</p>
-
-<p>“But she’s left him,” put in Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I’d better see about providing him with
-another,” said Miss Milton.</p>
-
-<p>“She&mdash;she’s not divorced,” gasped Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“I should hope not,” said Miss Milton primly.
-“I’m always most particular about that sort of thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“But when we heard he’d been seen kissing
-you&mdash;&mdash;” said Henri’s godmother.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Milton gave a piercing scream.</p>
-
-<p>“ME?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, when we heard that Mr. Luton had been
-seen&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Milton gave a still more piercing scream.</p>
-
-<p>“Slanderers,” she shrieked, “vampires....”</p>
-
-<p>She advanced upon them quivering with rage.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so sorry,” gasped Mrs. Brown retreating
-precipitately. “Quite a mistake ... a misunderstanding....”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Liars ... hypocrites ... snakes in the grass!”
-screamed Miss Milton, still advancing.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown and Henri’s godmother fled trembling
-to the road. Miss Milton’s screams still rent the air.
-There, two curious sights met their eyes. The General
-and Mr. Graham Graham were making their exits
-from the two end houses in unconventional fashion.
-Mr. Graham Graham fell down the steps and rolled
-down the garden path to the road. An infuriated
-Mr. Buck watched his departure.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll teach you to come and insult respectable
-people,” shouted Mr. Buck. “Drunkard
-indeed! And I’ve been Secretary of the Temperance
-Society for forty years. You’re drunk, let me
-tell you&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Graham Graham, still sitting in the road, put on
-his hat.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not drunk,” he said with dignity.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll have the law on you,” shouted Mr. Buck.
-“It’s libel, that’s what it is&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Graham Graham gathered together his collar
-ends and tried to find his stud.</p>
-
-<p>“I merely repeat what I’ve heard,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Buck slammed the door and Mr. Graham Graham
-staggered to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>Then he stood open-mouthed, his eyes fixed on
-the other end house. The stout figure of the General
-could be seen emerging from a small first floor window
-and making a slow and ungraceful descent down a
-drain pipe. It was noticed that he had no hat and
-that his knees were very dusty. Once on the ground
-he ran wildly across the garden into the road, almost
-charging the little group who were watching him.
-With pale, horror-struck faces the four of them gazed
-at each other.</p>
-
-<p>“Henri told me&mdash;&mdash;” all four began simultaneously,
-then stopped.</p>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</span></p>
-<p>“D-do come and have some tea,” said Mrs. Brown
-hysterically.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig5.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">AT THE WINDOW HENRI EXCLAIMED SHRILLY, “OH, ZE<br />
-’OLY AUNT!” AND THE OUTLAWS HASTILY JOINED HIM.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>William was leading his Outlaws quietly round
-from the front gate to the back of the house, passing
-the drawing-room window on tiptoe. Suddenly
-William stopped dead, gazing with interest into the
-drawing-room. The expected tea party was not
-there. Only Henri still eating sugar cakes, was there.
-William put his head through the open window.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig6.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">FOUR PEOPLE WERE COMING DOWN THE<br />
-ROAD&mdash;FOUR VERY ANGRY PEOPLE.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“I say,” he said in a hoarse whisper, “they been
-an’ gone?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” smiled Henri, “they been an’ gone&mdash;righto.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come on!” said William to his followers.</p>
-
-<p>They crept into the hall and then guiltily into the
-drawing-room. William looked at the plates of
-dainty food with widening eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Shu’ly,” he remarked plaintively, “’f they’ve
-been an’ gone they can’t mind us jus’ finishin’ up what
-they’ve left. <i>Shu’ly.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>William made this statement less at the dictates
-of truth than at the dictates of an empty stomach.</p>
-
-<p>“Jus’&mdash;jus’ look out of the window, Ongry,” he
-said, “an’ tell us if anyone comes.”</p>
-
-<p>Henri obligingly took up his position at the window
-and the Outlaws gave themselves up whole-heartedly
-to the task of “finishing up.”</p>
-
-<p>They finished up the buttered scones and they
-finished up the bread and butter and they finished up
-the sandwiches and they finished up the biscuits
-and they finished up the small cakes and they finished
-up the two large cakes.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m jus’ a bit tired of this ole Jasmine Villas
-game,” said William, his mouth full of sugar cake.
-“I votes we go back to Pirates an’ Red Injuns
-to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws, who were still busy, agreed with
-grunts.</p>
-
-<p>“I think&mdash;&mdash;” began Douglas, but just then Henri
-at the window ejaculated shrilly, “Oh, ze ’oly aunt.”</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws hastily joined him. Four people
-were coming down the road. The General&mdash;<i>could</i> it
-be the General? (the drain pipe had been very dirty)&mdash;Mr.
-Graham Graham, his collar open, his tie awry,
-Henri’s godmother with her hat on one side, and Mrs.
-Brown, her usual look of placid equanimity replaced
-by a look that was almost wild. They were certainly
-coming to the Browns’ house. William looked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</span>
-guiltily at the empty plates and cakestand. Except
-upon the carpet (for the Outlaws were not born
-drawing-room eaters) there was not a crumb to be seen.</p>
-
-<p>“P’raps,” said William hastily to his friends,
-“p’raps we’d better go now.”</p>
-
-<p>His friends agreed.</p>
-
-<p>They went as quietly and unostentatiously as
-possible by way of the back regions.</p>
-
-<p>Henri remained at the window. He watched the
-curious quartette as they came in at the gate.</p>
-
-<p>Details of their appearance, unnoticed before,
-became clear as they drew nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Ze Crumbs <i>an’</i> ze Crikey!” ejaculated Henri.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It was two hours later. William sat disconsolately
-upon the upturned plant pot throwing stones half-heartedly
-at the fence. Jumble sat disconsolately
-by him snapping half-heartedly at flies. The
-Outlaws had nobly shared the sugar cakes with
-Jumble and he was just beginning to wish that
-they hadn’t....</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Henri’s face appeared at the top of the
-fence.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ello!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“’Ello!” sighed William.</p>
-
-<p>“Zey talk to me,” said Henri sadly, “<i>’ow</i> zey
-talk to me jus’ because I tell ’em about your leetle
-game.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said William bitterly, “and <i>’ow</i> they talk
-to me jus’ ’cause we finished up a few ole cakes and
-things left over from tea. You’d think to hear ’em
-that they’d have been glad to come home and find
-me starved dead.”</p>
-
-<p>Henri leant yet further over the fence.</p>
-
-<p>“But zey looked ... <i>’ow</i> zey looked!”</p>
-
-<p>There was silence for a moment while the mental
-vision of “’ow zey looked” came to both. Then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</span>
-William’s rare laugh&mdash;unmusical and penetrating&mdash;rang
-out. Mrs. Brown, who was suffering from a
-severe headache as the result of the events of the
-afternoon, hastily closed the drawing-room window.
-Followed Henri’s laugh&mdash;high-pitched and like the
-neighing of a horse. Henri’s godmother tore herself
-with a groan from the bed on which she was indulging
-in a nervous breakdown and flung up her bedroom
-window.</p>
-
-<p>“Henri, are you ill?” she cried. “What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, ze nosings,” replied Henri.</p>
-
-<p>Then, leaning yet more dangerously over the
-fence, “What ze game you goin’ to play to-morrow,
-Willem?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pirates,” said William, regaining his usual calm.
-“Like to come?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, ze jolly well righto yes!” said Henri.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">THE SWEET LITTLE GIRL IN WHITE</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Hall stood empty most of the year, but
-occasionally tenants re-awoke the passing interest
-of the village in it. This summer it was taken by
-a Mr. and Mrs. Bott with their daughter. Mr. Bott’s
-name decorated most of the hoardings of his native
-country. On these hoardings citizens of England
-were urged to safeguard their digestion by taking
-Bott’s Sauce with their meat. After reading Bott’s
-advertisements one felt convinced that any food
-without Bott’s Sauce was rank poison. One even
-felt that it would be safer to live on Bott’s Sauce
-alone. On such feelings had Mr. Bott&mdash;as rubicund
-and rotund as one of his own bottles of sauce&mdash;reared
-a fortune sufficient to enable him to take the Hall
-for the summer without, as the saying is, turning
-a hair.</p>
-
-<p>William happened to be sitting on the fence by the
-side of the road when the motor containing Mr. and
-Mrs. Bott&mdash;both stout and overdressed&mdash;and Miss
-Violet Elizabeth Bott and Miss Violet Elizabeth
-Bott’s nurse flashed by. William was not interested.
-He was at the moment engaged in whittling a stick
-and watching the antics of his mongrel, Jumble, as he
-caught and worried each shaving. But he had a
-glimpse of a small child with an elaborately curled
-head and an elaborately flounced white dress sitting
-by an elaborately uniformed nurse. He gazed after
-the equipage scowling.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” he said, and it is impossible to convey<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</span>
-in print the scorn of that monosyllable as uttered
-by William, “<i>a girl!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Then he returned to his whittling.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William’s mother met Mrs. Bott at the Vicar’s.
-Mrs. Bott, who always found strangers more
-sympathetic than people who knew her well, confided
-her troubles to Mrs. Brown. Her troubles included
-her own rheumatism, Mr. Bott’s liver, and the
-carelessness of Violet Elizabeth’s nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“Always reading these here novelettes, the girl is. I
-hope you’ll come and see me, dear, and didn’t some one
-say you had a little boy? Do bring him. I want Violet
-Elizabeth to get to know some nice little children.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown hesitated. She was aware that none
-of her acquaintances would have described William
-as a nice little child. Mrs. Bott misunderstood her
-hesitation. She laid a fat ringed hand on her knee.</p>
-
-<p>“I know, dear. You’re careful who the little
-laddie knows, like me. Well now, you needn’t worry.
-I’ve brought up our Violet Elizabeth most particular.
-She’s a girlie who wouldn’t do your little boysie any
-harm&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” gasped Mrs. Brown, “it’s not that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you’ll come, dearie, and bring the little
-boysie with you, won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>She took Mrs. Brown’s speechlessness for consent.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Me?</i>” said William indignantly. “Me go to
-tea with that ole girl? <i>Me?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“She&mdash;she’s a nice little girl,” said Mrs. Brown
-weakly.</p>
-
-<p>“I saw her,” said William scathingly, “curls and
-things.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you must come. She’s expecting you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I only hope,” said William sternly, “that she
-won’t ’spect me to <i>talk</i> to her.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</span></p>
-
-<p>“She’ll expect you to <i>play</i> with her, I’m sure,”
-said his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Play?” said William. “<i>Play?</i> With a girl?
-<i>Me?</i> Huh!”</p>
-
-<p>William, pale and proud, and dressed in his best
-suit, his heart steeled to his humiliating fate, went
-with his mother to the Hall the next week. He was
-silent all the way there. His thoughts were too deep
-for words. Mrs. Brown watched him anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>An over-dressed Mrs. Bott was sitting in an over-furnished
-drawing-room. She rose at once with an
-over-effusive smile and held out over-ringed hands.</p>
-
-<p>“So you’ve brought dear little boysie,” she began.</p>
-
-<p>The over-effusive smile died away before the look
-that William turned on her.</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;I hadn’t thought of him quite like that,”
-she said weakly, “but I’m sure he’s sweet,” she added
-hastily.</p>
-
-<p>William greeted her coldly and politely, then took
-his seat and sat like a small statue scowling in front
-of him. His hair had been brushed back with so
-much vigour and application of liquid that it looked
-as if it were painted on his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like to look at a picture book, boysie?”
-she said.</p>
-
-<p>William did not answer. He merely looked at her
-and she hastily turned away to talk to Mrs. Brown.
-She talked about her rheumatism and Mr. Bott’s
-liver and the incompetence of Violet Elizabeth’s nurse.</p>
-
-<p>Then Violet Elizabeth entered. Violet Elizabeth’s
-fair hair was not naturally curly but as the result of
-great daily labour on the part of the much maligned
-nurse it stood up in a halo of curls round her small
-head. The curls looked almost, if not quite, natural.
-Violet Elizabeth’s small pink and white face shone
-with cleanliness. Violet Elizabeth was so treasured
-and guarded and surrounded with every care that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</span>
-her small pink and white face had never been known
-to do anything else except shine with cleanliness.
-But the <i>pièce de résistance</i> about Violet Elizabeth’s
-appearance was her skirts. Violet Elizabeth was
-dressed in a white lace trimmed dress with a blue
-waistband, and beneath the miniature blue waistband
-her skirts stood out like a tiny ballet dancer’s in a
-filmy froth of lace trimmed petticoats. From this
-cascade emerged Violet Elizabeth’s bare legs, to
-disappear ultimately into white silk socks and white
-buckskin shoes.</p>
-
-<p>William gazed at this engaging apparition in horror.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” said Violet Elizabeth primly.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” said William in a hollow voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Take the little boysie into the garden, Violet
-Elizabeth,” said her mother, “and play with him
-nicely.”</p>
-
-<p>William and Violet Elizabeth eyed each other
-apprehensively.</p>
-
-<p>“Come along, boy,” said Violet Elizabeth at last,
-holding out a hand.</p>
-
-<p>William ignored the hand and with the air of a
-hero bound to his execution, accompanied Violet
-Elizabeth into the garden.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown’s eyes followed them anxiously.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“Whath your name?” said Violet Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>She lisped! She would, thought William bitterly,
-with those curls and those skirts. She would. He
-felt at any rate relieved that none of his friends could
-see him in the unmanly situation&mdash;talking to a kid
-like that&mdash;all eyes and curls and skirts.</p>
-
-<p>“William Brown,” he said distantly, looking over
-her head as if he did not see her.</p>
-
-<p>“How old are you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Eleven.”</p>
-
-<p>“My nameth Violet Elizabeth.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</span></p>
-
-<p>He received the information in silence.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m thix.”</p>
-
-<p>He made no comment. He examined the distant
-view with an abstracted frown.</p>
-
-<p>“Now you muth play with me.”</p>
-
-<p>William allowed his cold glance to rest upon her.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t play little girls’ games,” he said scathingly.
-But Violet Elizabeth did not appear to be scathed.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’ you know any little girlth?” she said
-pityingly. “I’ll teach you little girlth gameth,”
-she added pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t <i>want</i> to,” said William, “I don’t <i>like</i>
-them. I don’t <i>like</i> little girls’ games. I don’t want
-to know ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth gazed at him open-mouthed.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you <i>like</i> little girlth?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Me?</i>” said William with superior dignity. “Me?
-I don’t know anything about ’em. Don’t want to.”</p>
-
-<p>“D-don’t you like me?” quavered Violet Elizabeth
-in incredulous amazement. William looked at her.
-Her blue eyes filled slowly with tears, her lips quivered.</p>
-
-<p>“I like you,” she said. “Don’t you like me?”</p>
-
-<p>William stared at her in horror.</p>
-
-<p>“You&mdash;you <i>do</i> like me, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>William was silent.</p>
-
-<p>A large shining tear welled over and trickled down
-the small pink cheek.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re making me cry,” sobbed Violet Elizabeth.
-“You are. You’re making me cry, ’cause you won’t
-say you like me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I do like you,” said William desperately.
-“Honest&mdash;I do. Don’t cry. I do like you.
-Honest!”</p>
-
-<p>A smile broke through the tear-stained face.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m tho glad,” she said simply. “You like all
-little girlth, don’t you?” She smiled at him
-hopefully. “You do, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</span></p>
-
-<p>William, pirate and Red Indian and desperado,
-William, woman-hater and girl-despiser, looked round
-wildly for escape and found none.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth’s eyes filled with tears again.</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>do</i> like all little girlth, don’t you?” she
-persisted with quavering lip. “You do, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>It was a nightmare to William. They were standing
-in full view of the drawing-room window. At any
-moment a grown up might appear. He would be
-accused of brutality, of making little Violet Elizabeth
-cry. And, strangely enough, the sight of Violet
-Elizabeth with tear-filled eyes and trembling lips made
-him feel that he must have been brutal indeed.
-Beneath his horror he felt bewildered.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I do,” he said hastily, “I do. Honest I do.”</p>
-
-<p>She smiled again radiantly through her tears.
-“You with you wath a little girl, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;yes. Honest I do,” said the unhappy
-William.</p>
-
-<p>“Kith me,” she said raising her glowing face.</p>
-
-<p>William was broken.</p>
-
-<p>He brushed her cheek with his.</p>
-
-<p>“Thath not a kith,” said Violet Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s my kind of a kiss,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“All right. Now leth play fairieth. I’ll thow
-you how.”</p>
-
-<p>On the way home Mrs. Brown, who always hoped
-vaguely that little girls would have a civilizing effect
-on William, asked William if he had enjoyed it.
-William had spent most of the afternoon in the
-character of a gnome attending upon Violet Elizabeth
-in the character of the fairy queen. Any attempt
-at rebellion had been met with tear-filled eyes and
-trembling lips. He was feeling embittered with life.</p>
-
-<p>“If all girls are like that&mdash;&mdash;” said William, “well,
-when you think of all the hundreds of girls there
-must be in the world&mdash;well, it makes you feel sick.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</span></p>
-
-<p>Never had liberty and the comradeship of his own
-sex seemed sweeter to William than it did the next
-day when he set off whistling carelessly, his hands
-in his pockets, Jumble at his heels, to meet Ginger
-and Douglas across the fields.</p>
-
-<p>“You didn’t come yesterday,” they said when they
-met. They had missed William, the leader.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” he said shortly, “went out to tea.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where?” they said with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“Nowhere in particular,” said William inaccurately.</p>
-
-<p>A feeling of horror overcame him at the memory.
-If they knew&mdash;if they’d seen.... He blushed with
-shame at the very thought. To regain his self-respect
-he punched Ginger and knocked off Douglas’ cap.
-After the slight scuffle that ensued they set off down
-the road.</p>
-
-<p>“What’ll we do this morning?” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>It was sunny. It was holiday time. They had
-each other and a dog. Boyhood could not wish for
-more. The whole world lay before them.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s go trespassin’,” said William the lawless.</p>
-
-<p>“Where?” enquired Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>“Hall woods&mdash;and take Jumble.”</p>
-
-<p>“That ole keeper said he’d tell our fathers if he
-caught us in again,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Lettim!” said William, with a dare-devil air,
-slashing at the hedge with a stick. He was gradually
-recovering his self-respect. The nightmare memories
-of yesterday were growing faint. He flung a stone
-for the eager Jumble and uttered his shrill
-unharmonious war whoop. They entered the woods,
-William leading. He swaggered along the path.
-He was William, desperado, and scorner of girls.
-Yesterday was a dream. It must have been. No
-mere girl would dare even to speak to him. He had
-never played at fairies with a girl&mdash;he, William the
-pirate king, the robber chief.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</span></p>
-
-<p>“William!”</p>
-
-<p>He turned, his proud smile frozen in horror.</p>
-
-<p>A small figure was flying along the path behind
-them&mdash;a bare-headed figure with elaborate curls and
-very short lacy bunchy skirts and bare legs with
-white shoes and socks.</p>
-
-<p>“William, <i>darling!</i> I thaw you from the nurthery
-window coming along the road and I ethcaped. Nurth
-wath reading a book and I ethcaped. Oh, William
-darling, play with me again, <i>do</i>. It <i>wath</i> so nith
-yethterday.”</p>
-
-<p>William glared at her speechless. He was glad
-of the presence of his manly friends, yet horrified
-as to what revelations this terrible young female
-might make, disgracing him for ever in their eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Go away,” he said sternly at last, “we aren’t
-playing girls’ games.”</p>
-
-<p>“We don’t like girls,” said Ginger contemptuously.</p>
-
-<p>“William doth,” she said indignantly. “He thaid
-he did. He thaid he liked all little girlth. He thaid
-he withed he wath a little girl. He kithed me an’
-played fairieth with me.”</p>
-
-<p>A glorious blush of a rich and dark red overspread
-William’s countenance.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Oh!</i>” he ejaculated as if astounded at the depth
-of her untruthfulness, but it was not convincing.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you <i>did!</i>” said Violet Elizabeth. Somehow
-that was convincing. Ginger and Douglas looked
-at William rather coldly. Even Jumble seemed to
-look slightly ashamed of him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, come along,” said Ginger, “we can’t stop
-here all day talking&mdash;to a <i>girl</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I want to come with you,” said Violet
-Elizabeth. “I want to play with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’re going to play boys’ games. You wouldn’t
-like it,” said Douglas who was somewhat of a
-diplomatist.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I <i>like</i> boyth gameth,” pleaded Violet Elizabeth,
-and her blue eyes filled with tears, “<i>pleath</i> let me
-come.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William. “We can’t stop you
-comin’. Don’t take any notice of her,” he said to
-the others. “She’ll soon get tired of it.”</p>
-
-<p>They set off. William, for the moment abashed
-and deflated, followed humbly in their wake.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>In a low-lying part of the wood was a bog. The
-bog was always there but as it had rained in the
-night the bog to-day was particularly boggy. It
-was quite possible to skirt this bog by walking round
-it on the higher ground, but William and his friends
-never did this. They preferred to pretend that the
-bog surrounded them on all sides as far as human eye
-could see and that at one false step they might sink
-deep in the morass never to be seen again.</p>
-
-<p>“Come along,” called William who had recovered
-his spirits and position of leadership. “Come along,
-my brave fellows ... tread careful or instant death
-will be your fate, and don’t take any notice of her,
-she’ll soon have had enough.”</p>
-
-<p>For Violet Elizabeth was trotting gaily behind
-the gallant band.</p>
-
-<p>They did not turn round or look at her, but they
-could not help seeing her out of the corners of their
-eyes. She plunged into the bog with a squeal of
-delight and stamped her elegant white-clad feet into
-the black mud.</p>
-
-<p>“Ithn’t it lovely?” she squealed. “Dothn’t it
-feel nith&mdash;all thquithy between your toth&mdash;ithn’t
-it <i>lovely?</i> I <i>like</i> boyth gameth.”</p>
-
-<p>They could not help looking at her when they
-emerged. As fairy-like as ever above, her feet were
-covered with black mud up to above her socks. Shoes
-and socks were sodden.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Ith a <i>lovely</i> feeling!” she commented delightedly
-on the other side. “Leth do it again.”</p>
-
-<p>But William and his band remembered their manly
-dignity and strode on without answering. She
-followed with short dancing steps. Each of them
-carried a stick with which they smote the air or any
-shrub they passed. Violet Elizabeth secured a stick
-and faithfully imitated them. They came to a clear
-space in the wood, occupied chiefly by giant
-blackberry bushes laden with fat ripe berries.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, my brave fellows,” said William, “take your
-fill. ’Tis well we have found this bit of food or we
-would e’en have starved, an’ don’ help her or get
-any for her an’ let her get all scratched an’ she’ll soon
-have had enough.”</p>
-
-<p>They fell upon the bushes. Violet Elizabeth also
-fell upon the bushes. She crammed handfuls of ripe
-blackberries into her mouth. Gradually her pink and
-white face became obscured beneath a thick covering
-of blackberry juice stain. Her hands were dark red.
-Her white dress had lost its whiteness. It was stained
-and torn. Her bunchy skirts had lost their bunchiness.
-The brambles tore at her curled hair and drew it
-into that state of straightness for which Nature had
-meant it. The brambles scratched her face and
-arms and legs. And still she ate.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m getting more than any of you,” she cried.
-“I geth I’m getting more than any of you. And I’m
-getting all of a <i>meth</i>. Ithn’t it <i>fun?</i> I like boyth
-gameth.”</p>
-
-<p>They gazed at her with a certain horrified respect
-and apprehension. Would they be held responsible
-for the strange change in her appearance?</p>
-
-<p>They left the blackberry bushes and set off again
-through the wood. At a sign from William they
-dropped on all fours and crept cautiously and (as they
-imagined) silently along the path. Violet Elizabeth<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</span>
-dropped also upon her scratched and blackberry
-stained knees.</p>
-
-<p>“Look at me,” she shrilled proudly. “I’m doing
-it too. Juth like boyth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sh!” William said fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth “Sh’d” obediently and for a
-time crawled along contentedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Are we playin’ bein’ animalth?” she piped at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Shut <i>up!</i>” hissed William.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth shut up&mdash;except to whisper to
-Ginger who was just in front, “I’m a thnail&mdash;what
-you?” Ginger did not deign to reply.</p>
-
-<p>At a sign from their leader that all danger was over
-the Outlaws stood upright. William had stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve thrown ’em off the scent,” he said scowling,
-“but danger s’rounds us on every side. We’d better
-plunge into the jungle an’ I bet she’ll soon’ve had
-enough of plungin’ into the jungle.”</p>
-
-<p>They left the path and “plunged” into the dense,
-shoulder-high undergrowth. At the end of the line
-“plunged” Violet Elizabeth. She fought her way
-determinedly through the bushes. She left remnants
-of her filmy skirts on nearly every bush. Long
-spidery arms of brambles caught at her hair again
-and pulled out her curls. But Violet Elizabeth
-liked it. “Ithn’t it <i>fun?</i>” she piped as she followed.</p>
-
-<p>Under a large tree William stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“Now we’ll be Red Indians,” he said, “an’ go
-huntin’. I’ll be Brave Heart same as usual and
-Ginger be Hawk Face and Douglas be Lightning Eye.”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ what thall I be?” said the torn and stained and
-wild-headed apparition that had been Violet Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>Douglas took the matter in hand.</p>
-
-<p>“What thall I be?” he mimicked shrilly, “what
-thall I be? What thall I be?”</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth did not run home in tears as he
-had hoped she would. She laughed gleefully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</span></p>
-
-<p>“It doth thound funny when you thay it like that!”
-she said delightedly. “Oh, it doth! Thay it again!
-Pleath thay it again.”</p>
-
-<p>Douglas was nonplussed.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyway,” he said, “you jolly well aren’t going
-to play, so there.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Pleath</i> let me play,” said Violet Elizabeth.
-“Pleath.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>No.</i> Go away!”</p>
-
-<p>William and Ginger secretly admired the firm
-handling of this female by Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Pleath</i>, Douglath.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>No!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth’s blue eyes, fixed pleadingly
-upon him, filled with tears. Violet Elizabeth’s
-underlip trembled.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re making me cry,” she said. A tear traced
-its course down the blackberry stained cheek.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Pleath</i>, Douglath.”</p>
-
-<p>Douglas hesitated and was lost. “Oh, well&mdash;&mdash;”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, thank you, dear Douglath,” said Violet
-Elizabeth. “What thall I be?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William to Douglas sternly. “Now
-you’ve <i>let</i> her play I s’pose she’d better be a squaw.”</p>
-
-<p>“A thquaw,” said Violet Elizabeth joyfully, “what
-thort of noith doth it make?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a Indian lady and it doesn’t make any sort
-of a noise,” said Ginger crushingly. “Now we’re
-going out hunting and you stay and cook the dinner.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Violet Elizabeth obligingly.
-“Kith me good-bye.”</p>
-
-<p>Ginger stared at her in horror.</p>
-
-<p>“But you mutht,” she said, “if you’re going out
-to work an’ I’m going to cook the dinner, you mutht
-kith me good-bye. They do.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</span></p>
-
-<p>She held up her small face.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Pleath</i>, Ginger.”</p>
-
-<p>Blushing to his ears Ginger just brushed her cheek
-with his. William gave a derisive snort. His self-respect
-had returned. Douglas’s manly severity had
-been overborne. Ginger had been prevailed upon to
-kiss her. Well, they couldn’t laugh at him now.
-They jolly <i>well</i> couldn’t. Both were avoiding his
-eye.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, go off to work, dear William and Douglas and
-Ginger,” said Violet Elizabeth happily, “an’ I’ll cook.”</p>
-
-<p>Gladly the hunters set off.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Red Indian game had palled. It had been a
-success while it lasted. Ginger had brought some
-matches and over her purple layer of blackberry juice
-the faithful squaw now wore a layer of black from the
-very smoky fire they had at last managed to make.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on,” said William, “let’s set out looking
-for adventures.”</p>
-
-<p>They set off single file as before, Violet Elizabeth
-bringing up the rear, Jumble darting about in ecstatic
-searches for imaginary rabbits. Another small bog
-glimmered ahead. Violet Elizabeth, drunk with
-her success as a squaw, gave a scream.</p>
-
-<p>“Another thquithy plath,” she cried. “I want
-to be firtht.”</p>
-
-<p>She flitted ahead of them, ran to the bog, slipped
-and fell into it face forward.</p>
-
-<p>She arose at once. She was covered in black mud
-from head to foot. Her face was a black mud mask.
-Through it her teeth flashed in a smile. “I juth
-thlipped,” she explained.</p>
-
-<p>A man’s voice came suddenly from the main
-path through the wood at their right.</p>
-
-<p>“Look at ’em&mdash;the young rascals! Look at
-’em! An’ a dawg! Blarst ’em! Er-r-r-r-r!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</span></p>
-
-<p>The last was a sound expressive of rage and
-threatening.</p>
-
-<p>“Keepers!” said William. “Run for your lives,
-braves. Come on, Jumble.”</p>
-
-<p>They fled through the thicket.</p>
-
-<p>“Pleath,” gasped Violet Elizabeth in the rear,
-“I can’t run as fatht ath that.”</p>
-
-<p>It was Ginger and Douglas who came back to hold
-her hands. For all that they ran fleetly, dashing
-through the undergrowth where the keepers found
-it difficult to follow, and dodging round trees. At
-last, breathlessly, they reached a clearing and in the
-middle of it a cottage as small and attractive as a
-fairy tale cottage. The door was open. It had an
-empty look. They could hear the keepers coming
-through the undergrowth shouting.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in here,” gasped William. “It’s empty.
-Come in and hide till they’ve gone.”</p>
-
-<p>The four ran into a spotlessly clean little kitchen,
-and Ginger closed the door. The cottage was certainly
-empty. There was not a sound.</p>
-
-<p>“Ithn’t it a thweet little houth?” panted Violet
-Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>“Come upstairs,” said Douglas. “They might
-look in here.”</p>
-
-<p>The four, Jumble scrambling after them, clattered
-up the steep narrow wooden stairs and into a small
-and very clean bedroom.</p>
-
-<p>“Look out of the window and see when they go
-past,” commanded William, “then we’ll slip out and
-go back.”</p>
-
-<p>Douglas peeped cautiously out of the window.
-He gave a gasp.</p>
-
-<p>“They&mdash;they’re not goin’ past,” he said. “They&mdash;they’re
-they’re comin’ in at the door.”</p>
-
-<p>The men’s voices could be heard below.</p>
-
-<p>“Comin’ in here&mdash;the young rascals! Look at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</span>
-their footmarks, see? What’ll my old woman say
-when she gets home?”</p>
-
-<p>“They’ve gone upstairs, too. Look at the marks.
-Blarst ’em!”</p>
-
-<p>William went to the window, holding Jumble
-beneath his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“We can easily climb down by this pipe,” he said
-quickly. “Then we’ll run back.”</p>
-
-<p>He swung a leg over the window sill, prepared to
-descend with Jumble clinging round his neck, as
-Jumble was trained to do. Jumble’s life consisted
-chiefly of an endless succession of shocks to the nerves.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger and Douglas prepared to follow.</p>
-
-<p>The men’s footsteps were heard coming upstairs,
-when a small voice said plaintively, “Pleath&mdash;pleath,
-I can’t do that. Pleath, you’re not going to leave me,
-are you?”</p>
-
-<p>William put back his foot.</p>
-
-<p>“We&mdash;we can’t leave her,” he said. Ginger and
-Douglas did not question their leader’s decision. They
-stood in a row facing the door while the footsteps
-drew nearer.</p>
-
-<p>The door burst open and the two keepers appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, yer young rascals&mdash;we’ve got yer!”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Into Mr. Bott’s library were ushered two
-keepers, each leading two children by the neck.
-One held two rough-looking boys. The other held a
-rough-looking boy and a rough-looking little girl.
-A dejected-looking mongrel followed the procession.</p>
-
-<p>“Trespassin’, sir,” said the first keeper, “trespassin’
-an’ a-damagin’ of the woods. Old ’ands, too. Seen
-’em at it before but never caught ’em till now. An’
-a <i>dawg</i> too. It’s an example making of they want,
-sir. They want prosecutin’ if I may make so bold.
-A-damagin’ of the woods and a-bringing of a dawg&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig7.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“WE’VE FOUND HER,” ANNOUNCED WILLIAM, AND VIOLET<br />
-ELIZABETH TOOK A STEP FORWARD. “IT’S ME,” SHE<br />
-PIPED.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott who was new to squiredom and had
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</span>little knowledge of what was expected of him and
-moreover was afflicted at the moment with severe
-private domestic worries, cast a harassed glance at the
-four children. His glance rested upon Violet
-Elizabeth without the faintest flicker of recognition.
-He did not recognise her. He knew Violet
-Elizabeth. He saw her at least once or almost
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</span>once a day. He knew her quite well. He knew
-her by her ordered flaxen curls, pink and white face
-and immaculate bunchy skirts. He did not know<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</span>
-this little creature with the torn, stained, bedraggled
-dress (there was nothing bunchy about it now) whose
-extremely dirty face could just be seen beneath the
-tangle of untidy hair that fell over her eyes. She
-watched him silently and cautiously. Just as he
-was going to speak Violet Elizabeth’s nurse entered.
-It says much for Violet Elizabeth’s disguise that her
-nurse only threw her a passing glance. Violet
-Elizabeth’s nurse’s eyes were red-rimmed.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig8.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“GOD BLESS MY SOUL,” EXCLAIMED MR. BOTT, PEERING<br />
-AT THE APPARITION. “IT’S IMPOSSIBLE.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Please, sir, Mrs. Bott says is there any news?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Mr. Bott desperately. “Tell her I’ve
-rung up the police every minute since she sent last.
-How is she?”</p>
-
-<p>“Please, sir, she’s in hysterics again.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott groaned.</p>
-
-<p>Ever since Violet Elizabeth’s disappearance Mrs.
-Bott had been indulging in hysterics in her bedroom
-and taking it out of Violet Elizabeth’s nurse. In
-return Violet Elizabeth’s nurse had hysterics in the
-nursery and took it out of the nursery maid. In
-return the nursery maid had hysterics in the kitchen and
-took it out of the kitchen maid. The kitchen maid had
-no time for hysterics but she took it out of the cat.</p>
-
-<p>“Please, sir, she says she’s too ill to speak now.
-She told me to tell you so, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott groaned again. Suddenly he turned to
-the four children and the keepers.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve got their names and addresses, haven’t
-you? Well, see here, children. Go out and see
-if you can find my little gall for me. She’s lost.
-Look in the woods and round the village and&mdash;everywhere.
-And if you find her I’ll let you off. See?”</p>
-
-<p>They murmured perfunctory thanks and retired,
-followed by Violet Elizabeth who had not uttered one
-word within her paternal mansion.</p>
-
-<p>In the woods they turned on her sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s you he wants. You’re her.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yeth,” agreed the tousled ragamuffin who was
-Violet Elizabeth, sweetly, “ith me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’re going to find you an’ take you
-back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, <i>pleath</i>, I don’t want to be found and tooken
-back. I like being with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we can’t keep you about with us all day,
-can we?” argued William sternly. “You’ve gotter
-go home sometime same as we’ve gotter go home sometime.
-Well, we jolly well want our dinner now and
-we’re jolly well going home an’ we’re jolly well goin’ to
-take you home. He might give us something and&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” agreed Violet Elizabeth holding up her
-face, “if you’ll all kith me I’ll be found an’ tooken
-back.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The four of them stood again before Mr. Bott’s desk.
-William and Ginger and Douglas took a step back and
-Violet Elizabeth took a step forward.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve found her,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Where?” said Mr. Bott looking round.</p>
-
-<p>“Ith me,” piped Violet Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott started.</p>
-
-<p>“You?” he repeated in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Yeth, father, ith me.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, but&mdash;God bless my soul&mdash;&mdash;” he ejaculated
-peering at the unfamiliar apparition. “It’s
-impossible.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he rang for Violet Elizabeth’s nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“Is this Violet Elizabeth?” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Yeth, ith me,” said Violet Elizabeth again.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth’s nurse pushed back the tangle
-of hair.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the poor poor child!” she cried. “The
-poor child!”</p>
-
-<p>“God bless my soul,” said Mr. Bott again. “Take
-her away. I don’t know what you do to her, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</span>
-do it and don’t let her mother see her till it’s done,
-and you boys stay here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my lamb!” sobbed Violet Elizabeth’s nurse
-as she led her away. “My poor lamb!”</p>
-
-<p>In an incredibly short time they returned. The
-mysterious something had been done. Violet Elizabeth’s
-head was a mass of curls. Her face shone with
-cleanliness. Dainty lace-trimmed skirts stuck out
-ballet-dancer-wise beneath the pale blue waistband.
-Mr. Bott took a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p>“Now fetch her mother,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Like a tornado entered Mrs. Bott. She still heaved
-with hysterics. She enfolded Violet Elizabeth to
-her visibly palpitating bosom.</p>
-
-<p>“My child,” she sobbed, “Oh my darling child.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wath a thquaw,” said Violet Elizabeth. “It
-dothn’t make any thort of a noith. Ith a lady.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did you&mdash;&mdash;” began Mrs. Bott still straining
-Violet Elizabeth to her.</p>
-
-<p>“These boys found her&mdash;&mdash;” said Mr. Bott.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how kind&mdash;how noble,” said Mrs. Bott.
-“And one’s that nice little boy who played with her so
-sweetly yesterday. Give them ten shillings each,
-Botty.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, but&mdash;&mdash;” hesitated Mr. Bott remembering
-the circumstances in which they had been brought
-to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Botty!” screamed Mrs. Bott tearfully, “Don’t you
-value your darling child’s life at even thirty shillings?”</p>
-
-<p>Hastily Mr. Bott handed them each a ten shilling
-note.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>They tramped homewards by the road.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s turned out all right,” said Ginger
-lugubriously, but fingering the ten shilling note in
-his pocket, “but it might not have. ’Cept for the
-money it jolly well spoilt the morning.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Girls always do,” said William. “I’m not going
-to have anything to do with any ole girl ever again.”</p>
-
-<p>“’S all very well sayin’ that,” said Douglas who
-had been deeply impressed that morning by the
-inevitableness and deadly persistence of the sex, “’s
-all very well sayin’ that. It’s them what has to do
-with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I’m never goin’ to marry any ole girl,” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>“’S all very well sayin’ <i>that</i>,” said Douglas again
-gloomily, “but some ole girl’ll probably marry you.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM TURNS OVER A NEW LEAF</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William</span> had often been told how much happier
-he would be if he would follow the straight and narrow
-path of virtue, but so far the thought of that happiness
-had left him cold. He preferred the happiness that he
-knew by experience to be the result of his normal
-wicked life to that mythical happiness that was
-prophesied as the result of a quite unalluring life of
-righteousness. Suddenly, however, he was stirred.
-An “old boy” had come to visit the school and had
-given an inspiring address to the boys in which he
-spoke of the beauty and usefulness of a life of Self-denial
-and Service. William, for the first time, began
-to consider the question seriously. He realised that
-his life so far had not been, strictly speaking, a life of
-Self-denial and Service. The “old boy” said many
-things that impressed William. He pictured the liver
-of the life of Self-denial and Service surrounded by
-a happy, grateful and admiring family circle. He
-said that everyone would love such a character.
-William tried to imagine his own family circle as
-a happy, grateful and admiring family circle. It
-was not an easy task even to such a vivid imagination
-as William’s but it was not altogether impossible.
-After all, nothing was altogether impossible....</p>
-
-<p>While the headmaster was proposing a vote of
-thanks to the eloquent and perspiring “old boy,”
-William was deciding that there might be something
-in the idea after all. When the bell rang for the end
-of school, William had decided that it was worth<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</span>
-trying at any rate. He decided to start first thing
-next morning&mdash;not before. William was a good
-organiser. He liked things cut and dried. A new
-day for a new life. It was no use beginning to be self-denying
-and self-sacrificing in the middle of a day
-that had started quite differently. If you were going
-to have a beautiful character and a grateful family
-circle you might as well start the day fresh with it,
-not drag it over from the day before. It would be
-jolly nice to have a happy, grateful and admiring
-family circle, and William only hoped that if he took
-the trouble to be self-denying and self-sacrificing
-his family circle would take the trouble to be happy
-and grateful and admiring. There were dark doubts
-about this in William’s mind. His family circle
-rarely did anything that was expected of them. Still,
-William was an optimist and&mdash;anything might happen.
-And to-morrow was a whole holiday. He could give
-all his attention to it all day....</p>
-
-<p>He looked forward to the new experience with
-feelings of pleasant anticipation. It would be
-interesting and jolly&mdash;meantime there was a whole
-half of to-day left and it was no use beginning the
-life of self-denial and service before the scheduled time.</p>
-
-<p>He joined his friends, Ginger, Henry and Douglas
-after school and together they trespassed on the
-lands of the most irascible farmer they knew in the
-hopes of a pleasant chase. The farmer happened to
-be in the market town so their hopes were disappointed
-as far as he was concerned. They paddled in his
-pond and climbed his trees and uttered defiant shouts
-to his infuriated dog, and were finally chased away
-by his wife with a fire of hard and knobbly potatoes.
-One got William very nicely on the side of his head
-but, his head being as hard and knobbly as the potato,
-little damage was done. Next they “scouted” each
-other through the village and finally went into Ginger’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</span>
-house and performed military manœuvres in Ginger’s
-bedroom, till Ginger’s mother sent them away because
-the room just below happened to be the drawing-room
-and the force of the military manœuvres
-was disintegrating the ceiling and sending it
-down in picturesque white flakes into Ginger’s
-mother’s hair.</p>
-
-<p>They went next to Henry’s garden and there with
-much labour made a bonfire. Ginger and Douglas
-plied the fire with fuel; and William and Henry, with
-a wheelbarrow and the garden hose, wearing old tins
-on their heads, impersonated the fire brigade. During
-the exciting scuffles that followed, the garden hose
-became slightly involved and finally four dripping
-boys fled from the scene and from possible detection,
-leaving only the now swimming bonfire, the wheelbarrow
-and hose to mark the scene of action. A long
-rest in a neighbouring field in the still blazing sunshine
-soon partially dried them. While reclining at ease
-they discussed the latest Red Indian stories which
-they had read, and the possibility of there being any
-wild animals left in England.</p>
-
-<p>“I bet there <i>is</i>,” said Ginger earnestly, “they
-hide in the day time so’s no one’ll see ’em, an’ they
-come out at nights. No one goes into the woods
-at night so no one knows if there is or if there isn’t,
-an’ I bet there <i>is</i>. Anyway let’s get up some night
-’n take our bows ’n arrows an’ <i>look</i> for ’em. I bet
-we’d find some.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s to-night,” said Douglas eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>William remembered suddenly the life of virtue
-to which he had mentally devoted himself. He
-felt that the nocturnal hunting for wild animals was
-incompatible with it.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t to-night,” he said with an air of virtue.</p>
-
-<p>“Yah&mdash;you’re <i>’fraid!</i>” taunted Henry, not because
-he had the least doubt of William’s courage but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</span>
-simply to introduce an element of excitement into
-the proceedings.</p>
-
-<p>He succeeded.</p>
-
-<p>When finally Henry and William arose breathless
-and bruised from the ditch where the fight had ended,
-Douglas and Ginger surveyed them with dispassionate
-interest.</p>
-
-<p>“William won an’ you’re both in a <i>jolly</i> old mess!”</p>
-
-<p>Henry removed some leaves and bits of grass from
-his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, you’re <i>not</i> afraid,” he said pacifically to
-William, “when will you come huntin’ wild animals?”</p>
-
-<p>William considered. He was going to give the
-life of virtue, of self-denial and service a fair day’s
-trial, but there was just the possibility that from
-William’s point of view it might not be a success.
-It would be as well to leave the door to the old life open.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you to-morrow,” he said guardedly.</p>
-
-<p>“All right. I say, let’s race to the end of the field
-on only one leg ... Come on! Ready?... One,
-two, <i>three</i> ... GO!”</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">II</p>
-
-<p>William awoke. It was morning. It was the
-morning on which he was to begin his life of self-denial
-and service. He raised his voice in one of his
-penetrating and tuneless morning songs, then stopped
-abruptly, “case I disturb anyone” he remarked
-virtuously to his brush and comb.... His father
-frequently remarked that William’s early morning
-songs were enough to drive a man to drink....
-He brushed his hair with unusual vigour and
-descended to breakfast looking (for William) unusually
-sleek and virtuous. His father was reading the
-paper in front of the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Good mornin’, Father,” said William in a voice
-of suave politeness.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</span></p>
-
-<p>His father grunted.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you hear me not singin’ this mornin’,
-Father?” said William pleasantly. It was as well
-that his self-denials should not be missed by the
-family circle.</p>
-
-<p>His father did not answer. William sighed. Some
-family circles were different from others. It was
-hard to imagine his father happy and grateful and
-admiring. But still, he was going to have a jolly
-good try....</p>
-
-<p>His mother and sister and brother came down.
-William said “Good mornin’!” to them all with
-unctuous affability. His brother looked at him
-suspiciously.</p>
-
-<p>“What mischief are <i>you</i> up to?” he said
-ungraciously.</p>
-
-<p>William merely gave him a long silent and
-reproachful glance.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you going to do this morning, William
-dear?” said his mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ mind what I do,” said William. “I jus’
-want to <i>help</i> you. I’ll do anything you like, Mother.”</p>
-
-<p>She looked at him anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you feeling quite well, dear?” she said with
-concern.</p>
-
-<p>“If you want to <i>help</i>,” said his sister sternly, “you
-might dig up that piece of my garden you and those
-other boys trampled down yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>William decided that a life of self-denial and service
-need not include fagging for sisters who spoke to one
-in that tone of voice. He pretended not to hear.</p>
-
-<p>“Can I do anything at all for you this morning,
-Mother dear,” he said earnestly.</p>
-
-<p>His mother looked too taken aback to reply. His
-father rose and folded up his newspaper.</p>
-
-<p>“Take my advice,” he said, “and beware of that
-boy this morning. He’s up to something!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</span></p>
-
-<p>William sighed again. Some family circles simply
-didn’t seem able to recognise a life of self-denial
-and service when they met it....</p>
-
-<p>After breakfast he wandered into the garden.
-Before long Ginger, Douglas and Henry came down the
-road.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, William!” they called over the gate.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment William was tempted. Somehow it
-seemed a terrible waste of a holiday to spend it in self-denial
-and service instead of in search of adventures
-with Ginger, Douglas and Henry. But he put the
-temptation away. When he made up his mind to
-do a thing he did it....</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t come to-day,” he said sternly, “I’m busy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go <i>on!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I am an’ I’m just not comin’ an’ kin’ly
-stop throwin’ stones at our cat.”</p>
-
-<p>“Call it a cat! Thought it was an ole fur glove
-what someone’d thrown away!”</p>
-
-<p>In furious defence of his household’s cat (whose
-life William in private made a misery) William leapt
-to the gate. The trio fled down the road. William
-returned to his meditations. His father had gone to
-business and Ethel and Robert had gone to golf.
-His mother drew up the morning-room window.</p>
-
-<p>“William, darling, aren’t you going to play with
-your friends this morning?”</p>
-
-<p>William turned to her with an expression of
-solemnity and earnestness.</p>
-
-<p>“I want to <i>help</i> you, Mother. I don’t wanter play
-with my friends.”</p>
-
-<p>He felt a great satisfaction with this speech. It
-breathed the very spirit of self-denial and service.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll try to find that bottle of tonic you didn’t
-finish after whooping cough,” said his mother
-helplessly as she drew down the window.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig9.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“GOOD HEAVENS!” SAID MISS DEXTER. “DOES HE<br />
-KNOW YOU’VE COME TO ASK ME?”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter1">
-<img src="images/fig10.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“ROBERT’S DEEP IN LOVE WITH YOU,” SAID WILLIAM,<br />
-“HE’S WRITIN’ PO’TRY AN’ NOT SLEEPIN’ AN’ NOT EATIN’<br />
-AND CARVING YOUR INITIALS ALL OVER THE HOUSE.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>William stared around him disconsolately. It was
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</span>hard to be full of self-sacrifices and service and to
-find no outlet for it ... nobody seemed to want
-his help. Then a brilliant idea occurred to him.
-He would <i>do</i> something for each of his family&mdash;something
-that would be a pleasant surprise when
-they found out....</p>
-
-<p>He went up to his bedroom. There in a drawer
-was a poem that he had found in Robert’s blotter the
-week before. It began:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">“O Marion</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">So young and fair</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">With silken hair....”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It must be Marion Dexter. She was fair and,
-well, more or less young, William supposed. William
-didn’t know about her hair being silken. It looked
-just like ordinary hair to him. But you never knew
-with girls. He had kept the poem in order to use it
-as a weapon of offence against Robert when occasion
-demanded. But that episode belonged to his old evil
-past. In his new life of self-denial and service he
-wanted to <i>help</i> Robert. The poem ended:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">“I should be happy, I aver</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">If thou my suit wouldst but prefer.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>That meant that Robert wanted to be engaged to
-her. Poor Robert! Perhaps he was too shy to
-ask her, or perhaps he’d asked her and she’d refused
-... well, it was here that Robert needed some <i>help</i>.
-William, with a determined expression, set off down
-the road.</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">III</p>
-
-<p>He knocked loudly at the door. By a lucky
-chance Marion Dexter came to the door herself.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” said William in a business-like
-fashion. “Has Robert ever asked you to marry him?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</span></p>
-
-<p>“No. What a peculiar question to ask on the
-front doorstep. Do come in.”</p>
-
-<p>William followed her into the drawing-room. She
-shut the door. They both sat down. William’s
-face was set and frowning.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s deep in love with you,” he said in a
-conspiratorial whisper.</p>
-
-<p>Marion’s eyes danced.</p>
-
-<p>“Did he send you to tell me?”</p>
-
-<p>William ignored the question.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s deep in love with you and wants you to
-marry him.”</p>
-
-<p>Marion dimpled.</p>
-
-<p>“Why can’t he ask me then?”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s shy,” said William earnestly, “he’s always
-shy when he’s in love. He’s always awful shy with
-the people what he’s in love with. But he wants
-most <i>awful</i> bad to marry you. <i>Do</i> marry him, <i>please</i>.
-Jus’ for kindness. I’m tryin’ to be kind. That’s
-why I’m here.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see,” she said. “Are you sure he’s in love
-with me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Deep in love. Writin’ potry an’ carryin’ on&mdash;not
-sleepin’ and not eatin’ an’ murmurin’ your name
-an’ puttin’ his hand on his heart an’ carvin’ your
-initials all over the house an’ sendin’ you flowers an’
-things,” said William drawing freely on his imagination.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve never had any flowers from him.”</p>
-
-<p>“No. They all get lost in the post,” said William
-without turning a hair. “But he’s dyin’ slow of
-love for you. He’s gettin’ thinner an’ thinner. ’F
-you don’t be engaged to him soon he’ll be stone dead.
-He’ll die of love like what they do in tales an’ then
-you’ll probably get hung for murder.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good heavens!” said Miss Dexter.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I <i>hope</i> you won’t,” said William kindly,
-“an’ I’ll do all I can to save you if you are but ’f<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</span>
-you kill Robert with not gettin’ engaged to him
-prob’ly you will be.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does he know you’ve come to ask me?” said Miss
-Dexter.</p>
-
-<p>“No. I want it to be a s’prise to him,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“It will be that,” murmured Miss Dexter.</p>
-
-<p>“You will marry him, then?” said William
-hopefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly&mdash;if he wants me to.”</p>
-
-<p>“P’raps,” said William after a slight pause, “you’d
-better write it in a letter ’cause he’d like as not, not
-b’lieve me.”</p>
-
-<p>With eyes dancing and lips quivering with suppressed
-laughter Miss Dexter sat down at her writing table.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap">Dear Robert</span> (she wrote),
-</p>
-
-<p>At William’s earnest request I promise to
-be engaged to you and to marry you whenever you like.</p>
-
-<p class="r">
-Yours sincerely, <span class="smcap">Marion Dexter</span>.
-</p></div>
-
-<p>She handed it to William. William read it gravely
-and put it in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks ever so much,” he said fervently.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t mention it,” said Miss Dexter demurely.
-“Quite a pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p>He walked down the road in a rosy glow of virtue.
-Well, he’d done something for Robert that ought
-to make Robert grateful to him for the rest of his life.
-He’d <i>helped</i> Robert all right. He’d like to know
-what <i>service</i> was if it wasn’t that&mdash;getting people
-engaged to people they wanted to be engaged to.
-Jolly hard work too. Now there remained his mother
-and Ethel. He must go home and try to find some
-way of <i>helping</i> them....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">IV</p>
-
-<p>When he reached home Ethel was showing out Mrs.
-Helm, a tall, stern-looking lady whom William knew
-by sight.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m so <i>frightfully</i> disappointed not to be able
-to come,” Ethel was saying regretfully, “but I’m
-afraid I <i>must</i> go to the Morrisons. I promised over
-a week ago. Thank you so much for asking me.
-Good morning.”</p>
-
-<p>William followed her into the dining-room where
-his mother was.</p>
-
-<p>“What did she want, dear?” said Mrs. Brown.
-“Go and wash your hands, William.”</p>
-
-<p>“She wanted me to go in this evening but I told
-her I couldn’t because I was going to the Morrisons.
-Thank Heaven I had an excuse!”</p>
-
-<p>William unfortunately missed the last sentence,
-as, still inspired by high ideals of virtue, he had gone
-at once upstairs to wash his hands. While he
-splashed about at the handbasin an idea suddenly
-occurred to him. <i>That</i> was how he’d help Ethel.
-He’d give her a happy evening. She should
-spend it with the Helms and not with the Morrisons.
-She’d sounded so sorry that she had to go to the
-Morrisons and couldn’t go to the Helms. He’d
-fix it all up for her this afternoon. He’d <i>help</i> her
-like he’d helped Robert.</p>
-
-<p>He had hoped to be able to give Robert Miss
-Dexter’s note at lunch, but it turned out that Robert
-was lunching at the golf club with a friend.</p>
-
-<p>Directly after lunch William set off to Mrs. Morrison’s
-house. He was shown into the drawing-room. Mrs.
-Morrison, large and fat and comfortable-looking,
-entered. She looked rather bewildered as she met
-William’s stern frowning gaze.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve come from Ethel,” said William aggressively.
-“She’s sorry she can’t come to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morrison’s cheerful countenance fell.</p>
-
-<p>“The girls will be disappointed,” she said, “they
-saw her this morning and she said she was looking
-forward to it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</span></p>
-
-<p>Some explanation seemed necessary. William
-was never one to stick at half measures.</p>
-
-<p>“She’s been took ill since then,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh <i>dear</i>,” said Mrs. Morrison with concern,
-“nothing serious, I hope?”</p>
-
-<p>William considered. If it wasn’t serious she might
-expect Ethel to recover by the evening. She’d
-better have something serious.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m ’fraid it is,” he said gloomily.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear, <i>dear!</i>” said Mrs. Morrison. “Tch! tch!
-What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>William thought over all the complaints he knew.
-None of them seemed quite serious enough. She
-might as well have something <i>really</i> serious while he
-was about it. Then he suddenly remembered hearing
-the gardener talking to the housemaid the day before.
-He’d been talking about his brother who’d got&mdash;what
-was it? Epi&mdash;epi&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Epilepsy!” said William suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>What?</i>” screamed Mrs. Morrison.</p>
-
-<p>William, having committed himself to epilepsy meant
-to stick to it.</p>
-
-<p>“Epilepsy, the doctor says,” he said firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Good heavens!” said Mrs. Morrison. “When
-did you find out? Will he be able to cure it? Is
-the poor girl in bed? How does it affect her? What
-a dreadful thing!”</p>
-
-<p>William was flattered at the impression he seemed
-to have made. He wondered whether it were possible
-to increase it.</p>
-
-<p>“The doctor thinks she’s got a bit of consumption
-too,” he said casually, “but he’s not quite sure.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Morrison screamed again. “<i>Heavens!</i> And
-she always looked so <i>healthy</i>. The girls will be so
-<i>distressed</i>. William, do tell me&mdash;when did your
-mother realise there was something wrong?”</p>
-
-<p>William foresaw that the conversation was becoming<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</span>
-complicated. He did not wish to display his ignorance
-of the symptoms of epilepsy and consumption.</p>
-
-<p>“Jus’ soon after lunch,” he said with rising
-cheerfulness. “Now I’d better be goin’, I think.
-Good afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>He left Mrs. Morrison still gasping upon the sofa
-and in the act of ringing for her maid to fetch her
-smelling salts.</p>
-
-<p>William walked down the road with a swagger.
-He was managing <i>jolly</i> well.... The next visit was
-easier. He simply told Mrs. Helm’s maid at the
-front door to tell Mrs. Helm that Ethel would be able
-to come to-night after all, thank you very much.</p>
-
-<p>Then he swung off to the woods with Jumble, his
-faithful dog. In accordance with his new life of
-virtue he walked straight along the road without
-burrowing in the ditches or throwing stones at
-telegraph posts. His exhilaration slowly vanished. He
-wondered where Ginger and Henry and Douglas were
-and what they were doing. It was <i>jolly</i> dull all alone
-... but still the happiness and gratitude and
-admiration of his family circle when they found out all
-he had done for them would repay him for everything.
-At least he hoped it would. His mother ... he had
-done nothing for his mother yet. He must try to
-do something for his mother....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">V</p>
-
-<p>When he returned home it was almost dinner time.
-His mother and Ethel and Robert were still out.
-The Cook met him with a lugubrious face.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Master William,” she said, “can I trust
-you to give a message to your Ma.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Cook,” said William virtuously.</p>
-
-<p>“Me cold in me ’ead’s that bad I can’t stand on
-me feet no longer. That ’ussy Ellen wouldn’t give up
-’er night hout to ’elp me&mdash;not she, and yer Ma said if<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</span>
-I’d leave things orl ready to dish hup I might go
-and rest afore dinner ’f I felt bad. Well, she’ll be hin
-hany minute now and just tell ’er it’s hall ready to
-dish up. Tell ’er I ’aven’t made no pudd’n but I’ve
-hopened a bottle of stewed pears.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right, Cook,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>Cook took the paper-backed copy of “A Mill Girl’s
-Romance” from the kitchen dresser and slowly sneezed
-her way up the back stairs.</p>
-
-<p>William was to all intents and purposes alone in
-the house. He wandered into the kitchen. There
-was a pleasant smell of cooking. Several saucepans
-simmered on the gas stove. On the table was a
-glass dish containing the stewed pears. His father
-hated cold stewed fruit. He often said so. Suddenly
-William had yet another brilliant idea. He’d make
-a proper pudding for his father. It wouldn’t take
-long. The cookery book was on the dresser. You
-just did what the book told you. It was quite easy.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig11.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">WILLIAM WENT ON BREAKING EGGS TILL NOT ANOTHER<br />
-EGG REMAINED TO BE BROKEN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>He went over to the gas stove. All the gas rings
-were being used. He’d better get one clear for his
-pudding. He supposed his pudding would need a
-gas ring same as all the other things. There were
-two small saucepans each containing dark brown
-stuff. They might as well be together, thought
-William, with a business-like frown. He poured the
-contents of one of the saucepans into the other. He
-had a moment’s misgiving as the mingled smell of
-gravy and coffee arose from the mixture. Then he
-turned to his pudding. He opened the book at random
-at the puddings. Any would do. “Beat three
-eggs together.” He fetched a bowl of eggs from the
-larder and got down a clean basin from the shelf. He’d
-seen Cook doing it, just cracking the eggs, and the
-egg slithered into the basin and she threw the shells
-away. It looked quite easy. He broke an egg.
-The shell fell neatly on to the table and the egg slithered
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</span>down William on to the floor. He tried another and
-the same thing happened. William was not easily
-baulked. He was of a persevering nature. He went
-on breaking eggs till not another egg remained to be
-broken, and then and then only did he relinquish his
-hopes of making a pudding. Then and then only
-did he step out of the pool of a dozen broken eggs
-in which he was standing and, literally soaked in egg
-from the waist downward, go to replace the basin
-on the shelf.</p>
-
-<p>His thirst for practical virtue was not yet sated.
-Surely there was <i>something</i> he could do, even if he
-couldn’t make a pudding. Yes, he could carry the
-things into the dining-room so that they could have
-dinner as soon as they came in. He opened the oven
-door. A chicken on a large dish was there. Good!
-Burning his fingers severely in the process William
-took it out. He’d put it on the dining-room table all
-ready for them to begin. Just as he stood with the
-dish in his hands he heard his mother and Robert
-come in. He’d go and give Robert Miss Dexter’s
-letter first. He looked round for somewhere to put the
-chicken. The table seemed to be full. He put the
-dish and the chicken on to the floor and went into the
-hall closing the door behind him. Robert and his
-mother had gone into the drawing-room. William
-followed.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, William,” said Mrs. Brown pleasantly,
-“had a nice day?”</p>
-
-<p>Without a word William handed the note to Robert.</p>
-
-<p>Robert read it.</p>
-
-<p>He went first red, then pale, then a wild look came
-into his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Marion <i>Dexter!</i>” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re in love with her, aren’t you?” said William.
-“You’ve been writing pomes to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not to Marion <i>Dexter</i>,” screamed Robert. “She’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</span>
-an old woman. She’s nearly twenty-five....
-It’s&mdash;it’s Marion Hatherley I&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how was I to <i>know</i>,” said William in a
-voice of irritation. “You should put their surnames
-in the pomes. I thought you wanted to be
-engaged to her. I’ve took a lot of trouble over it
-gettin’ her to write that.”</p>
-
-<p>Robert was reading and re-reading the note.</p>
-
-<p>“My God!” he said in a hushed voice of horror.
-“I’m engaged to Marion Dexter!”</p>
-
-<p>“Robert,” said Mrs. Brown. “I don’t think you
-ought to use expressions like that before your little
-brother, whoever you’re engaged to.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m engaged to Marion Dexter,” repeated Robert
-in a tone of frenzy, “<i>Me!</i> ... chained to her for
-life when I love another....”</p>
-
-<p>“Robert dear,” said Mrs. Brown, “if there’s been
-any mistake I’m sure that all you have to do is go
-to Miss Dexter and explain.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Explain!</i>” said Robert wildly. “How can I
-explain. She’s <i>accepted</i> me ... how can any man of
-chivalry refuse to marry a woman who.... Oh,
-it’s too much.” He sat down on the sofa and held
-his head in his hands. “It’s the ruin of all my hopes
-... he’s simply spoilt my life ... he’s always
-spoiling my life ... I shall <i>have</i> to marry her now ...
-and she’s an old woman ... she was twenty-four
-last birthday, I know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I was trying to <i>help</i>,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll teach you to help,” said Robert darkly,
-advancing upon him.</p>
-
-<p>William dodged and fled towards the door. There
-he collided with Ethel&mdash;Ethel with a pale, distraught
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s all over the village, mother,” she said angrily
-as she entered. “William’s told everyone in the
-village that I’ve got epilepsy and consumption.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I <i>didn’t</i>,” said William indignantly. “I only
-told Mrs. Morrison.”</p>
-
-<p>“But William,” said his mother, sitting down
-weakly on the nearest chair, “why on earth&mdash;&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Ethel didn’t want to go to the Morrisons
-to-night. She wanted to go to the Helms’&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I did <i>not</i>,” said Ethel. “I was glad to get out
-of going to the Helms’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how was I to <i>know?</i>” said William desperately.
-“I had to go by what you <i>said</i> and I had to go
-by what Robert <i>wrote</i>. I wanted to <i>help</i>. I’ve took
-no end of trouble&mdash;livin’ a life of self-sacrifice and
-service all day without stoppin’ once, and ’stead of
-being grateful an’ happy an’ admirin’&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“But William,” said Mrs. Brown, “how did you
-think it was going to help <i>anyone</i> to say that Ethel had
-epilepsy and consumption?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d rather have epilepsy and consumption,” said
-Robert who had returned to the sofa and was sitting
-with his head between his hands, “than be engaged
-to Marion Dexter.”</p>
-
-<p>“I must say I simply can’t understand why you’ve
-been doing all this, William,” said Mrs. Brown. “We
-must just wait till your father comes in and see what
-he makes of it. And I can’t think why dinner’s so late.”</p>
-
-<p>“She’s gone to bed,” said William gloomily.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d better see to things then,” said Mrs. Brown
-going into the hall.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Epilepsy!</i>” groaned Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“Twenty-four&mdash;twenty-four if she’s a day&mdash;and
-the sort of hair I’ve always disliked,” groaned Robert.</p>
-
-<p>William followed his mother to the kitchen rather
-than be left to the tender mercies of Ethel and Robert.
-He began to feel distinctly apprehensive about the
-kitchen ... that pool of eggs ... those brown
-liquids he’d mixed....</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown opened the kitchen door. On the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</span>
-empty chicken dish on the floor sat Jumble surrounded
-by chicken bones, the wishing bone protruding from
-his mouth, looking blissfully happy....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">VI</p>
-
-<p>In his bedroom whither he had perforce retired
-supperless, William hung up the Outlaws’ signal of
-distress (a scull and crossbones in black and the
-word “Help” in red) at his window in case Ginger
-or Henry or Douglas came down the road, and then
-surveyed the events of the day. Well, he’d done
-his best. He’d lived a life of self-denial and service
-all right. It was his family who were wrong. They
-hadn’t been happy or grateful or admiring. They
-simply weren’t worthy of a life of self-denial and
-service. And anyway how could he have <i>known</i>
-that it was another Marion and that Ethel couldn’t
-say what she meant and that Jumble was going to
-get in through the kitchen window?</p>
-
-<p>A tiny pebble hit his window. He threw it open.
-There down below in the garden path were Douglas,
-Henry and Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! my trusty mates,” said William in a
-penetrating whisper. “I am pent in durance vile&mdash;sent
-to bed, you know&mdash;an’ I’m jolly hungry. Wilt
-kill some deer or venison or something for me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Righto,” said Ginger, and “Yes, gallant captain,”
-said Douglas and Henry as they crept off through
-the bushes.</p>
-
-<p>William returned to his survey of his present
-position. That old boy simply didn’t know what he
-was talking about. He couldn’t ever have tried it
-himself. Anyway he (William) had tried it and he
-knew all there was to know about lives of self-denial
-and service and he’d <i>done</i> with lives of self-denial and
-service, thank you very much. He was going back to
-his ordinary kind of life first thing to-morrow....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</span></p>
-
-<p>A tiny pebble at the window. William leant out.
-Below were Ginger, Henry and Douglas with a
-small basket.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, crumbs!” said William joyfully.</p>
-
-<p>He lowered a string and they tied the little basket
-on to it. William drew it up fairly successfully.
-It contained a half-eaten apple, a bar of toffee that had
-spent several days unwrapped in Henry’s pocket,
-which was covered with bits of fluff, a very stale bun
-purloined from Ginger’s mother’s larder, and a packet
-of monkey nuts bought with Ginger’s last twopence.</p>
-
-<p>William’s eyes shone.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I <i>say</i>,” he said gratefully, “thanks <i>awfully</i>.
-And, I say, you’d better go now ’case they see you,
-and I <i>say</i>, I’ll come huntin’ wild animals with you
-to-morrow night.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right-o,” said the Outlaws creeping away through
-the bushes.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Downstairs William’s family circle consumed a
-meal consisting of sardines and stewed pears. They
-consumed it in gloomy silence, broken only by Mr.
-Brown’s dry, “I suppose there must be quite a heavy
-vein of insanity somewhere in the family for it to come
-out so strong in William.” And by Ethel’s indignant,
-“And <i>epilepsy!</i> Why on earth did he fix on <i>epilepsy?</i>”
-And by Robert’s gloomy, “Engaged to be married
-to her ... <i>twenty-four</i> ... <i>chained</i> to her for life.”</p>
-
-<p>Upstairs the cause of all their troubles sat on the
-floor in the middle of his bedroom with his little
-pile of eatables before him.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, my gallant braves,” he said addressing
-an imaginary band of fellow captives. “Let us eat
-well and then devise some way of escape or ere dawn
-our bleached bones may dangle from yon gallows.”</p>
-
-<p>Then quite happily and contentedly he began to
-eat the fluffy stick of toffee....</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">A BIT OF BLACKMAIL</p>
-
-
-<p>Bob Andrews was one of the picturesque figures of
-the village. He lived at the East Lodge of the Hall,
-and was supposed to help with the gardening of the
-Hall grounds. He was tall, handsome, white-bearded
-and gloriously lazy. He had a roguish twinkle in his
-blue eye and a genius for wasting time&mdash;both his own
-and other people’s. He was a great friend of William
-and the Outlaws. He seemed to them to be free of
-all the drawbacks that usually accompany the state
-of grownupness. He was never busy, never
-disapproving, never tidy, never abstracted. He took
-seriously the really important things of life such as
-cigarette-card collecting, the top season, Red Indians,
-and the finding of birds’ nests. Having abstracted
-a promise from them that they would take “one igg
-an’ no more, ye rascals,” he would show them every
-bird’s nest in the Hall woods. He seemed to know
-exactly where each bird would build each year. He
-had a family of two tame squirrels, four dogs and
-seven cats, who all lived together in unity. He could
-carve boats out of wood, make whistles and bows and
-arrows and tops. He did all these things as if he
-had nothing else to do in the world. He would stand
-for hours perfectly happy with his hands in his pockets,
-smoking. He would watch the Outlaws organising
-races of boats, watch them shooting their bows and
-arrows, taking interest in their marksmanship,
-offering helpful criticism. He was in every way an
-eminently satisfactory person. He was paid a regular
-salary by the absent owner of the Hall for occasionally<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</span>
-opening the Lodge gates, and still more occasionally
-assisting with the gardening. He understood the
-word assistance in its most literal sense&mdash;that of
-“standing by.” He also was generous with kindly
-advice to his more active colleagues. It says much
-for his attractive personality that this want of activity
-was resented by no one.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott, the new owner of the Hall, was a business
-man. He liked to get his money’s worth for his
-money. It was not for nothing that passionate
-appeals to safeguard their health by taking Bott’s
-Sauce with every meal met England’s citizens in every
-town. Mr. Bott believed in getting the last ounce
-of work out of his work-people. That was what had
-raised Mr. Bott from grocer’s errand boy to lord of
-the manor. When Mr. Bott discovered that he had
-upon his newly acquired estate a man who drew a
-working man’s salary for merely standing about and
-at intervals consuming the more choice fruit from
-the hot houses, Mr. Bott promptly sacked that man.
-It would have been against Mr. Bott’s most sacred
-principles to do otherwise....</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws avoided Mr. Bott’s estate for some
-time after their adventure with his daughter. But
-having heard that she had departed on a lengthy visit
-to distant relatives, the Outlaws decided to return
-to their favourite haunts. They entered the wood by
-crawling through the hedge. For a time they amused
-themselves by climbing trees and turning somersaults
-among the leaves. Then they tried jumping over
-the stream. The stream possessed the attraction
-of being just too wide to jump over. The interest
-lay in seeing how much or how little of their boots
-got wet each time. Finally the Outlaws wearied of
-these pursuits.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s go and find Bob,” said William at last.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</span></p>
-
-<p>Scuffling, shuffling, dragging their toes along the
-ground, whistling, punching each other at intervals,
-in the fashion of boyhood, they made their way slowly
-to the East Lodge.</p>
-
-<p>Bob stood at his door smoking as usual.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, Bob,” called the Outlaws.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, ye young rascals.”</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Bob, make us some boats an’ let’s have
-a race.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure an’ I will,” said Bob knocking out his pipe
-and taking a large penknife out of his pocket, “though
-it’s wastin’ me time ye are, as usual.”</p>
-
-<p>He took up a piece of wood and began to whittle.</p>
-
-<p>“How’s the squirrel, Bob?”</p>
-
-<p>“Foine.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bob, they’re building in the ivy on the Old Oak
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shure an’ I knew that before you did, me bhoy.”</p>
-
-<p>But though he whittled and whistled Bob was
-evidently not his old self.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Bob, next month&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Next month, me bhoys, I shall not be here.”</p>
-
-<p>They stared at him open-mouthed.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>What</i>&mdash;you goin’ away for a holiday, Bob?”</p>
-
-<p>Bob whittled away nonchalantly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m goin’ away, me bhoys, because th’ould devil
-up there has given me the sack&mdash;God forgive him
-for <i>Oi</i> won’t,” he ended piously.</p>
-
-<p>“But&mdash;<i>why?</i>” they said aghast.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig12.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p>“He sez I don’t work. <i>Me!</i>” he said indignantly.
-“<i>Me</i>&mdash;an’ me wearin’ me hands to the bone for him
-the way I do. <i>An’</i> he says I steal ’is fruit&mdash;me what
-takes only the few peaches he’d come an’ give me with
-his own hands if he was a gintleman at all, at all.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a <i>shame!</i>” said the Outlaws.</p>
-
-<p>“Turnin’ me an’ me hanimals out into the cold
-world. May God forgive him!” said Bob. “Well,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</span>
-here’s yer boats, ye young rascals,
-an’ don’t ye go near me pheasants’
-nests or I’ll put the fear of God
-on ye.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve gotter <i>do</i> something,”
-said William, when Bob had
-returned, smoking peacefully, to
-his Lodge.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>We</i> can’t do anything,” said
-Ginger despondently. “Who’d
-listen to <i>us?</i> Who’d take any
-notice of <i>us</i>, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>William the leader looked at
-him sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“You jus’ wait an’ <i>see</i>,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott was very stout. His stoutness was a
-great secret trouble to Mr. Bott. Mr. Bott had
-made his money and now Mr. Bott wished to take his
-proper place in Society. Mr. Bott considered not
-unreasonably that his corpulency, though an excellent
-advertisement of the nourishing qualities of Bott’s
-Sauce, yet detracted from the refinement of his
-appearance. Mrs. Bott frequently urged him to “do
-something about it.” He had consulted many expensive
-specialists. Mrs. Bott kept finding “new men” for
-him. The last “new man” she had found was
-highly recommended on all sides. He practically
-guaranteed his treatment to transform a human
-balloon to a human pencil in a few months. Mr.
-Bott had begun the treatment. It was irksome but
-Mr. Bott was persevering. Had Mr. Bott not been
-persevering he would never have attained that position
-of eminence in the commercial world that he now
-held. Every morning as soon as it was light, Mr.
-Bott, decently covered by a large overcoat, went down
-to a small lake in the grounds among the bushes.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</span>
-There Mr. Bott divested himself of his overcoat and
-appeared in small bathing drawers. From the pocket
-of his overcoat Mr. Bott would then take a skipping
-rope and with this he would skip five times round
-the lake. Then he would put away his skipping rope
-and do his exercises. He would twist his short fat
-body into strange attitudes, flinging his short fat arms
-towards Heaven, standing upon one short fat leg
-with the other thrust out at various angles and
-invariably overbalancing. Finally, Mr. Bott had to
-plunge into the lake (it was not deep), splash and
-kick and run round it, in and then emerge to dry
-himself on a towel concealed in the other pocket of
-his overcoat, shiveringly don the overcoat again and
-furtively return to the house. For Mr. Bott was shy
-about his “treatment.” He fondly imagined that
-no one except Mrs. Bott, the “new man” and himself
-knew about his early morning adventures.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>One chilly morning Mr. Bott had skipped and leapt
-and twisted himself and splashed himself and emerged,
-shivering and red-nosed, for his overcoat. Then Mr.
-Bott received a shock that was nearly too much for
-his much-exercised system.
-His overcoat was not there.
-He looked all round the tree
-where he knew he had left
-it, and it was not there. It
-was most certainly not there.
-With chattering teeth Mr.
-Bott threw a glance of
-pathetic despair around him.
-Then above the sound of the
-chattering of his teeth he
-heard a voice.</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig13.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p>“I’ve got your coat up
-here.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott threw a startled glance up into the tree
-whence the voice came. From among the leaves a
-stern, freckled, snub-nosed, wild-haired face glared
-down at him.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll give you your coat,” said William, “’f you’ll
-promise to let Bob stay.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott clasped his dripping head with a dripping
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Bob?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bob Andrews what you’re sending away for
-nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott tried to look dignified in spite of the
-chattering of his teeth and the water that poured
-from his hair down his face.</p>
-
-<p>“I have my reasons, child,” he said, “of which
-you know nothing. Will you kindly give me back
-my coat? I’m afraid you are a very naughty, ill-behaved
-little boy to do a thing like this and if you
-aren’t careful I’ll tell the police about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll give you your coat if you’ll promise not to
-send Bob away,” said William again sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall most certainly speak to your father <i>and</i>
-the police,” said Mr. Bott. “You’re a very impudent
-little boy! Give me my coat at once.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll give you your coat,” said William again,
-“if you’ll promise not to send Bob away.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott’s dignity began to melt away.</p>
-
-<p>“You young devil,” he roared. “You&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>He looked wildly around and his eyes fell upon
-something upon which William’s eye ought to have
-fallen before. William had for once overlooked
-something vital to his strategy. In the long grass
-behind the tree lay a ladder that had been left there
-long ago by some gardener and forgotten. With a
-yell of triumph Mr. Bott rushed to it.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, crumbs!” said William among the leafage.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott put the ladder against the tree trunk and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</span>
-began to swarm up it&mdash;large, dripping, chattering with
-rage and cold. William retreated along his branch, still
-clinging to the overcoat. Mr. Bott pursued furiously.</p>
-
-<p>“You young rogue&mdash;you young devil. I’ll teach
-you&mdash;I’ll&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The branch down which William was retreating
-pursued by Mr. Bott was directly over the lake.
-William alone it could easily have supported, but it
-drew the line at Mr. Bott. With a creaking and a
-crashing above which rose a yell of terror from Mr.
-Bott, it fell into the water accompanied by its two
-occupants. The splash made by Mr. Bott’s falling
-body at first obscured the landscape. Before William
-could recover from the shock caused by Mr. Bott’s
-splash and yell and his own unexpected descent, Mr.
-Bott was upon him. Mr. Bott was maddened by rage
-and fury, and wet and cold. He ducked William and
-shook William and tore his wet overcoat from William.
-William butted Mr. Bott in his largest and roundest
-part, then scrambled from the lake and fled dripping
-towards the gate. Mr. Bott at first pursued him,
-then realising that the path was taking him within
-sight of the high road, turned back, drew his soaked
-overcoat over his shoulders and fled chatteringly and
-shiveringly towards his resplendent mansion.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Two hours later, William met the other Outlaws
-by appointment in the old barn where all their
-meetings were held.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” said the other Outlaws eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>William, who was wearing his best suit, looked
-pale and chastened but none the less determined.</p>
-
-<p>“It didn’t quite come off,” admitted William.
-“Something went wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>Their faces fell, but they did not question him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’ve done all we can,” said Ginger
-resignedly, “an’ we jus’ can’t help it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig14.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">ONCE MR. BOTT THOUGHT HE SAW THAT HORRIBLE BOY’S<br />
-FACE IN THE BUSHES. ONCE HE IMAGINED HE HEARD<br />
-AN ODD CLICK, AS IF SOMEONE HAD STEPPED ON A TWIG.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“I’ve got another idea,” said William grimly.
-“I’ve jolly well not <i>finished</i> yet.”</p>
-
-<p>They looked at him with awe and respect.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll have another meeting in three days,” said
-William with his stern frown, “an’&mdash;an’&mdash;well, you
-jus’ wait and see.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig15.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">MR. BOTT LEAPED AND SKIPPED AND GAMBOLLED AND<br />
-SPLASHED. HE WAS DETERMINED TO OBEY TO THE FULL<br />
-THE SPECIALIST’S ADVICE ABOUT PHYSICAL EXERCISES.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The next day was bright and sunny. Mr. Bott
-almost enjoyed his morning exercises. He thought
-occasionally with indignation of the events of the
-previous morning. That dreadful boy ... anyway
-he’d <i>shown</i> him&mdash;he wasn’t likely to come again after
-yesterday. And most certainly Bob Andrews should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</span>
-go ... he’d like to see any fool boy dictating to <i>him</i>.
-But Mr. Bott could not feel bad-tempered for long.
-It was such a bright sunny morning and he’d just
-discovered himself to be ⅞ of an inch thinner round
-the waist than this time last week.... He leapt
-and skipped and gambolled and splashed. Once
-he imagined he saw the horrible boy’s face in the
-bushes, but looking again he came to the conclusion
-that he must have been mistaken. Once too, he
-thought he heard a snap or a click as if someone had
-stepped on a twig, but listening again he came to the
-conclusion that he must have been mistaken. He
-enjoyed his exercises for the next two mornings as well.
-But on the third morning as soon as he had come
-down, dressed and glowing, to his study after his
-exercises, to look at his letters before breakfast the
-butler threw open the door and announced:</p>
-
-<p>“They said it was himportant business, sir, an’
-you knew about it. I ’ope it’s all right.”</p>
-
-<p>Then four boys walked up to his desk. One was
-the boy who had taken his overcoat up a tree two days
-before. The butler had gone. Mr. Bott, sputtering
-with rage, reached out to the bell. (He was going to
-say “Kick these boys out”) when the worst of the
-boys&mdash;the devil&mdash;laid half a dozen snapshots on his
-desk. Mr. Bott looked at them, and then sat rigid and
-motionless, his hand still outstretched towards the bell.</p>
-
-<p>Then his rubicund face grew pale.</p>
-
-<p>The first snapshot showed Mr. Bott, short, fat,
-and (except for his microscopic bathing drawers)
-naked, skipping by the lake. The angle of his legs
-was irresistibly comic. The second snapshot showed
-Mr. Bott, still short and fat and almost naked, balancing
-himself on one arm and one leg, the others stuck
-out wildly in the air, his eyes staring, his tongue
-hanging out of his mouth. The third snapshot
-showed Mr. Bott in the act of over-balancing in a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</span>
-rather difficult exercise. That was the gem of the
-collection. The fourth showed Mr. Bott lying on
-his back and kicking his legs in the air. The
-fifth showed Mr. Bott standing on two very stiff arms
-and stiff legs with an expression of acute suffering
-on his face. The sixth showed Mr. Bott splashing in
-the lake.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott took out his handkerchief and wiped away
-the perspiration that was standing out on his brow.</p>
-
-<p>“If you burn ’em,” said William firmly, “we can
-get more. We’ve got the films and we can make
-hundreds more&mdash;and <i>jolly good</i> ones too.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott began to stammer.</p>
-
-<p>“W-hat are you g-going to d-do with them?” he
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Just show them to people,” said William calmly.</p>
-
-<p>Horrid visions passed before Mr. Bott’s eye. He
-saw the wretched things in the local paper. He
-saw them passed from hand to hand in drawing-rooms.
-He saw strong men helpless with mirth as
-they seized on them. His position in Society&mdash;well,
-the less said about his position in Society if those
-things became public the better....</p>
-
-<p>William took a crumpled document from his pocket
-and laid it solemnly upon Mr. Bott’s desk.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a contrack,” he said, “signed in all our
-life’s blood sayin’ that we’ll keep ’em hid safely and
-never show ’em to anyone s’long as you let Bob stay.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott knew when he was beaten. He moistened
-his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” he whispered. “All right ... I
-promise&mdash;only&mdash;<i>go away</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>They went away.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott locked the contract in his desk and pocketed
-the key.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bott came in. Mr. Bott still sat huddled in
-his chair.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You don’t look well, Botty darling,” said Mrs.
-Bott with concern in her voice.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Mr. Bott in a hollow voice. “I don’t
-know that this treatment’s doing me any good.”</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it, ducky?” said Mrs. Bott. “Well, I’ll
-try to find you a new man.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>That afternoon the Outlaws passed Bob. He
-stood outside his Lodge, hands in pockets, pipe in
-mouth, handsome, white-bearded, gloriously lazy.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve found a grass snake for ye, me bhoys,” he
-sang out, “he’s in a box in the yard beyond. Oh,
-an’ Bob Andrews is <i>not</i> goin’, me bhoys. The sack
-is withdrawn. Th’aud devil’s realised me value,
-glory be to God.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>That night Robert, William’s elder brother, came
-downstairs with his camera in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” he said, “I could have sworn I put this
-away with half a dozen films in.”</p>
-
-<p>“When did you have it last, dear?” said his mother.</p>
-
-<p>William took a book from a shelf and sat down at
-the table, resting his head on his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“I put it away last Autumn till the decent weather
-came round, but I could have sworn I put it away with
-a roll of films in.”</p>
-
-<p>His eye fell sternly and accusingly upon William.</p>
-
-<p>William looked up, met it unflinchingly with an
-expression of patient endurance on his face.</p>
-
-<p>“Robert,” he said with a sigh. “I wish you’d
-talk more quietly. I’m trying to learn my history
-dates.”</p>
-
-<p>Robert’s jaw dropped. Then he went quietly from
-the room still gaping. There was simply no making
-head or tail of that kid....</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM THE MONEY-MAKER</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The</span> rain poured ceaselessly upon the old barn where
-the Outlaws were assembled. They had meant to spend
-the afternoon birds-nesting, and they had continued
-to birds-nest in spite of the steady downpour
-till Ginger had torn such a large hole in his knickers
-that as he pathetically remarked, “S’all very well for
-you. ’S only rainin’ on your clothes. But it’s
-rainin’ right on to <i>me</i> through my hole an’ it’s jolly
-cold an’ I’m goin’ home.”</p>
-
-<p>His threat of going home was hardly serious. It
-was not likely that any of the Outlaws would waste
-the precious hours of a half-holiday in a place so barren
-of any hope of adventure as home.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William the leader (upon whose
-stern and grimy countenance the rain had traced
-little channels of cleanliness) testily. “All right.
-My goodness, what a fuss you make about a bit of rain
-on your bare skin. What would you do if you was a
-Red Indian an’ had to be out of doors all weathers and
-nearly all bare skin?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it doesn’t rain in Red Indian climits,”
-said Ginger. “So there! Don’t you be too clever.
-It doesn’t rain in Red Indian climits.”</p>
-
-<p>William was nonplussed for a moment, then he
-summoned his fighting spirit.</p>
-
-<p>“How do you know?” he said. “You ever been
-there? You ever been to a Red Indian climit?
-Well, I din’t know you’d ever been to a Red Indian
-climit. But I’m very int’rested to hear it. It’s very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</span>
-int’restin’ an’ funny you din’t get killed an’ eat, I
-<i>mus’</i> say.”</p>
-
-<p>William’s weapon of heavy sarcasm always proved
-rather bewildering to his friends.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ see that it matters whether I’ve been to
-a Red Indian climit or not,” said Ginger stoutly,
-“’it wun’t stop me feelin’ wet now if I had, would it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what would you do if you was a diver,”
-went on William, “’f you’re so frightened of gettin’
-a bit wet? P’raps what with knowin’ so much
-about Red Indian climits you’ll say it’s not wet
-in the sea. Of course ’f you say it’s not wet in the
-sea we’ll all b’lieve you. Oh yes, we’ll all b’lieve you
-’f you say it’s not wet in the sea. I s’pose that’s wot
-you’ll be sayin’ next&mdash;that it’s not wet in the sea&mdash;with
-knowin’ so much about Red Indian climits&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>At this moment there came a redoubled torrent
-of rain and turning up their sodden collars the Outlaws
-all ran to the old barn which was the scene of many
-of their activities.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m s’prised to see <i>you</i> run like that,” said Ginger
-to William. “I should’ve thought you’d have liked
-gettin’ wet the way you talk about divers an’ Red
-Indians.”</p>
-
-<p>William shut the door of the barn and pushed his
-wet hair out of his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it was <i>you</i> wot knew all about Red
-Indian climits an’ the sea not bein’ wet,” he said
-severely. “Seems to me you don’t know wot you <i>are</i>
-talkin’ about sometimes. One minute you say the
-sea’s not wet&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I never said the sea wasn’t wet,” said Ginger.
-“You sim’ly don’t listen to what I <i>do</i> say.&mdash;You jus’
-keep on talkin’ an’ talkin’ yourself an’ you don’
-listen prop’ly to wot other folks say. You get it all
-wrong. You go on talkin’ and talkin’ about Red
-Indians an’ divers&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</span></p>
-
-<p>But Henry and Douglas, the other two Outlaws,
-were tired of the subject.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do shut <i>up!</i>” said Henry irritably.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Who</i> shut up?” said William aggressively.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Both</i> of you,” said Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger and William hurled themselves upon the
-other two and there followed one of those scrimmages
-in which the Outlaws delighted. It ended by Ginger
-sitting on Henry and William on Douglas, and all
-felt a little warmer and dryer and less irritable. The
-subjects of Red Indians and divers were by tacit
-consent dropped.</p>
-
-<p>It was raining harder than ever. The water was
-pouring in through the roof at the other end of the
-barn.</p>
-
-<p>“What’ll we <i>do</i>?” said Ginger disconsolately
-rolling off his human perch.</p>
-
-<p>Their afternoon so far had not been encouraging.
-They had with characteristic optimism aimed at
-collecting forty eggs before tea. They had all sustained
-severe falls from trees, they were wet through,
-they were scratched and torn and bruised, and the
-result was one cracked thrush’s egg from a deserted
-nest, which Ginger subsequently dropped and then
-inadvertently trod upon while climbing through a
-hedge. This incident had made Ginger unpopular
-for a time. It had drawn forth the rough diamonds
-of William’s sarcasm.</p>
-
-<p>“’S very kind of you, I’m sure. Yes, we took
-all that trouble jus’ so’s you could have the pleasure
-of treadin’ on it. Oh, yes, we feel quite paid for all
-the trouble we took now you’ve been kind enough
-to tread on it. Can we get you anythin’ else to tread
-on? I’m sure it’s very nice for the poor bird to
-think it’s had all the trouble of layin’ that egg jus’
-for you to tread on&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>This rhetoric had resulted in a fight between William<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</span>
-and Ginger, at the end of which both had rolled into
-a ditch. The ditch was not a dry ditch, but they
-were both so wet already that the immersion made
-little difference.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Do?</i>” said Henry indignantly. “Jus’ tell us
-what there <i>is</i> to do shut up in this ole place. <i>Do?</i>
-Huh!”</p>
-
-<p>“I know what we can do,” said William suddenly,
-“we can make up a tale turn an’ turn about.”</p>
-
-<p>They were sitting on the two wooden packing
-cases with which they had furnished their meeting
-place. A small rivulet ran between, having its source
-just beneath the hole in the roof at the other end of
-the barn and flowing out under the door. The Outlaws
-carelessly dabbled their feet in it as it passed. Their
-drooping spirits revived at William’s suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right,” said Henry, “you start.”</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right,” said William modestly. “I don’
-mind startin’. Once there was a man wot got cast
-upon a desert island.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why?” said Ginger, “why was he cast upon a
-desert island?”</p>
-
-<p>“’F you’re goin’ to keep on int’ruptin’ askin’
-silly questions&mdash;&mdash;” began William sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right,” said Ginger pacifically. “A’ right.
-Go on.”</p>
-
-<p>“He was cast upon a desert island,” repeated
-William, “an’ the desert island was full of savage
-cannibals what chased him round an’ round the island
-till he climbed a tree an’ they all s’rounded the tree
-utterin’ fierce yells&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“What was they yellin’?” said Henry with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“How could anyone tell what they was yelling
-without knowin’ the langwidge?” said William
-impatiently. “Do you know the cannibal langwidge?
-No, an’ the man din’t, so how could he tell wot they
-was yellin’?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well the one wot’s tellin’ the tale oughter know,”
-said Henry doggedly, “<i>You</i> oughter know. The
-one wot’s tellin’ the tale oughter know everythin’
-<i>in</i> the tale&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I do,” said William crushingly, “but I’m
-not goin’ to tell <i>you</i> wot they was yellin’, so <i>there</i>.
-An’ when you’ve all kin’ly finished int’ruptin’ I’ll
-kin’ly go on. They was all beneath the tree utterin’
-fierce yells wot I know wot they meant but wot I’m
-not goin’ to tell <i>you</i>, when he took a great big jump
-right off the tree, splash into the sea again an’ caught
-hold of a whale wot was jus’ passing and got on its
-back an’ held tight on by its fins&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think a whale’s got fins,” said Douglas
-dubiously.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ care whether other whales’ve got fins or
-not,” said William firmly, “this one haddem anyway.
-An’ he kept rearin’ up an’ turnin’ over so’s to shake the
-man off but the man held tight and&mdash;now, Henry, go
-on.”</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right,” said Henry, “well he went on an’
-on on the whale’s back till he came to a ship an’ he
-jumped up on to it from the whale’s back&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“He couldn’t have done,” said Douglas firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“What?” said Henry.</p>
-
-<p>“Couldn’t have done. Couldn’t have jumped from
-a whale’s back to a ship. A ship’s high.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he <i>did</i>,” said Henry, “so it’s no use talkin’
-about whether he could or not. If he <i>did</i> he <i>could</i>,
-I should think.” William’s sarcasm was infectious.
-“Well, he found it was a pirate ship an’ they put
-him in irons an’ made him walk the plank an’ just when
-he got to the end of the plank&mdash;now Ginger, go on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’ve gottim in a nice mess, I mus’ say,”
-said Ginger bitterly, “an’ I s’pose you want me to
-gettim out of it&mdash;chased by cannibals an’ now walkin’
-a plank! Well <i>you</i> gottim into it an’ I’m not goin’<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</span>
-to bother with him. I din’t start it an’ I don’t like it.
-I’d rather have soldiers an’ fightin’ an’ that sort of a
-tale. An’ wot can I do with him walkin’ the plank?
-I’m jus’ about tired of that man. An’ he’s not even
-gotta name. Well, jus’ as he got to the end of the
-plank he fell in an’ the whale ate him up an’ he died.”</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t fair,” said Douglas indignantly, “gettin’
-him dead before I’ve had my turn. What’m I goin’
-to do?”</p>
-
-<p>“You can tell about someone catchin’ the whale
-an’ findin’ his dead body inside,” said Ginger calmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, can I?” said Douglas, “well I’m not goin’
-to.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, ’cause you can’t,” jeered Ginger. “You
-can’t finish it however we left it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, couldn’t I?” said Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>They closed in combat. William and Henry
-watched dispassionately.</p>
-
-<p>Douglas’s collar had completely broken loose from
-its moorings and two of the already existing tears in
-Ginger’s coat had been extended to meet each other.
-They sat down again on the packing cases.</p>
-
-<p>“Still raining,” said Henry morosely.</p>
-
-<p>“I bet your mother’ll say <i>something</i> about that
-tear,” said William to Ginger severely.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you bet wrong then,” said Ginger, “’cause
-she’s gone to London to see the Exhibition.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fancy goin’ to London to see an ole exhibition,”
-said William scornfully, “What she see there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, natives,” said Ginger, “black uns, you know,
-an’ native places an’ jugs an’ things made by natives.”</p>
-
-<p>“That all?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, there’s amusements an’ things too, but
-that’s all really,” said Ginger. “You pay money
-an’ jus’ see ’em’ an’ that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” said William. His face was set in
-deep scowling thought for a minute, then a light broke<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</span>
-over it. “I say,” he said, “let’s have a nexhibition&mdash;let’s
-get a nexhibition up. Well, ’f Ginger’s mother
-’ll go all the way to London to see a nexhibition it’d&mdash;well,
-it’d be savin’ folks’ money to givvem a
-nexhibition here.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve <i>done</i> things like that,” said Henry morosely.
-“We’ve got up shows an’ things an’ they’ve always
-turned out wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve never got up a nexhibition,” said William,
-“a nexhibition’s quite diff’rent. It couldn’t go
-wrong an’ we’d make ever so much money.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t b’lieve in your ways of makin’ money,”
-said Henry, “something always goes wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right,” said William sternly, “don’t be <i>in</i>
-it. Keep <i>out</i> of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no,” said Henry hastily, “I’d rather be <i>in</i>
-it even if it <i>goes</i> wrong. I’d rather be in a thing that
-turns out wrong than not be in anything at all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where’ll we get natives?” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, anyone can look like a native,” said William
-carelessly. “That’s easy ’s easy.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’ll we call it?” said Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>“The London one’s called Wembley,” said Ginger
-with an air of pride in his wide knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>“What about ‘The Little Wembley’?” said Henry.</p>
-
-<p>“Well <i>that’s</i> a silly thing to do!” said William
-sternly, “<i>tellin’</i> ’em it’s littler than Wembley before
-they’ve come to it. Even if it is littler than
-Wembley we needn’t <i>tellem</i> so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s call it just Wembley,” suggested Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said William, “it would be muddlin’ havin’
-’em both called by the same name. Folks wouldn’t
-know which they was talkin’ about.”</p>
-
-<p>“When I stayed with my aunt,” said Ginger slowly,
-“there was a place called a Picture Palace de lucks.
-Let’s call it Wembley de lucks.”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s de lucks mean,” said William suspiciously.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I ’spect it means sorter good luck,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William graciously, “that’ll
-do all right for a name. Now how’re we goin’ to
-let people know about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“How did they let people know about the other
-Wembley?” said Henry.</p>
-
-<p>“They put advertisements in the papers an’ things,”
-said Ginger who was beginning to consider himself
-the greatest living authority on the subject of the
-Wembley Exhibition.</p>
-
-<p>“We can’t do that,” said Henry, “the papers
-sim’ly wouldn’t print ’em if we wrote ’em. I know
-’cause I once sent somethin’ to a paper an’ they
-sim’ly didn’t print it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then,” said William undaunted, “we’ll
-write letters to people. They’ll have to read ’em.
-We’ll stick ’em through their letter boxes an’ they’ll
-<i>have</i> to read ’em case they was somethin’ important.
-An’ I say, it’s nearly stopped rainin’. Let’s see ’f
-we can find any more eggs.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">II</p>
-
-<p>A week later the Outlaws were sitting round the
-large wooden table of the one-time nursery in Ginger’s
-house. In a strained silence they wrote out the
-letter drafted by William, a copy of which was before
-each of them. The table was covered with ink stains.
-Their hair, their faces, their tongues, their collars,
-their fingers were covered with ink. Most of them
-wrote slowly and laboriously with ink-stained tongues
-protruding between ink-stained teeth.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Sir</span> or <span class="smcap">Maddam</span> (ran the copy),</p>
-
-<p>On Satterdy we are going to have a Wembley
-not the one in London but one here so as to save
-you fairs and other exspences there will be natifs in
-natif coschume with natif potts and ammusments<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</span>
-and other things which are secrits till the day entranse
-will be one penny exsit free ammusments are one
-penny hopping to have the pleshure of your compny,</p>
-
-<p class="r">
-<span class="r1">Yours truely,</span><br />
-<span class="smcap">The Wembly Comitty</span>.
-</p>
-
-<p>P.S. It is a secrit who we are.</p>
-
-<p>P.P.S. It will probly be in the feeld next the barn
-but notises will be put up latter.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>When the notes had been written the Outlaws were
-both physically and mentally exhausted. They
-could run and wrestle and climb trees all day without
-feeling any effects, but one page of writing always
-had the peculiar effect of exhausting their strength
-and spirits. As William said, “It’s havin’ to hold
-an uncomfortable pen an’ keep on thinkin’ an’ lookin’
-at paper an’ sittin’ without a change. It’s&mdash;well I’d
-rather be a Red Indian where there aren’t no schools.”</p>
-
-<p>The notices were distributed by the Outlaws
-personally after dark in order the better to conceal
-their identity. They did not deliver notices to their
-own families or the friends of their families. Their
-own families were apt to be suspicious and not very
-encouraging. The Outlaws regarded their families as
-stumbling blocks placed in their paths by a malicious
-Fate.</p>
-
-<p>At last, spent and weary and ink-stained, they
-bade each other good-night.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it <i>oughter</i> turn out all right with all the
-trouble we’re takin’ over it,” said Ginger rather
-bitterly. “I feel wore out with writin’ an’ writin’
-an’ walkin’ an’ walkin’ and stickin’ things through
-the letter boxes. I feel sim’ly wore out.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’m goin’ to be sick soon,” said Henry
-with a certain gentle resignation, “swallerin’ all
-that ink.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no one <i>asked</i> you to swaller ink,” said<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</span>
-William whose position of responsibility was making
-him slightly irritable. “You talk ’s if we’d <i>wanted</i>
-you to swaller ink. It’s not done any good to <i>us</i>
-you swallerin’ ink. ’F you’ve been wastin’ Ginger’s
-ink swallerin’ it then you don’ need to blame us.
-It’s not Ginger’s fault that you’ve swallered his ink,
-is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, an’ it is,” said Henry, “it got all up his
-pen an’ on to my fingers an’ then I had to keep lickin’
-’em to get it off an’ that’s wot’s made me feel sick.
-Well, ornery ink doesn’t do that. It’s somethin’
-wrong with Ginger’s ink <i>I</i> should say. It&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Henry!</i>” called an irate maternal voice through
-the dusk, “<i>when</i> are you coming in? It’s <i>hours</i> past
-your bedtime.”</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws scattered hastily....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">III</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws had decided to hold the exhibition in
-Farmer Jenks’ field behind the barn. Farmer Jenks
-was the Outlaws’ most implacable foe. He frequently
-chased the Outlaws from his fields with shouts and
-imprecations and stones and dogs. He had once
-uttered the intriguing threat to William that he
-would “cut his liver out.” This had deeply impressed
-the Outlaws and William had felt proud of the fame
-it won him. He could not resist haunting Farmer
-Jenks’ lands because the chase that always ensued
-was so much more exciting than an ordinary chase.
-“Well, he’s not cut it out <i>yet</i>,” he used to say
-proudly after each escape.</p>
-
-<p>But just now Farmer Jenks was away staying with
-a brother and Mrs. Jenks was confined to bed, and
-the farm labourers quite wisely preferred to leave
-the Outlaws as far as possible to their own devices.
-So the Outlaws were coming more and more to regard
-that field of Farmer Jenks’ as their private property.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</span></p>
-
-<p>The afternoon of the exhibition was unusually
-warm. The exhibition opened at 2 o’clock. To the
-stile that led from the road was attached a notice</p>
-
-
-<p class="c large">
-THIS WAY T<br />
-O WEMBLY D<br />
-E LUCKS
-</p>
-
-<p>and on the hole in the hedge by which spectators were
-to enter Farmers Jenks’ field was pinned another notice.</p>
-
-<p class="c large">
-THIS WAY T<br />
-O WEMBL<br />
-EY DE L<br />
-<span class="ml">UCKS.</span>
-</p>
-
-<p>At 2.30 which was the time advertised for the opening
-a small and suspicious-looking group of four school
-children had gathered at the stile. William, his face
-and bare legs thickly covered with boot blacking and
-tightly clutching an old sack across his chest, met
-them, frowning sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“One penny each <i>please!</i>” he said aggressively.
-“An’ I’m part of the exhibition an’ I’m a native
-an’ come this way <i>please</i> an’ hurry up.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a certain amount of bargaining on the
-part of the tallest boy who refused to give more than a
-halfpenny, saying that he could black himself and look
-in the looking glass for nothing if that was all there
-was ’n a nexhibition, and there was a small scene
-caused by a little girl who refused to pay anything at
-all, and yet insisted on accompanying them in spite of
-William’s stern remonstrances, and finally followed
-in the wake of the party howling indignantly, “I’m
-<i>not</i> a cheat. <i>You’re</i> a cheat&mdash;you narsy ole black boy
-an’ I <i>won’</i> give you a penny an’ I <i>will</i> come to your
-narsy old show, so there! Boo-oo-oo-oo!”</p>
-
-<p>William shepherded his small flock through the
-hole in the hedge. Then he took his stand behind a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</span>
-little piece of wood on which were ranged pieces of
-half-dry plasticine tortured into strange shapes.
-With a dramatic gesture William flung aside his piece
-of sacking and stood revealed in an old pale blue
-bathing costume that had belonged to his sister Ethel
-in her childhood.</p>
-
-<p>“Now you can look at me first,” he said in a deep
-unnatural voice. “I’m a native of South Africa
-dressed in native coschume an’ this here is native
-orn’ments made by me an’ you can buy the orn’ments
-for a penny each,” he added not very hopefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the tallest boy, “an’ we can do <i>without</i>
-buyin’ ’em equ’ly well.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, an’ I’d jus’ as soon you <i>din’</i> buy ’em,” said
-William proudly but untruthfully, “’cause they’re
-worth more’n a penny an’ I’ll very likely get a shillin’
-each for ’em before the exhibition’s over.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” said the boy scornfully. “Well, wot’s
-next? ’S not worth a penny <i>so</i> far.”</p>
-
-<p>“’F it’d been worth a penny <i>so</i> far,” said William,
-“d’you think I’d’v let you see it <i>all</i> for a penny.
-Why don’ you try to talk <i>sense?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>The small girl at the tail of the procession was still
-sobbing indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m <i>not</i> a cheat. Boo-<i>hoo-hoo</i> an’ I won’t give
-the narsy boy my Sat’day penny. I <i>won’t</i>. I wanter
-buy sweeties wiv it an’ I’m <i>not</i> a cheat, boo-hoo-hoo!”</p>
-
-<p>“A’ <i>right</i>,” said the goaded William. “You’re
-not then an’ don’t then an’ shut up.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re being very <i>wude</i> to me,” said the young
-pessimist with a fresh wail.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond William were three other sacking-shrouded
-figures, each behind a piece of wood on which were
-displayed small objects.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig16.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“TALK AUSTRALIAN!” COMMANDED WILLIAM.<br />
-“MONKEY, FLUKY, TIM-TIM,” SAID GINGER.<br />
-“CALL THAT AUSTRALIAN?” SAID THE AUDIENCE<br />
-INDIGNANTLY.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Now I’m a guide,” said William returning to his
-hoarse, unnatural voice. “This way please ladies
-an’ gentlemen an’ we’d all be grateful if the lady
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</span>would kin’ly shut up.” This remark occasioned a
-fresh outburst of angry sobs on the part of the aggrieved
-lady. “This,” taking off the first sackcloth with a
-flourish and revealing Ginger dressed in an old tapestry
-curtain, the exposed parts of his person plentifully
-smeared with moist boot blacking, “this is a native<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</span>
-of Australia, and these are native wooden orn’ments
-made by him. Talk Australian, Native.”</p>
-
-<p>The confinement under the sacking had been an
-austere one and the day was hot and streams of
-perspiration mingling with the blacking gave Ginger’s
-countenance a mottled look. Before him were
-wooden objects roughly cut into shapes that might
-have represented almost anything. As examples
-of art they belonged decidedly to the primitive School.</p>
-
-<p>“Go on, Ging&mdash;Native, I mean. Talk Australian,”
-commanded William.</p>
-
-<p>“Monkey, donkey, fluky, tim-tim,” said Ginger,
-“an’ <i>crumbs</i>, isn’t it hot?”</p>
-
-<p>“Call that Australian?” said the audience
-indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William loftily, “he’s nat’rally learnt
-a bit of English comin’ over here.” Then, taking
-up one of the unrecognisable wooden shapes and handing
-it to the little girl: “Here, you can have that if
-you’ll shut up an’ it’s worth ever so much, <i>I</i> can tell
-you. It’s valu’ble.”</p>
-
-<p>She took it, beaming with smiles through her tears.</p>
-
-<p>“I ’spect some of you’d like to <i>buy</i> some?” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>His audience hastily and indignantly repudiated
-the suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>“What do I do <i>now?</i>” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“You jus’ wait for the next lot,” said William
-covering him up with the sacking. Ginger sat down
-again muttering disconsolately about the heat beneath
-his sacking.</p>
-
-<p>Henry was a Canadian and Douglas was an Egyptian.
-Both were pasted with blacking and both shone with
-streaky moisture. Henry wore a large cretonne
-cushion cover and Douglas wore a smock that had
-been made for use in charades last Christmas. Both
-obligingly talked in their native language. Douglas,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</span>
-who was learning Latin, said, “Bonus, bona,
-bonum, bonum, bonam, bonum,” to the fury and
-indignation of his audience.</p>
-
-<p>In front of Henry were balls of moist clay; in front
-of Douglas were twigs tied together in curious shapes.
-The sightseers refused all William’s blandishing
-persuasions to buy.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s <i>you</i> I’m thinking of,” said William.
-“’F you go home without takin’ these int’restin’
-things made by natives you’ll be sorry and then it’ll
-be too late. An’ you mayn’t ever again see ’em <i>to</i>
-buy an’ you’ll be sorry. An’ if you bought ’em you
-could put ’em in a museum an’&mdash;an’ they’d always
-be int’restin’.”</p>
-
-<p>The smallest boy was moved by William’s eloquence
-to pay a penny for a clay ball, then promptly regretted
-it and demanded his penny back.</p>
-
-<p>It was while this argument was going on that Violet
-Elizabeth appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Wanter be a native like Ginger&mdash;all black,” she
-demanded loudly.</p>
-
-<p>William, who was harassed by his argument with
-the repentant purchaser of native ware, turned on her
-severely.</p>
-
-<p>“You oughter pay a penny comin’ into this show,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I came in a different hole, a hole of my own so
-I’m not going to,” said Violet Elizabeth, “an’ I
-wanter be a native like Ginger an’ Henry an’ Douglas&mdash;all
-lovely an’ black.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you can’t be,” said William firmly.</p>
-
-<p>Tears filled her eyes and she lifted up her voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Wanterbean-a-a-tive,” she screamed.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William desperately. “<i>Be</i> a
-native. I don’t care. <i>Be</i> a native. Get the blacking
-from Ginger. I don’t care. <i>Be</i> one an’ don’t blame <i>me</i>.
-The next is the amusements, ladies <i>an’</i> gentlemen.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</span></p>
-
-<p>There were three amusements. The first consisted
-in climbing a tree and lowering oneself from the
-first branch by a rope previously fastened to it by
-William. The second consisted in being wheeled once
-round the field in a wheelbarrow by William. The
-third consisted in standing on a plank at the edge of
-the pond and being gently propelled into the pond by
-William. The entrance fee to each was one penny.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the tallest boy indignantly, “an’ s’pose
-we fall off the plank into the water?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s part of the amusement,” said William
-wearily.</p>
-
-<p>The smallest boy decided after much thought to
-have a penny ride in a wheelbarrow....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">IV</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bott was walking proudly up the lane. She
-had in train, not an earl exactly, but distantly related
-to an earl. At any rate he was County&mdash;most certainly
-County. So far County had persistently resisted
-the attempts of Mrs. Bott to “get in” with it. Mrs.
-Bott had met him and captured him and was bringing
-him home to tea. She had brushed aside all his
-excuses. He walked beside her miserably, looking
-round for some way of escape. Already in her mind’s
-eye Mrs. Bott was marrying Violet Elizabeth to one
-of his nephews (she came to the reluctant conclusion
-that he himself would be rather too old when Violet
-Elizabeth attained a marriageable age) and was killing
-off all his relations in crowds by earthquakes or floods
-or wrecks or dread diseases to make quite sure of the
-earldom. Ivory charmeuse for Violet Elizabeth of
-course and the bridesmaids in pale blue georgette....</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly they came to a paper notice pinned very
-crookedly on a stile in the hedge:</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The distant relation to the peer of the realm
-brightened. He stroked his microscopic moustache.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I say!” he said, “sounds rather jolly, what?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bott who had assumed an expression of
-refined disgust hastily exchanged it for one of
-democratic tolerance.</p>
-
-<p>“Yars,” she said in her super-county-snaring
-accent, “doesn’t it? We always trai to taike an
-interest in the activities of the village.”</p>
-
-<p>“I say, I think I’ll just go in and see,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>He hoped that it would throw her off but as a ruse
-it was a failure.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yars!” she said, “Let’s! I think it’s so
-good for the village to feel the upper clarses take an
-interest in them.”</p>
-
-<p>The hole in the hedge proved too small for Mrs.
-Bott’s corpulency, but the depressed connection of the
-peerage found a larger one further up which afforded
-quite a broad passage when the hedge was held back.</p>
-
-<p>They entered the field.</p>
-
-<p>William, his blacking and perspiration falling in drops
-on to his pale blue native costume, had just finished the
-wheelbarrow ride. His hair stood up round his face
-in matted clusters. He scowled at the newcomers.</p>
-
-<p>“You come to the exhibition?” he said sternly,
-“’cause you’ve gotter pay a penny ’f you have.”</p>
-
-<p>The Honourable Marmaduke Morencey took out a
-sixpence and gave it to William. William unbent.</p>
-
-<p>“’F you come round with me,” he said, “I’ll
-guide you. I’m a guide&mdash;a native guide. I’m a
-South African, I am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rahly?” said the Honourable Marmaduke.</p>
-
-<p>“How very quaint!” sighed Mrs. Bott with a
-kindly smile. “I do wish my little gurl was heah.
-She’d have loved it. But I don’t let her mix with
-common children. She’s so carefully gorded. She’s
-in the gorden with her nurse now. She’s a beautiful
-chehild, and gorded most careful from chehildhood.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig17.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">THE LAST SHROUDED FIGURE THREW OFF ITS COVERING<br />
-AND JUMPED EXCITEDLY INTO THE AIR. “I’M A NINDIAN,”<br />
-SQUEAKED VIOLET ELIZABETH, “AND I’M GOING TO DO<br />
-A DANCE.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter1">
-<img src="images/fig18.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“I DO WISH MY VIOLET ELIZABETH WAS HERE,” SAID<br />
-MRS. BOTT. “SHE’D BE <span class="xlarge"><i>SO</i></span> INTERESTED&mdash;BUT THERE,<br />
-I’VE ALWAYS KEPT HER FROM COMMON CHILDREN.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Henry’s canvas was removed and the Honourable
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</span>Marmaduke smiled a weary smile and Mrs. Bott
-imitated it carefully but not very exactly.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger was shown and the Honourable Marmaduke’s
-smile became less weary.</p>
-
-<p>Douglas was shown and the Honourable Marmaduke
-almost (not quite) laughed. He certainly murmured.
-“I say.... By Jove, you know ... isn’t it?
-What?” Even William realised that no higher
-praise could be expected of him than that.</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>do</i> wish my Vahlet Elizabeth was here,” said
-Mrs. Bott. “She’d be <i>sow</i> int’rested&mdash;but, there,
-I’ve always kept her gorded from common children.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the last shrouded figure threw off its covering
-and jumped excitedly into the air. It was dressed
-in stays and small frilled knickers. Hair, face, arms
-and legs were covered with blacking (William had
-“borrowed” a good supply from the store cupboard.
-He was never a boy for half measures).</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a Nindian,” squeaked Violet Elizabeth, leaping
-up and down joyfully in her scanty attire. “I’m a native
-Indian in a native-Indian coschume an’ I’m goin’ to do a
-native-Indian dance. I’m a Nindian. I’m a Nindian!”</p>
-
-<p>With a scream that rent the very heavens Mrs.
-Bott made a grab at her erring child.</p>
-
-<p>At that moment from the other end of the field came
-a bellow of rage that drowned even the voice of Mrs.
-Bott. The Outlaws, paralysed with terror, saw the
-dread form of their foe advancing upon them
-wrathfully across the field. Farmer Jenks had
-returned home unexpectedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Grr-r-r-r-r,” he roared as he ran. “I’ll&mdash;I’ll&mdash;I’ll&mdash;Gu-r-r-r-r-r ...
-Ye young.... I’ll ... G-r-r-r-r-r ...
-At ’em, Rover! Kill ’em, Rover! Eat ’em, Rover!
-Ye young ... I’ll.... Gr-r&mdash;r-r-r!”</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws awaited no explanation. Like so
-many flashes of lightning they were through the hole
-in the hedge and already half way to the stile.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</span></p>
-
-<p>After them with little gasps of “By Jove! I say,
-you know!” panted the languid aristocrat. Seeing
-Rover behind him he shed his languidness and sprinted
-as he had never sprinted in his aristocratic life before.
-Rover pursued them to the stile then returned thoughtfully
-chewing a piece of the aristocratic nether garments.</p>
-
-<p>The native Indian at the maternal scream had
-taken to its heels, flying swiftly round the field by the
-hedge, closely pursued by the irate maternal person.
-Farmer Jenks, seeing the other victims had escaped,
-turned to the pursuit of Mrs. Bott with a roar of fury.
-In a few minutes the native Indian had found another
-hole in the hedge and was well on its way to its home&mdash;a
-little flying black and white streaked figure.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bott, discovering suddenly that she was
-being pursued by a ferocious man, sat down in the
-middle of the field and began to have hysterics....</p>
-
-
-<p class="c less">V</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws reassembled in the lane. They had
-changed into their normal clothes and (partially)
-removed the blacking. Washing it, as Ginger remarked,
-only seemed to spread it. It retreated from
-the centres of their faces to their hair and necks.
-They were extremely weary and extremely hot.</p>
-
-<p>The sun still beat down upon the world unmercifully.</p>
-
-<p>They surveyed sadly the gains of the afternoon&mdash;one
-sixpence and two pennies. They had lost the other
-penny and the halfpenny on their flight from the field.</p>
-
-<p>“Eightpence,” said Ginger bitterly, “sim’ly wore ourselves
-out over it an’ it’s only made eightpence. What
-can we do with eightpence? Kin’ly tell me that?”</p>
-
-<p>It was William, his hair standing up like black
-smeared spikes around his earnest red and black face,
-who told him.</p>
-
-<p>“We can jolly well get a twopenny glass of
-lemonade each,” he said. “Come on.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">“THE HAUNTED HOUSE”</p>
-
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Well</span>, you jus’ tell me,” demanded William,
-“you jus’ give me one reason why we shun’t dig
-for gold.”</p>
-
-<p>“’Cause we shan’t find any,” said Douglas simply.</p>
-
-<p>“How d’you know?” said William the ever-hopeful,
-“how d’you know we shan’t? You ever tried?
-You ever dug for gold? D’you know anyone what’s
-ever dug for gold? Well, then,” triumphantly, “how
-d’you <i>know</i> we shan’t find any?”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>That’s</i> ’cause why,” said Douglas with equal
-triumph, “’cause no one’s ever <i>done</i> it ... ’cause
-they’d of done it if there’d been any chance....”</p>
-
-<p>“They didn’t think of it,” said William impatiently.
-“They sim’ly didn’t think of it. In the fields an’
-woods f’rinstance&mdash;no one can ever of dug there an’
-f’all you know it’s <i>full</i> of gold an’ jewels an’ things.
-How can anyone <i>tell</i> till they’ve tried diggin’. People
-in England sim’ly didn’t <i>think</i> of it&mdash;that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Douglas, tiring of the argument.
-“I don’t mind diggin’ a bit an’ tryin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t tell it at once&mdash;gold,” said William
-importantly. “You’ve gotter wash it in water an’
-then it shows up sud’nly. So we’d better start diggin’
-by some water.”</p>
-
-<p>They began operations the next morning by the
-pond, and had dug patiently for two hours before they
-were chased furiously from the spot by Farmer Jenks
-and a dog and a shower of sticks and stones.
-The washing of the soil had been the only part
-of the proceeding they had really enjoyed and a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</span>
-good deal of the resultant mud still adhered to
-their persons. They wandered down the road.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’ve not found much gold yet, have we?”
-said Douglas sarcastically.</p>
-
-<p>“D’you think the gold diggers in&mdash;in&mdash;&mdash;”
-William’s geography was rather weak, so he hastily
-slurred over the precise locality&mdash;“anyway, d’you think
-the gold diggers found it in one morning? I bet it
-takes weeks an’ weeks.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, ’f you think I’m goin’ to go on diggin’
-for weeks an’ weeks, I’m not!” said Douglas firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, where can we find some more water to dig
-by, anyway?” said Ginger the practical.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a silly idea diggin’ by water. I bet <i>I’d</i> see gold
-in the earth if there was any without washin’ it,”
-said Henry.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I bet you wun’t,” said William indignantly,
-“I’ve been readin’ tales about it, an’ that’s what it
-says. D’you think you’re cleverer than all the gold
-diggers in&mdash;in&mdash;in those places?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I do, ’f they can’t see gold without washin’
-it,” said Henry.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s some more water, anyway?” said Ginger
-again plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>They were passing an old house in a large garden.
-The house had been empty for more than a year
-because the last owner had died in mysterious
-circumstances, but that fact did not affect the Outlaws
-in any way. A stream flowed through the overgrown,
-neglected garden. William peered through the hedge.</p>
-
-<p>“Water!” he called excitedly. “Come on, an’
-dig for gold here.”</p>
-
-<p>Led by William they scrambled through the hedge
-and trampled gleefully over the grass of the lawn
-that grew almost as high as their waists.</p>
-
-<p>“Jus’ like a jungle!” shouted William. “Now we
-<i>can</i> imagine we’re in&mdash;in&mdash;in real gold diggin’ parts.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</span></p>
-
-<p>They dug industriously for half an hour. William
-had a spade, “borrowed” from the gardener. (The
-gardener was at that minute hunting for it through
-toolhouse and greenhouse and garden. His thoughts
-were already turning William-wards in impotent fury).
-Ginger had a coal shovel with a hole in it rescued from
-the dust-bin. Henry had a small wooden spade
-abstracted from his little sister when her attention was
-engaged elsewhere, and Douglas had a piece of wood.
-They threw every spadeful of earth into the stream
-and churned it about with their spades.</p>
-
-<p>“Seems a silly idea to <i>me!</i>” objected Henry again.
-“Jus’ makin’ <i>mud</i> of it! Seems to me you’re more
-likely to <i>lose</i> the gold, chuckin’ it into the water every
-time. I shun’t wonder ’f we’ve lost lots already,
-sinkin’ down to the bottom among the pebbles.
-We’ve not found much, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I tell you it’s the right <i>way</i>,” said William
-impatiently. “It’s the way they <i>do</i>. I’ve <i>read</i> it.
-If it wasn’t the right way they wun’t do it, would
-they? D’you think the gold diggers out in&mdash;out in
-those places would <i>do</i> it if it wasn’t <i>right?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m gettin’ a bit tired of it anyway,” said
-Henry.</p>
-
-<p>He voiced the general opinion. Even William’s
-enthusiasm was waning. It seemed a very hot and
-muddy way of getting gold ... and it didn’t even
-seem to get any.</p>
-
-<p>Douglas had already laid aside his sodden stick and
-wandered up to the house. He was pressing his nose
-against a dirty, cracked window pane. Suddenly he
-shouted excitedly.</p>
-
-<p>“I say ... a <i>rat</i> ... there’s a <i>rat</i> in this
-room!”</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws gladly threw away their spades and
-rushed to the window. There was certainly a rat.
-He sat up upon his hind legs and trimmed his whiskers,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</span>
-staring at them impudently. All thought of gold left
-the gold diggers.</p>
-
-<p>“Open the window!”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Catch</i> him!”</p>
-
-<p>“Gettim! Crumbs! Gettim!”</p>
-
-<p>The window actually did open. With a yell of joy
-William raised it and half-rolled, half-climbed over
-the sill into the room, followed by the Outlaws, uttering
-wild war whoops. After one stricken glance at them
-the rat disappeared down his hole....</p>
-
-<p>But the Outlaws were thrilled by the house. They
-tramped about the wooden floors in the empty re-echoing
-rooms&mdash;they slid down the dirty balusters&mdash;they
-found a hole in a floor and delightedly tore up
-all the rotten boards around it&mdash;they explored the
-bedrooms and the cistern loft and the filthy, airless
-cellars&mdash;they met four rats and chased them with
-deafening shouts.</p>
-
-<p>They were drunk with delight. Their hands and
-faces were covered with dust and their hair full of cobwebs.
-Then William and Ginger claimed the upstairs
-as their castle and Henry and Douglas charged from
-below and they all rolled downstairs in a mass of arms
-and legs and cobwebs. Finally they formed a
-procession and marched from room to room, stamping
-with all their might on the wooden floors and singing
-lustily in their strong and inharmonious voices. They
-had entirely forgotten their former avocation of gold
-digging.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” said William at last, hot and dirty and
-breathless and happy, “it’d be jus’ the place for a
-meeting place, wun’t it? Better than the ole barn.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but we’d have to be quieter,” said Ginger,
-“or else people’ll be hearin’ us an’ makin’ a fuss
-like what they always do.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right!” said William sternly, “you’ve been
-makin’ more noise than anyone.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</span></p>
-
-<p>“An’ let’s keep at the back,” said Henry, “or
-ole Miss Hatherly’ll be seein’ us out of her window
-an’ comin’ in interferin’.”</p>
-
-<p>William knew Miss Hatherly, whose house overlooked
-the front of the empty house. He had good
-cause to know her. Robert was deeply enamoured
-of Marion, Miss Hatherly’s niece, and Miss Hatherly
-disapproved of Robert because he had no money
-and was still at college and rode a very noisy motor
-cycle and dropped cigarette ash on her carpets and
-never wiped his boots and frightened her canary.
-She disapproved of William still more and for reasons
-too numerous to state.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The empty house became the regular meeting place
-of the Outlaws, and the old barn was deserted. They
-always entered cautiously by a hole in the garden
-hedge, first looking up and down the road to be sure
-that no one saw them. The house served many
-purposes besides that of meeting place. It was a
-smugglers’ den, a castle, a desert island, a battlefield,
-and an Indian Camp.</p>
-
-<p>It was William, of course, who suggested the midnight
-feast and the idea was received with eager joy
-by the others. The next night they all got up and
-dressed when the rest of their households were in bed.</p>
-
-<p>William climbed down the pear tree which grew right
-up to his bedroom window, Ginger got out of the
-bathroom window and crawled along the garden wall
-to the gate, Douglas and Henry got out of the downstairs
-windows. All were athrill with the spirit of
-adventure. They would not have been surprised
-to meet a Red Indian in full war paint, or a smuggler
-with eye patch and daggers, or a herd of lions and
-tigers&mdash;or even&mdash;despite their scorn of fairy tales&mdash;a
-witch with a cat and broomstick walking
-along the moonlit road. William had brought his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</span>
-pistol and a good supply of caps in case they met
-any robbers.</p>
-
-<p>“I know it wun’t <i>kill</i> ’em,” he admitted, “but
-the bang’d make ’em think it was a real one and
-scare ’em off. It makes a fine bang. Not that
-I’m <i>frightened</i> of ’em,” he added hastily.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger had brought a stick which he thought would
-be useful for killing snakes. He had a vague idea
-that all roads were infested by deadly snakes at night.
-They entered the house, disturbing several rats who
-fled at their approach.</p>
-
-<p>They sat around a stubby candle-end thoughtfully
-provided by Henry. They ate sardines and buns and
-cheese and jam and cakes and dessicated cocoanut
-on the dusty floor in the empty room whose paper
-hung in cobwebby strands from the wall, while rats
-squeaked indignantly behind the wainscoting, and
-the moon, pale with surprise, peeped in at the dirty
-uncurtained window. They munched in happy silence
-and drank lemonade and liquorice water provided by
-William.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s do it to-morrow, too,” said Henry
-as they rose to depart, and the proposal was eagerly
-agreed to.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Miss Hatherly was a member of the Society for the
-Encouragement of Higher Thought. The Society for
-the Encouragement of Higher Thought had exhausted
-nearly every branch of Higher Thought and had
-almost been driven to begin again at Sublimity or
-Relativity. (They didn’t want to because in spite
-of a meeting about each they were all still doubtful
-as to what they meant.)</p>
-
-<p>But last week someone had suggested Psychical
-Revelation, and they had had quite a lively meeting.
-Miss Sluker had a cousin whose wife thought she had
-heard a ghost. Miss Sluker, who was conscientious,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</span>
-added that the cousin’s wife had never been quite
-sure and had admitted that it might have been a
-mouse. Mrs. Moote had an aunt who had dreamed
-of her sister and the next day her sister had found a
-pair of spectacles which she had lost for weeks. But
-no one else had any psychic experience to record.</p>
-
-<p>“We must have another meeting and all collect
-data,” said the President brightly.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s ‘data’?” said little Miss Simky to her
-neighbour in a mystified whisper.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the French for ghost story,” said the neighbour.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said little Miss Simky, satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>The next meeting was at Miss Hatherly’s house.</p>
-
-<p>The “data” were not very extensive. Miss
-Euphemia Barney had discovered that her uncle had
-died on the same day of the month on which he had
-been born, but after much discussion it was decided
-that this, though interesting, was not a psychic
-experience. Miss Whatte spoke next. She said that
-her uncle’s photograph had fallen from its hook
-exactly five weeks to the day after his death. They
-were moving the furniture, she added, and someone
-had just dropped the piano, but still ... it was
-certainly data.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid I’ve no personal experience to record,”
-said little Miss Simky, “but I’ve read some very
-exciting datas in magazines and such like, but I’m
-afraid they won’t count.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Miss Hatherly, trembling with eagerness,
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“I have a very important revelation to make,”
-she said. “I have discovered that Colonel Henks’
-old house is haunted.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a breathless silence. The eyes of the
-members of the Society for the Encouragement of
-Higher Thought almost fell through their horn-rimmed
-spectacles on to the floor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</span></p>
-
-<p>“<i>Haunted!</i>” they screamed in chorus, and little
-Miss Simky clung to her neighbour in terror.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen!” said Miss Hatherly. “The house is
-empty, yet I have heard voices and footsteps&mdash;the
-footsteps resembling Colonel Henks’. Last night,”&mdash;the
-round-eyed, round-mouthed circle drew nearer&mdash;“last
-night I heard them most distinctly at midnight,
-and I firmly believe that Colonel Henks’ spirit is
-trying to attract my attention. I believe that he
-has a message for me.”</p>
-
-<p>Little Miss Simky gave a shrill scream and was
-carried to the dining-room to have hysterics in comfort
-among the wool mats and antimacassars.</p>
-
-<p>“To-night I shall go there,” said Miss Hatherly,
-and the seekers after Higher Thought screamed again.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Don’t</i>, dear,” said Miss Euphemia Barney. “Oh&mdash;it
-sounds so&mdash;<i>unsafe</i>&mdash;and do you think it’s <i>quite</i>
-proper?”</p>
-
-<p>“Proper?” said Miss Hatherly indignantly.
-“Surely there can be no impropriety in a spirit?”</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;no, dear&mdash;of course, you’re right,” murmured
-Miss Euphemia Barney, flinching under Miss
-Hatherly’s eye.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall go to-night,” said Miss Hatherly again
-with one more scathing glance at Miss Euphemia
-Barney, “and I shall receive the message. I want
-you all to meet me here this time to-morrow and I
-will report my experience.”</p>
-
-<p>The Society for the Encouragement of Higher
-Thought expostulated, but finally acquiesced.</p>
-
-<p>“What a <i>heroine!</i> How <i>brave!</i> How <i>psychic!</i>”
-they murmured as they went homewards.</p>
-
-<p>“What a thrilling data it will make,” said little
-Miss Simky, who had now recovered from her hysterics
-and was feeling quite cheerful.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William was creeping downstairs. It was too<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</span>
-windy for him to use his pear tree and he was going
-out by way of the dining-room window. He was
-dressed in an overcoat over his pyjamas and he held
-in his arms ten small apples which were his contribution
-to the feast and which he had secretly abstracted
-from the loft during the day. Bang!&mdash;rattle&mdash;rattle&mdash;rattle!&mdash;&mdash; Three
-of them escaped his encircling
-arms and dropped noisily from stair to stair.</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” muttered William aghast.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig19.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">THE OUTLAWS STARED AT EACH OTHER, AND THEIR HAIR<br />
-STOOD ON END. “A GHOST!” WHISPERED HENRY WITH<br />
-CHATTERING TEETH.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>No one, however, appeared to have heard. The
-house was still silent and sleeping. William gathered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</span>
-up his three apples and
-dropped two more in the
-process&mdash;fortunately upon
-the mat. He looked round
-anxiously. His arms seemed
-inadequate for ten apples,
-but he had promised ten
-apples for the feast and he
-must provide them. His
-pockets were already full of
-biscuits.</p>
-
-<p>He looked round the moonlit
-hall. Ah, Robert’s “overflow
-bag!” It was on one of
-the chairs. Robert had been
-staying with a friend and had
-returned late that night. He
-had taken his suit case upstairs
-and flung the small and
-shabby bag that he called his
-“overflow bag” down on a
-chair. It was still there.</p>
-
-<p>Good! It would do to hold
-the apples. William opened
-it. There were a few things
-inside, but William couldn’t stay to take them out.
-There was plenty of room for the apples anyway. He
-shoved them in, took up his bag, and made his way to
-the dining-room window.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig20.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“SPEAK!” A LOUD AND<br />
-VIBRANT VOICE CALLED<br />
-SUDDENLY. “SPEAK! GIVE<br />
-ME YOUR MESSAGE!”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The midnight feast was in full swing. Henry had
-forgotten to bring the candles, Douglas was half
-asleep, Ginger was racked by gnawing internal pains as
-the result of the feast of the night before, and William
-was distrait, but otherwise all was well.</p>
-
-<p>Someone had (rather misguidedly) given William a
-camera the day before and his thoughts were full of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</span>
-it. He had taken six snapshots and was going to
-develop them to-morrow. He had sold his bow
-and arrows to a class-mate to buy the necessary
-chemicals. As he munched the apples and cheesecakes
-and chocolate cream and pickled onions and currants
-provided for the feast he was in imagination developing
-and fixing his snapshots. He’d never done it
-before. He thought he’d enjoy it. It would be so
-jolly and messy&mdash;watery stuff to slosh about in little
-basins and that kind of thing.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly, as they munched and lazily discussed
-the rival merits of catapults and bows and arrows
-(Ginger had just swopped his bow and arrows for a
-catapult), there came through the silent empty house
-the sound of the opening of the front door. The
-Outlaws stared at each other with crumby mouths
-wide open&mdash;steps were now ascending the front stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak!” called suddenly a loud and vibrant
-voice from the middle of the stairs, which made the
-Outlaws start almost out of their skins. “Speak!
-Give me your message.”</p>
-
-<p>The hair of the Outlaws stood on end.</p>
-
-<p>“A ghost!” whispered Henry with chattering teeth.</p>
-
-<p>“Criky!” said William, “let’s get out.”</p>
-
-<p>They crept silently out of the further door, down
-the back stairs, out of the window, and fled with all
-their might down the road.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, upstairs, Miss Hatherly first walked
-majestically into the closed door and then fell over
-Robert’s “overflow bag,” which the Outlaws had
-forgotten in their panic.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Robert went to see his beloved the next day and to
-reassure her of his undying affection. She yawned several
-times in the course of his speech. She was beginning
-to find Robert’s devotion somewhat monotonous. She
-was not of a constant nature. Neither was Robert.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I say,” she said interrupting him as he was telling
-her for the tenth time that he had thought of her every
-minute of the day, and dreamed of her every minute
-of the night, and that he’d made up a lot more poetry
-about her but had forgotten to bring it, “do come
-indoors. They’re having some sort of stunt in the
-drawing-room&mdash;Aunt and the High Thinkers, you
-know. I’m not quite sure what it is&mdash;something
-psychic, she said, but anyway it ought to be amusing.”</p>
-
-<p>Rather reluctantly Robert followed her into the
-drawing-room where the Higher Thinkers were assembled.
-The Higher Thinkers looked coldly at Robert.
-He wasn’t much thought of in high-thinking circles.</p>
-
-<p>There was an air of intense excitement in the room
-as Miss Hatherly rose to speak.</p>
-
-<p>“I entered the haunted house,” she began in a
-low, quivering voice, “and at once I heard&mdash;VOICES!”
-Miss Simky clung in panic to Miss
-Sluker. “I proceeded up the stairs and I heard&mdash;FOOTSTEPS!”
-Miss Euphemia Barney gave a
-little scream. “I went on undaunted.” The
-Higher Thinkers gave a thrilled murmur of admiration.
-“And suddenly all was silent, but I felt a&mdash;PRESENCE!
-It led me&mdash;led me along a passage&mdash;I
-FELT it! It led me to a room&mdash;&mdash;” Miss Simky
-screamed again. “And in the room I found THIS!”</p>
-
-<p>With a dramatic gesture she brought out Robert’s
-“overflow bag.” “I have not yet investigated it. I
-wished to do so first in your presence.” (“How
-<i>Noble!</i>” murmured Mrs. Moote.) “I feel sure that
-this is what Colonel Henks has been trying to show
-me. I am convinced that this will throw light upon
-the mystery of his death&mdash;I am now going to open it.”</p>
-
-<p>“If it’s human remains,” quavered Miss Simky,
-“I shall <i>faint</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>With a determined look, Miss Hatherly opened
-the bag. From it she brought out first a pair of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</span>
-faded and very much darned blue socks, next a shirt
-with a large hole in it, next a bathing suit, and lastly
-a pair of very grimy white flannel trousers.</p>
-
-<p>The Higher Thinkers looked bewildered. But Miss
-Hatherly was not daunted.</p>
-
-<p>“They’re clues!” she said, “clues&mdash;if only we
-can piece them together properly; they must have
-some meaning. Ah, here’s a note-book&mdash;this will
-explain everything.”</p>
-
-<p>She opened the note-book and began to read:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse indent0">“Oh, Marion, my lady fair,</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">Has eyes of blue and golden hair.</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">Her heart of gold is kind and true,</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">She is the sweetest girl you ever knew.</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">But oh, a dragon guards this jewel</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">A hideous dragon, foul and cruel,</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">The ugliest old thing you ever did see,</div>
-<div class="verse indent0">Is Marion’s aunt Miss Hatherly.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“These socks are both marked ‘Robert Brown’,”
-suddenly squealed Miss Sluker, who had been
-examining the “clues.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Hatherly gave a scream of rage and turned to
-the corner where Robert had been.</p>
-
-<p>But Robert had vanished.</p>
-
-<p>When Robert saw his “overflow bag” he had turned
-red.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw his socks he had turned purple.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw his shirt he had turned green.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw his trousers he had turned white.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw his note-book he had turned yellow.</p>
-
-<p>When Miss Hatherly began to read he muttered
-something about feeling faint and crept unostentatiously
-out of the window. Marion followed him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” she said sternly, “you’ve made a nice
-mess of everything, haven’t you? What on earth
-have you been doing?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I can’t think what you thought of those socks,”
-said Robert hoarsely, “all darned in different coloured
-wool&mdash;I never wear them. I don’t know why they
-were in the bag.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t think anything at all about them,” she
-snapped.</p>
-
-<p>They were walking down the road towards Robert’s
-house.</p>
-
-<p>“And the shirt,” he went on in a hollow voice,
-“with that big hole in it. I don’t know what you’ll
-think of my things. I just happened to have torn
-the shirt. I really never wear things like that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do shut <i>up</i> about your things. I don’t care
-what you wear. But I’m <i>sick</i> with you for writing
-soppy poetry about me for those asses to read,” she
-said fiercely. “And why did you give her your
-bag, you loony?”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t, Marion,” said Robert miserably.
-“Honestly I didn’t. It’s a <i>mystery</i> to me how she
-got it. I’ve been hunting for it high and low all
-to-day. It’s simply a <i>mystery!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do stop saying that. What are you going
-to do about it? That’s the point.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to commit suicide,” said Robert
-gloomily. “I feel there’s nothing left to live for now
-you’re turning against me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe you <i>could</i>,” said Marion
-aggressively. “How are you going to do it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall drink poison.”</p>
-
-<p>“What poison? I don’t believe you know what
-<i>are</i> poisons. <i>What</i> poison?”</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;prussic acid,” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“You couldn’t get it. They wouldn’t sell it to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“People <i>do</i> get poisons,” Robert said indignantly.
-“I’m always reading of people taking poisons.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, they’ve got to have more sense than you,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</span>
-said Marion crushingly. “They’re not the sort of
-people that leave their bags and soppy poems all over
-the place for other people to find.”</p>
-
-<p>They had reached Robert’s house and were standing
-just beneath William’s window.</p>
-
-<p>“I know heaps of poisons,” said Robert with dignity.
-“I’m not going to tell you what I’m going to take.
-I’m going to&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>At that moment William, who had been (not very
-successfully) fixing his snapshots and was beginning
-to “clear up,” threw the contents of his fixing bath
-out of the window with a careless flourish. They
-fell upon Robert and Marion. For a minute they
-were both speechless with surprise and solution of
-sodium hyposulphate. Then Marion said furiously:</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>brute!</i> I hate you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I <i>say</i>,” gasped Robert. “It’s not my fault,
-Marion. I don’t know what it is. Honestly <i>I</i> didn’t
-do it&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Some of the solution had found its way into Robert’s
-mouth and he was trying to eject it as politely as
-possible.</p>
-
-<p>“It came from your beastly house,” said Marion
-angrily. “And it’s <i>ruined</i> my hat and I <i>hate</i> you and
-I’ll never speak to you again.”</p>
-
-<p>She turned on her heel and walked off, mopping
-the back of her neck with a handkerchief as she went.</p>
-
-<p>Robert stared at her unrelenting back till she was
-out of sight, then went indoors. Ruined her hat
-indeed? What was a hat, anyway? It had ruined
-his <i>suit</i>&mdash;simply <i>ruined</i> it. And how had the old cat
-got his bag he’d like to know. He wouldn’t mind
-betting a quid that that little wretch William had had
-something to do with it. He always had.</p>
-
-<p>He decided not to commit suicide after all. He
-decided to live for years and years and years to make
-the little wretch’s life a misery to him&mdash;if he could!</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM THE MATCH-MAKER</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William</span> was feeling disillusioned. He had received,
-as a birthday present, a book entitled “Engineering
-Explained to Boys,” and had read it in bed at midnight
-by the light of a lamp which he had “borrowed”
-from his elder brother’s photographic apparatus for
-the purpose. The book had convinced William that
-it would be perfectly simple with the aid of a little
-machinery, to turn a wooden packing case into a motor
-boat. He spent two days on the work. He took all
-the elastic that he could find in his mother’s work
-drawer. He disembowelled all the clockwork toys
-that he possessed. To supplement this he added part
-of the works of the morning-room clock. He completely
-soaked himself and his clothes in oil. Finally
-the thing was finished and William, stern and scowling
-and tousled and oily, deposited the motor boat on
-the edge of the pond, stepped into it and pushed off
-boldly. It shot into the middle of the pond and
-promptly sank.... So did William. He returned
-home wet and muddy and oily and embittered, to
-meet a father who, with a grown-up’s lack of sense
-of proportion, was waxing almost lyrical over the
-disappearance of the entrails of the morning-room clock.</p>
-
-<p>It had been for William a thoroughly unpleasant day.
-He was still dwelling moodily on the memory of it.</p>
-
-<p>“How was I to know the book was wrong?” he
-muttered indignantly as he walked down the road,
-his hands deep in his pockets. “Blamin’ me because
-the book was wrong!”</p>
-
-<p>If William had not been in this mood of self-pity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</span>
-he would never have succumbed to the overtures of
-Violet Elizabeth. William at normal times disliked
-Violet Elizabeth. He disliked her curls and pink-and-white
-complexion and blue eyes and lisp and
-frills and flounces and imperiousness and tears. His
-ideal of little-girlhood was Joan, dark haired and
-dark-eyed and shy. But Joan was away on her
-holidays and William’s sense of grievance demanded
-sympathy&mdash;feminine sympathy for preference.</p>
-
-<p>“Good morning, William,” said Violet Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>“G’ mornin’,” said William without discontinuing
-his moody scowl at the road and his hunched-up
-onward march.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth joined him and trotted by his side.</p>
-
-<p>“You feelin’ sad, William?” she said sweetly.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyone’d feel sad,” burst out William. “How
-was I to know a book din’ know what it was talkin’
-about? You’d think a book’d know, wun’t you?
-Blamin’ me because a book din’ know what it was
-talkin’ about! ’S’nough to make anyone feel sad!
-Well, you’d think a book about machinery’d know
-jus’ a bit about machinery, wun’t you?... Sinkin’
-me in a mucky ole pond an’ then when you’d think
-they’d be a bit sorry for me, goin’ on’s if it was <i>my</i>
-fault, ’s if <i>I’d</i> wrote the book!”</p>
-
-<p>This somewhat involved account of his wrongs seemed
-to satisfy Violet Elizabeth. She slipped a hand in
-his and for once William, the stern unbending despiser
-of girls, did not repel her.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Paw</i> William!” said Violet Elizabeth sweetly.
-“I’m tho thorry!”</p>
-
-<p>Although William kept his stern frown still fixed
-on the road and gave no sign of his feelings, the dulcet
-sympathy of Violet Elizabeth was balm to his wounded
-soul.</p>
-
-<p>“Play gamth with me,” went on Violet Elizabeth
-soothingly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</span></p>
-
-<p>William looked up and down the road. No one
-was in sight. After all, one must do something.</p>
-
-<p>“What sort of games?” said William suspiciously
-transferring his stern frown from the road to Violet
-Elizabeth and, contrary to his usual custom,
-forbearing to mimic her lisp.</p>
-
-<p>“Play houth, William,” said Violet Elizabeth
-eagerly. “Ith suth a nith game. You an’ me be
-married.”</p>
-
-<p>“Red Indians an’ you a squaw?” said William
-with a gleam of interest.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Violet Elizabeth with distaste, “<i>not</i>
-Red Indianth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pirates?” suggested William.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh <i>no</i>, William,” said Violet Elizabeth. “They’re
-tho <i>nathty</i>. Juth a nordinary thort of married. You
-go to the offith and me go thopping and to matineeth
-and thee to the dinner and that sort of thing.”</p>
-
-<p>William’s dignity revolted from the idea.</p>
-
-<p>“’F you think I’d play a game like that&mdash;&mdash;” he
-began coldly.</p>
-
-<p>“Pleath do, William,” said Violet Elizabeth in a
-quivering voice. The blue eyes, fixed pleadingly on
-William, swam suddenly with tears. Violet Elizabeth
-exerted her sway over her immediate circle of friends
-and relations solely by this means. Even at that
-tender age she possessed the art, so indispensable
-to her sex, of making her blue eyes swim with tears
-at will. She had, on more than one occasion, found
-that it was the only suasion to which the stern and
-lordly William would yield.</p>
-
-<p>He looked at her in dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” he said hastily. “All right. Come on!”</p>
-
-<p>After all there was nothing else to do and one might
-as well do this as nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Together they went into the field where was the
-old barn.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Thith muth be the houth,” said Violet Elizabeth,
-her tears gone, her pink and white face wreathed in
-smiles. “An’ now you go to the offith, darlin’ William,
-an’ I’ll thee to thingth at home. Good-bye an’
-work hard an’ make a lot of money ’cauth I want a
-loth of new cloth. I’ve thimply nothing fit to wear.
-The offith ith the corner of the field. You thtay
-there an’ count a hundred and then come back to
-your dinner an’ bring me a box of chocolath an’ a
-large bunch of flowerth.”</p>
-
-<p>“’F you <i>think</i>&mdash;&mdash;” began William, hoarse with
-indignant surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ mean real onth, William,” said Violet
-Elizabeth meekly. “I mean pretend onth. Thticks
-or grath or anything’ll do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Or <i>won’t!</i>” said William sternly. “’F you think
-I’m goin’ even to <i>pretend</i> to give presents to an ole
-girl&mdash;&mdash;!”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m your wife, William,” said Violet Elizabeth.
-There was the first stage&mdash;a suspicion of moisture&mdash;of
-the swimming tears in the blue eyes and William
-hastily retreated.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, I’ll <i>see</i>,” he capitulated. “G’bye.”</p>
-
-<p>“Aren’t you going to kith me?” said Violet
-Elizabeth plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said William, “I won’t kiss you. I’m
-’fraid of givin’ you some sort of germ. I don’t think
-I’d better. G’bye.”</p>
-
-<p>He departed hastily for the corner of the field
-before the tears had time to swim. He was already
-regretting the rash impulse that had made him stoop
-to this unmanly game. He waited in the corner of
-the field and counted fifty. He could see Violet
-Elizabeth cleaning the window of the barn with a
-small black handkerchief, then sallying forth with
-languid dignified gait to interview imaginary trades-people.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</span></p>
-
-<p>Then William suddenly espied a frog in the field
-beyond the hedge. He scrambled through in pursuit
-and captured it and spent a pleasant quarter of an
-hour teaching it tricks. He taught it, as he fondly
-imagined, to know and love him and to jump over his
-hands. It showed more aptitude at jumping over
-his hands than at knowing and loving him. It
-responded so well to his teaching in jumping that it
-finally managed to reach the ditch where it remained
-in discreet hiding from its late discoverer and trainer.</p>
-
-<p>William then caught sight of an old nest in the
-hedge and went to investigate it. He decided that
-it must have been a robin’s nest and took it to pieces
-to see how it was made. He came to the conclusion
-that he could make as good a one himself and considered
-the possibilities of making nests for birds
-during the winter and putting them ready for them
-in the hedges in the Spring. Then he noticed that the
-ditch at the further end of the field was full and
-went there to see if he could find any water creatures.
-He soaked his boots and stockings, caught a newt, but,
-having no receptacle in which to keep it (other than
-his cap which seemed to hold water quite well but only
-for a short time) he reluctantly returned it to its
-native element.</p>
-
-<p>Then he remembered his wife and returned slowly
-and not very eagerly to the barn.</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth was seated in the corner on an old
-box in a state of majestic sulks.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve been at the offith for more’n a day. You’ve
-been there for monthth and yearth an’ I hate you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I forgot all about you,” William excused
-himself, “An’ anyway I’d a lot of work to do at the
-office&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I kept waiting an’ waiting and thinking you’d
-come back every minute and you didn’t!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how could I?” said William. “How<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</span>
-could I come back every minute? How could anyone
-come back every minute? And anyway,” as
-he saw Violet Elizabeth working up her all-powerful
-tears, “it’s lunch time and I’m going home.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William’s mother was out to lunch and Ethel was
-her most objectionable and objecting. She objected to
-William’s hair and to William’s hands and to William’s
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ve washed ’em and I’ve brushed it,” said
-William firmly. “I don’ see what you can do more
-with faces an’ hair than wash’ em an’ brush it. ’F
-you don’ like the colour they wash an’ brush to I
-can’t help that. It’s the colour they was born with.
-It’s their nat’ral colour. I can’t do more than wash
-’em an’ brush it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, you can,” said Ethel unfeelingly. “You
-can go and wash them and brush it again.”</p>
-
-<p>Under the stern eye of his father who had lowered
-his paper for the express purpose of displaying
-his stern eye William had no alternative but to
-obey.</p>
-
-<p>“Some people,” he remarked bitterly to the stair
-carpet as he went upstairs, “don’ care how often they
-make other people go up an’ downstairs, tirin’ themselves
-out. I shun’t be surprised ’f I die a good lot
-sooner than I would have done with all this walkin’
-up an’ downstairs tirin’ myself out&mdash;an’ all because
-my face an’ hands an’ hair’s nat’rally a colour she
-doesn’t like!”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel was one of William’s permanent grievances
-against Life.</p>
-
-<p>But after lunch he felt cheered. He went down to
-the road and there was Joan&mdash;Joan, dark-eyed
-and dark-haired and adorable&mdash;back from her
-holidays.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, William!” she said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</span></p>
-
-<p>William’s stern freckled countenance relaxed
-almost to a smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, Joan,” he replied.</p>
-
-<p>“What you doing this afternoon, William?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing particular,” replied William graciously.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s go to the old barn and see if Ginger or any
-of the others are there. I’m so glad to be back,
-William. I hated being away. I kept thinking about
-you and the others and wondering what you were doing
-... you especially.”</p>
-
-<p>William felt cheered and comforted. Joan generally
-had a soothing effect upon William....</p>
-
-<p>As they neared the stile that led to the field, however,
-William’s spirits dropped, for there, looking her
-most curled and cleaned and possessive, was Violet
-Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on, William, and play houth again,” she
-called imperiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, an’ I’m not goin’ to,” said William bluntly.
-“An’ I’m not goin’ to be married to you any more
-an’ ’f I play house I’m goin’ to have Joan.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t do that,” said Violet Elizabeth calmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t do what?”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t change your wife. Ith divorth if you do
-an’ you get hung for it.”</p>
-
-<p>This nonplussed William for a moment. Then
-he said:</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ believe it. You don’ know. You’ve
-never been married so you don’ know anything about
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>do</i> know. Hereth Ginger and Douglath and
-Hubert Lane. You athk them.”</p>
-
-<p>Ginger and Douglas and Hubert Lane, all loudly and
-redolently sucking Bulls’ Eyes, were coming down the
-road. Hubert Lane was a large fat boy with
-protruding eyes, a superhuman appetite and a morbid
-love of Mathematics who was only tolerated as a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</span>
-companion by Ginger and Douglas on account of the
-bag of Bulls’ Eyes he carried in his pocket. He had
-lately much annoyed the Outlaws&mdash;by haunting the
-field they considered theirs and, in spite of active and
-passive discouragement, thrusting his unwelcome
-comradeship upon them.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig21.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“I SAY, MR. MARCH,” YELLED WILLIAM, “IS IT DIVORCE<br />
-OR BIGAMY IF YOU CHANGE YOUR WIFE?”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Hi!” William
-hailed them loudly
-from the top of the
-stile. “Is it divorce
-if you change your
-wife an’ do you get
-hung for it? She
-says it is! ’S all <i>she</i>
-knows!”</p>
-
-<p>The second trio
-gathered round the
-first to discuss the
-matter.</p>
-
-<p>“’S called bigamy
-not divorce,” said
-Ginger authoritatively.
-“I know
-’cause our cousin’s
-gardener did it an’ you
-get put in prison.”</p>
-
-<p>“’S <i>not</i> big&mdash;what
-you said,” said Violet
-Elizabeth firmly.
-“Ith divorth. I
-know ’cauth a friend
-of mine’th uncle did
-it. Tho <i>there!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>The rival champions
-of divorce and bigamy glared at each other
-and the others watched with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“D’you think,” said Ginger, “that I don’ know
-what my own cousin’s gardener did?”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ d’you think,” said Violet Elizabeth, “that
-I don’t know what my own friendth uncle did?”</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s Mr. March comin’,” said Douglas. “Let’s
-ask him.”</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig22.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“HA, HA!” LAUGHED MR. MARCH.<br />
-“EXCELLENT! WHICH OF YOU<br />
-IS NOT SATISFIED WITH HIS<br />
-SPOUSE?”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. March was a short stumpy young man with a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</span>
-very bald head and short sight. He lived in a large
-house at the other end of the village and rather fancied
-himself as a wit. He was extraordinarily conceited
-and not overburdened by any superfluity of intellect.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Mr. March,” yelled William as he approached.
-“Is it divorce or bigamy if you change your wife?”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ do you get hung for it or put in prison?”
-added Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. March threw back his head and roared.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha, ha!” he bellowed, “Which of you wants to
-change his wife? Which of you is not satisfied with
-his spouse? Excellent! Ha, ha!”</p>
-
-<p>He went on down the road chuckling to himself.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s a bit cracked,” commented Ginger in a tone
-of kind impartiality.</p>
-
-<p>“But my mother says he’s awful rich,” said Douglas.</p>
-
-<p>“An’ he’s gone on your sister,” said Ginger to William.</p>
-
-<p>“Then he <i>mus’</i> be cracked!” said William bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyway,” said Violet Elizabeth. “It <i>ith</i> divorth
-an’ I don’ care if it ithn’t. ’F you don’ play houth
-with me, I’ll thcream n’ thcream till I’m thick. I
-can,” she added with pride.</p>
-
-<p>William looked at her helplessly.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you play house with me, Joan?” said Hubert,
-who had been fixing admiring eyes upon Joan.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Joan pacifically, “and we’ll live
-next door to you, William.”</p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth had gone to prepare the barn and
-Joan and Hubert now followed her. William glared
-after them fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“That ole Hubert,” he said indignantly, “comin’
-messin’ about in our field! I votes we chuck him
-out ... jus’ sim’ly chuck him out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” objected Ginger, “an’ he’ll tell his mother
-an’ she’ll come fussin’ like what she did last time an’
-tellin’ our fathers an’ ’zaggeratin’ all over the place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, let’s think of a plan, then,” said William.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</span></p>
-
-<p>Five minutes later William approached Hubert with
-an unnatural expression of friendliness on his face.
-Hubert was politely asking Violet Elizabeth to “have
-a Bulls’ Eye” and Violet Elizabeth was obligingly
-taking three.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Hubert,” whispered William to Hubert,
-“We’ve gotter a secret. You come over here ’n
-we’ll tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>Hubert put a Bulls’ Eye into his mouth, pocketed
-the packet and accompanied William to where Ginger
-and Douglas were, his goggle eyes still more a-goggle
-with excitement. Joan and Violet Elizabeth were
-busying themselves in transforming the interior of
-the barn into two semi-detached villas with great
-exercise of handkerchief-dusters and imagination.</p>
-
-<p>“Douglas,” whispered William confidentially, “’s
-found out a secret about this field. He got it off a
-witch.” Hubert was so surprised that his spectacles
-fell off. He replaced them and listened open-mouthed.
-“There’s a grass in this field that if you tread on it
-makes you invisible. Now we’re jus’ goin’ to tread
-about a bit to see ’f we can find it an’ we don’ want
-to leave you out of it so you can come an’ tread about
-a bit with us case we find it.”</p>
-
-<p>Hubert was thrilled and flattered.</p>
-
-<p>“I bet I find it first,” he squeaked excitedly.</p>
-
-<p>They tramped about in silence for a few minutes.
-Suddenly William said in a voice of great concern.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, where’s Hubert gone.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m here,” said Hubert, a shade of anxiety in his
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>William looked at him and through him.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Hubert gone?” he said again, “He was
-here a minute ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m here!” said Hubert again plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger and Douglas looked first at and through
-Hubert and then all around the field.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he seems to have gone,” said Ginger sadly.
-“I’m ’fraid he mus’ have found the grass!”</p>
-
-<p>“I’-I’m here!” squeaked Hubert desperately,
-looking rather pale.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll jus’ see if he’s hidin’ over there,” said William
-and proceeded literally to walk through Hubert.
-Hubert got the worst of the impact and sat down
-suddenly and heavily.</p>
-
-<p>“Boo-hoo!” he wailed rising to his feet. He
-was promptly walked into by Ginger and sat down again
-with another yell.</p>
-
-<p>“’S mos’ mysterious where he’s got to,” said
-William. “Let’s call him!”</p>
-
-<p>They yelled “Hubert!” about the field, callously
-disregarding that youth’s sobbing replies. Whenever
-he rose to his feet one of them walked through him
-and he sat down again with a bump and a yell.</p>
-
-<p>“Did the witch say anything about makin’ them
-visible again?” said William anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Douglas sadly, “I’m ’fraid he’ll always
-be invisible now and he’ll die slow of starvation ’cause
-no one’ll ever see him to give him anything to eat.”</p>
-
-<p>Hubert began to bellow unrestrainedly. He rose to
-his feet, dodged both Ginger and Douglas who made a
-dart in his direction, and ran howling towards the stile.</p>
-
-<p>“Boo-hoo! I’m going home. Boo-hoo! I don’
-wanter die!”</p>
-
-<p>As soon as he reached the stile, Ginger and Douglas
-and William gave a shout.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, <i>there’s</i> Hubert at the stile.”</p>
-
-<p>Hubert ceased his tears and hung over the stile.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you see me now?” he said anxiously. “Am
-I all right now?”</p>
-
-<p>He wiped his tears and began to clean his spectacles
-and straighten his collar. He was a tidy boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Hubert,” said the Outlaws. “It’s all right
-now. We can see you now. You mus’ have jus’<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</span>
-trod on the grass. But it’s all right now. Aren’t
-you comin’ back to play?”</p>
-
-<p>Hubert placed one foot cautiously over the stile.</p>
-
-<p>“Ginger!” said William excitedly, “I believe
-he’s beginning to disappear again.”</p>
-
-<p>With a wild yell, Hubert turned and fled howling
-down the road.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’ve got rid of <i>him</i>,” said William
-complacently, “and if I’m not clever I don’ know who
-<i>is</i>!”</p>
-
-<p>Over-modesty was not one of William’s faults.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I bet you’re not quite as clever as you
-<i>think</i> you are,” said Ginger pugnaciously.</p>
-
-<p>“How’ d’you know that?” said William rising
-to the challenge. “How d’you know how clever I
-think I am? You mus’ think yourself jolly clever
-’f you think you know how clever I think I am!”</p>
-
-<p>The discussion would have run its natural course
-to the physical conflict that the Outlaws found so
-exhilarating if Joan and Violet Elizabeth had not
-at this moment emerged from the barn.</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>have</i> been making a noith!” said Violet
-Elizabeth disapprovingly. “Wherth the boy with
-the Bullth Eyth?”</p>
-
-<p>“Heth gonth awath,” said William unfeelingly.</p>
-
-<p>“I want a Bullth Eye. You’re a nathty boy to
-let him go away when I want a Bullth Eye.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you can go after himth,” said William, less
-afraid of her tears now that he was surrounded by his
-friends. But Violet Elizabeth was too angry for tears.</p>
-
-<p>“Yeth and I thall!” she said. “You’re a nathty
-rude boy an’ I don’t love you and I don’t want you for
-a huthband. I want the boy with the Bullth Eyth!”</p>
-
-<p>“What about divorce or big or whatever it is?”
-said William, taken aback by her sudden and open
-repudiation of him. “What about that? What
-about being hung?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</span></p>
-
-<p>“If anyone trith to hang me,” said Violet Elizabeth
-complacently, “I’ll thcream and thcream and thcream
-till I’m thick. I can.”</p>
-
-<p>Then she put out her tongue at each of the Outlaws
-in turn and ran lightly down the road after the figure
-of Hubert which could be seen in the distance.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we’ve got rid of <i>her</i> too,” said William,
-torn between relief at her departure and resentment
-at her scorn of him, “and she can play her silly games
-with him. I’ve had enough of them. Let’s go an’
-sit on the stile and see who can throw stones farthest.”</p>
-
-<p>They sat in a row on the stile. It counted ten to
-hit the telegraph post and fifteen to reach the further
-edge of the opposite field.</p>
-
-<p>Ethel who had been to the village to do the household
-shopping came past when the game was in full
-swing.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell father,” she said grimly to William.
-“He said you oughtn’t to throw stones.”</p>
-
-<p>William looked her up and down with his most
-inscrutable expression.</p>
-
-<p>“’F it comes to that,” he said distantly, “he said
-you oughtn’t to wear high heels.”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel flushed angrily, and walked on.</p>
-
-<p>William’s spirits rose. It wasn’t often he scored
-over Ethel and he feared that even now she would
-have her revenge.</p>
-
-<p>He watched her go down the road. Coming back
-along the road was Mr. March. As he met Ethel a
-deep flush and a sickly smile overspread his face.
-He stopped and spoke to her, gazing at her with a
-sheep-like air. Ethel passed on haughtily. He had
-recovered slightly when he reached the Outlaws,
-though traces of his flush still remained.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” he said with a loud laugh, “Divorce or
-bigamy? Which is it to be? Ha, ha! Excellent!”</p>
-
-<p>He put his walking stick against Ginger’s middle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</span>
-and playfully pushed him off the stile backwards.
-Then he went on his way laughing loudly.</p>
-
-<p>“I said he was cracked!” said Ginger climbing
-back to his perch.</p>
-
-<p>“He’d jus’ about suit Ethel then,” said William
-bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>They sat in silence a few minutes. There was
-a far-away meditative look in William’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” he said at last, “’f Ethel married him she’d
-go away from our house and live in his, wun’t she?”</p>
-
-<p>“U-hum,” agreed Ginger absently as he tried
-to hit the second tree to the left of the telegraph
-post that counted five.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish there was some way of makin’ them fall
-in love with each other,” said William gloomily.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, there is, William,” said Joan. “We’ve been
-learning it at school. Someone called Shakespeare
-wrote it. You keep saying to both of them that
-the other’s in love with them and they fall in love
-and marry. I know. We did it last term. One
-of them was Beatrice and I forget the other.”</p>
-
-<p>“You said it was Shakespeare,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“No, he’s the one that tells about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sounds a queer sort of tale to me,” said William
-severely. “Couldn’t you write to him and get it a
-bit plainer what to do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Write to him!” jeered Ginger. “He’s dead.
-Fancy you not knowin’ that! Fancy you not knowin’
-Shakespeare’s dead!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how was I to know he was dead? I can’t
-know everyone’s name what’s dead, can I? I bet
-there’s lots of dead folks’ names what you don’ know!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do you?” said Ginger. “Well, I bet I know
-more dead folks’ names than you do!”</p>
-
-<p>“He said that anyway,” interposed Joan hastily
-and pacifically. “He said that if you keep on making
-up nice things and saying that the other said it about<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</span>
-them they fall in love and marry. It must be true
-because it’s in a book.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a look of set purpose in William’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“It’ll take a bit of arrangin’,” was the final result
-of his frowning meditation, “but it might come off
-all right.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William’s part was more difficult than Joan’s.
-William’s part consisted in repeating to Ethel compliments
-supposed to emanate from Mr. March.
-If Ethel had had the patience to listen to them she
-would have realised that they all bore the
-unmistakable imprint of William’s imagination.</p>
-
-<p>William opened his campaign by approaching her
-when she was reading a book in the drawing-room.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Ethel,” he began in a deep soulful voice,
-“I saw Mr. March this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel went on reading as if she had not heard.</p>
-
-<p>“He says,” continued William mournfully, sitting
-on the settee next to Ethel, “he says that you’re the
-apple of his life. He says that he loves you with a
-mos’ devourin’ passion. He says that you’re ab’s’lutely
-the mos’ beauteous maid he’s ever come across.”</p>
-
-<p>“Be quiet and let me read!” said Ethel without
-looking up from her book.</p>
-
-<p>“He says,” went on William in the same deep
-monotonous voice, “he says that he doesn’t mind
-your hair bein’ red though he knows some people
-think it’s ugly. That’s noble of him, you know,
-Ethel. He says&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel rose from the settee.</p>
-
-<p>“If you won’t be quiet,” she said, “I’ll have to
-go into another room.”</p>
-
-<p>She went into the dining-room and, sitting down
-in an armchair began to read again.</p>
-
-<p>After a short interval William followed and taking
-the armchair opposite hers, continued:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He says, Ethel, that he’s deep in love with you
-and that he doesn’t mind you bein’ so bad-tempered.
-He likes it. Anyway he ’spects he’ll get used to it.
-He says he’ adores you jus’ like what people do on the
-pictures. He puts his hand on his stomach and rolls
-his eyes whenever he thinks of you. He says&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Will&mdash;you&mdash;be&mdash;quiet?” said Ethel angrily.</p>
-
-<p>“No, but jus’ listen, Ethel,” pleaded William.
-“He says&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel flounced out of the room. She went to the
-morning-room, locked the door, and, sitting down
-with her back to the window, continued to read.
-After a few minutes came the sound of the window’s
-being cautiously opened and William appeared behind
-her chair.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, Ethel, when I saw Mr. March he said&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel gave a scream.</p>
-
-<p>“If you mention that man’s name to me once more,
-William, I’ll&mdash;I’ll tell father that you’ve been eating
-the grapes in the hot-house.”</p>
-
-<p>It was a random shot but with a boy of William’s
-many activities such random shots generally found
-their mark.</p>
-
-<p>He sighed and slowly retreated from the room by
-way of the window.</p>
-
-<p>Ethel’s attitude made his task a very difficult one....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Joan’s task was easier. Joan had free access to
-her father’s study and typewriter and Joan composed
-letters from Ethel to Mr. March. William “borrowed”
-some of his father’s notepaper for her and she
-worked very conscientiously, looking up the spelling
-of every word in the dictionary and re-typing every
-letter in which she made a mistake. She sent him
-one every day. Each one ended, “Please do not
-answer this or mention it to me and do not mind if
-my manner to you seems different to these letters.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</span>
-I cannot explain, but you know that my heart is
-full of love for you.”</p>
-
-<p>One letter had a p.s. “I would be grateful if you
-would give half-a-crown to my little brother William
-when next you meet him. I am penniless and he is
-such a nice good boy.”</p>
-
-<p>Anyone less conceited than Mr. March would
-have suspected the genuineness of the letters, but to Mr.
-March they seemed just such letters as a young girl
-who had succumbed to his incomparable charm might
-write.</p>
-
-<p>It was William who insisted on the p.s. though Joan
-felt that it was inartistic. It had effect, however.
-Mr. March met William on the road the next morning
-and handed him a half-crown then, with a loud guffaw
-and “Divorce or bigamy, eh?” pushed William
-lightly into a holly bush and passed on. Mr. March’s
-methods of endearing himself to the young were
-primitive.... But the half-crown compensated
-for the holly bush in William’s estimation. He
-wanted to make the p.s. a regular appendage to the
-letter but Joan firmly refused to allow it.</p>
-
-<p>After a week of daily letters written by Joan and
-daily unsuccessful attempts on the part of William
-to introduce imaginary compliments from Mr. March
-into casual conversation with Ethel, both felt that
-it was time for the dénouement.</p>
-
-<p>The final letter was the result of a hard morning’s
-work by William and Joan.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear George</span> (May I call you George now?),</p>
-
-<p>Will you meet me by the river near Fisher’s
-Lock to-morrow afternoon at three o’clock? Will
-you wear a red carnation and I will wear a red rose
-as gages of our love? I want to tell you how much
-I love you, though I am sure you know. Let us be
-married next Monday afternoon. Do not speak to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</span>
-me of this letter but just come wearing a red carnation
-and I will come wearing a red rose as gages of our
-love. I hope you will love my little brother William
-too. He is very fond of caramels.</p>
-
-<p class="l">Yours with love<br />
-<span class="mr"><span class="smcap">Ethel Brown</span> (soon I hope to be March).”</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The reference to William had been the subject of
-much discussion, but William had overborne Joan’s
-objections.</p>
-
-<p>“I reely only want it put because it makes it seem
-more nat’ral. It’s only nat’ral she should want
-him to be kind to her brother. I mean, not knowin’
-Ethel as well as I do, he’ll <i>think</i> it nat’ral.”</p>
-
-<p>The stage managing of the actual encounter was
-the most difficult part of all. Ethel’s reception
-of her swain’s supposed compliments had not been
-such as to make William feel that a request to meet
-him at Fisher’s Lock would be favourably received.
-He was feeling just a little doubtful about the working
-of Joan’s love charm in the case of Ethel but with
-his usual optimism he was hoping for the best.</p>
-
-<p>“Ethel,” he said at lunch. “Gladys Barker wants
-to see you this afternoon. I met her this morning.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did she say any time?” said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“Soon after three,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Why on earth didn’t you tell me sooner?” said
-Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>The road to Gladys Barker’s house lay by the
-river past Fisher’s Lock.</p>
-
-<p>“’S not tellin’ a story,” William informed his
-conscience. “I did meet her this mornin’ an’ I don’
-know that she doesn’t want to see Ethel this afternoon.
-She prob’ly does.”</p>
-
-<p>About quarter to three William came in from the
-garden carefully holding a rose. He wore his most
-inscrutable expression.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I thought you might like to wear this, Ethel,”
-he said, “It goes nice with your dress.”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel was touched.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, William,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>She watched him as he returned to the garden,
-humming discordantly.</p>
-
-<p>She wondered if sometimes she misjudged
-William....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It was ten minutes past three. On the path by
-the river near Fisher’s Lock stood Mr. March with a
-red carnation in his button hole. Concealed in a tree
-just above his head were Ginger, Douglas, William
-and Joan.</p>
-
-<p>Down the path by the river came Ethel wearing
-her red rose.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. March started forward.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, little girl?” he said with roguish tenderness.</p>
-
-<p>Ethel stopped suddenly and stared at him in
-amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said Mr. March, shaking a fat finger at
-her, “The time has come to drop the mask of
-haughtiness. I know all now, you know, from
-your own sweet lips, I mean your own sweet pen....
-I know how your little heart beats at the thought of
-your George. I know who is your ideal ... your
-beloved knight ... your all those sweet things
-you wrote to me. Now, don’t be frightened, little
-girl. I return your affection, but not Monday afternoon!
-I don’t think we can manage it quite as
-soon as that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. March,” said Ethel, “are you ill?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ill, my little precious?” ogled Mr. March. “No,
-well, my little popsie! Your dear loving letters have
-made me well. I was so touched by them, little
-Ethelkins!... You thinking me so handsome and
-clever and, you know, I admire you, too.” He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</span>
-touched the red rose she was wearing playfully,
-“the gage of your love, eh?”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig23.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“NOW, DON’T BE FRIGHTENED, LITTLE GIRL,” SAID MR.<br />
-MARCH. “I KNOW HOW YOUR LITTLE HEART BEATS AT<br />
-THE THOUGHT OF YOUR GEORGE.”<br />
-“MR. MARCH!” EXCLAIMED ETHEL, “ARE YOU ILL?”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Mr. March,” said Ethel angrily, “You must be
-mad. I’ve never written to you in my life.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah,” he replied, “Do not deny the fond
-impeachment.” He took a bundle of type-written
-letters out of his pocket and handed them to her,
-“You have seen these before.”</p>
-
-<p>She took them and read them slowly one by one.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve never heard such rubbish,” she said at last.
-“I’ve never seen the idiotic things before. You
-must be crazy.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. March’s mouth fell open.</p>
-
-<p>“You&mdash;didn’t write them?” he said incredulously.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not!” snapped Ethel. “How could
-you be such a fool as to think I did?”</p>
-
-<p>He considered for a minute then his expression of
-bewilderment gave place again to the roguish smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, naughty!” he said. “She’s being very
-coy! I know better! I know&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>He took her hand. Ethel snatched it back and
-pushed him away angrily. He was standing on the
-very edge of the river and at the push he swayed for
-a second, clutching wildly at the air, then fell with a
-loud splash into the stream.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I say, Ethel,” expostulated William from
-his leafy hiding place. “Don’t carry on like that ...
-drownin’ him after all the trouble we’ve took
-with him! He’s gotter lot of money an’ a nice garden
-an’ a big house. Anyone’d think you’d want to
-marry him ’stead of carryin’ on like that!”</p>
-
-<p>At the first sound of his voice, Ethel had gazed
-round open-mouthed, then she looked up into the
-tree and saw William.</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>hateful</i> boy!” she cried. “I’m going straight
-home to tell father!”</p>
-
-<p>She turned on her heel and went off without looking
-back.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Mr. March was scrambling up the bank,
-spitting out water and river weeds and (fortunately)
-inarticulate expletives.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I’ll have damages off someone for this!” he said
-as he emerged on to the bank. “I’ll make someone
-pay for this! I’ll have the law on them! I’ll....”</p>
-
-<p>He went off dripping and muttering and shaking
-his fist vaguely in all directions....</p>
-
-<p>Slowly the Outlaws climbed down from their tree.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you’ve made a nice mess of everything!”
-said Ginger dispassionately.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve took a lot of trouble tryin’ to get her married,”
-said William, “and this is how she pays me! Well,
-she needn’t blame me.” He looked at the indignant
-figure of his pretty nineteen-year-old sister which was
-still visible in the distance and added gloomily, “She’s
-turnin’ out an old maid an’ it’s not my fault. I’ve
-done my best. Seems to me she’s goin’ to go on livin’
-in our house all her life till she dies, an’ that’s a nice
-look out for me, isn’t it? Seems to me that if she
-won’t even get married when you practically fix it
-all up for her an’ save her all the trouble like this,
-she won’t <i>ever</i> marry an’ she needn’t blame me ’cause
-she’s an old maid. I’ve done everythin’ I can. An’
-you,” he transferred his stern eye to Joan. “Why
-don’ you read books with a bit of <i>sense</i> in them?
-This Shake man simply doesn’t know what he’s talkin’
-about. It’s a good thing for him he <i>is</i> dead, gettin’
-us all into a mess like this!”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you goin’ to do now?” said Douglas
-with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m goin’ fishin’,” said William, “an’ I don’
-care if I don’t get home till bed time.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It was a week later. The excitement and altercations
-and retaliations and dealing out of justice
-which had followed William’s abortive attempt to
-marry Ethel were over.</p>
-
-<p>Ethel had gone into the morning-room for a book.
-The Outlaws were playing in the garden outside.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</span>
-Their strong young voices floated in through the
-open window.</p>
-
-<p>“Now let’s have a change,” William was saying.
-“Ginger be Mr. March an’ Joan be Ethel....
-Now, begin ... go on.... Joan, come on ...
-walkin’ kind of silly like Ethel ... an’ Ginger go
-to meet her with a soft look on your face.... That’s
-it ... now, start!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, little girl?” said Ginger in a shrill affected
-voice. “I know how your little heart beats at me.
-I know I am your knight an’ all that.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve left a lot out,” said William. “You’ve
-left out where he said he wouldn’t marry her on
-Monday. Now you go on, Joan.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. March,” squeaked Joan in piercing hauteur,
-“are you mad?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” corrected William. “’Are you feelin’ ill?’
-comes first. Let’s start again an’ get it all right....”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel flounced out of the room and slammed the
-door. She found her mother in the dining-room
-darning socks.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother,” she said, “can’t we <i>do</i> anything about
-William? Can’t we send him to an orphanage or
-anything?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, darling,” said Mrs. Brown calmly. “You
-see, for one thing, he isn’t an orphan.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he’s so <i>awful!</i>” said Ethel. “He’s so
-unspeakably dreadful!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, Ethel,” said Mrs. Brown still darning
-placidly. “Don’t say things like that about your
-little brother. I sometimes think that when William’s
-just had his hair cut and got a new suit on he looks
-quite sweet!”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM’S TRUTHFUL CHRISTMAS</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William</span> went to church with his family every Sunday
-morning but he did not usually listen to the sermon.
-He considered it a waste of time. He sometimes
-enjoyed singing the psalms and hymns. Any stone-deaf
-person could have told when William was singing
-the psalms and hymns by the expressions of pain
-on the faces of those around him. William’s singing
-was loud and discordant. It completely drowned
-the organ and the choir. Miss Barney, who stood
-just in front of him, said that it always gave her a
-headache for the rest of the week. William contested
-with some indignation that he had as good a right to
-sing in church as anyone. Besides there was nothing
-wrong with his voice ... it was just like everyone
-else’s....</p>
-
-<p>During the Vicar’s sermon, William either stared
-at the curate (William always scored in this game
-because the curate invariably began to grow pink and
-look embarrassed after about five minutes of William’s
-stare) or held a face-pulling competition with the
-red-haired choir boy or amused himself with insects,
-conveyed to church in a match box in his pocket, till
-restrained by the united glares of his father and mother
-and Ethel and Robert....</p>
-
-<p>But this Sunday, attracted by the frequent
-repetition of the word “Christmas,” William put his
-stag beetle back into its box and gave his whole
-attention to the Vicar’s exhortation....</p>
-
-<p>“What is it that poisons our whole social life?”
-said the Vicar earnestly. “What is it that spoils
-even the holy season that lies before us? It is deceit.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</span>
-It is untruthfulness. Let each one of us decide here
-and now for this season of Christmas at least, to cast
-aside all deceit and hypocrisy and speak the truth
-one with another.... It will be the first step to a
-holier life. It will make this Christmas the happiest
-of our lives....”</p>
-
-<p>William’s attention was drawn from the exhortation
-by the discovery that he had not quite closed the match
-box and the stag beetle was crawling up Ethel’s
-coat. Fortunately Ethel was busily engaged in taking
-in all the details of Marion Hatherley’s new dress across
-the aisle and did not notice. William recaptured
-his pet and shut up the match box ... then rose
-to join lustily and inharmoniously in the first verse
-of “Onward, Christian Soldiers.” During the other
-verses he employed himself by trying a perfectly
-new grimace (which he had been practising all week)
-on the choir boy. It was intercepted by the curate
-who shuddered and looked away hastily. The sight
-and sound of William in the second row from the front
-completely spoilt the service for the curate every
-Sunday. He was an æsthetic young man and
-William’s appearance and personality hurt his
-sense of beauty....</p>
-
-<p>But the words of the sermon had made a deep
-impression on William. He decided for this holy
-season at least to cast aside deceit and hypocrisy and
-speak the truth one with another.... William
-had not been entirely without aspiration to a higher
-life before this. He had once decided to be self
-sacrificing for a whole day and his efforts had been
-totally unappreciated and misunderstood. He had
-once tried to reform others and the result had been
-even more disastrous. But he’d never made a real
-effort to cast aside deceit and hypocrisy and to speak
-the truth one with another. He decided to try it at
-Christmas as the Vicar had suggested.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</span></p>
-
-<p>Much to his disgust William heard that Uncle
-Frederick and Aunt Emma had asked his family to
-stay with them for Christmas. He gathered that the
-only drawback to the arrangement in the eyes of
-his family was himself, and the probable effect of his
-personality on the peaceful household of Uncle
-Frederick and Aunt Emma. He was not at all
-offended. He was quite used to this view of himself.</p>
-
-<p>“All right!” he said obligingly. “You jus’ go.
-I don’ mind. I’ll stay at home ... you jus’ leave
-me money an’ my presents an’ I won’t mind a bit.”</p>
-
-<p>William’s spirits in fact soared sky-high at the prospect
-of such an oasis of freedom in the desert of parental
-interference. But his family betrayed again that
-strange disinclination to leave William to his own
-devices that hampered so many of William’s activities.</p>
-
-<p>“No, William,” said his mother. “We certainly
-can’t do that. You’ll have to come with us but I
-do hope you’ll be good.”</p>
-
-<p>William remembered the sermon and his good
-resolution.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” he said cryptically, “I guess ’f you knew
-what I was goin’ to be like at Christmas you’d almost
-<i>want</i> me to come.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It happened that William’s father was summoned
-on Christmas Eve to the sick bed of one of his aunts
-and so could not accompany them, but they set off
-under Robert’s leadership and arrived safely.</p>
-
-<p>Uncle Frederick and Aunt Emma were very stout
-and good-natured-looking, but Uncle Frederick was
-the stouter and more good-natured-looking of the
-two. They had not seen William since he was a baby.
-That explained the fact of their having invited William
-and his family to spend Christmas with them. They
-lived too far away to have heard even rumours<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</span>
-of the horror with which William inspired the grown-up
-world around him. They greeted William kindly.</p>
-
-<p>“So this is little William,” said Uncle Frederick,
-putting his hand on William’s head. “And how is
-little William?”</p>
-
-<p>William removed his head from Uncle Frederick’s
-hand in silence then said distantly:</p>
-
-<p>“V’ well, thank you.”</p>
-
-<p>“And so grateful to your Uncle and Aunt for asking
-you to stay with them, aren’t you, William?” went
-on his mother.</p>
-
-<p>William remembered that his career of truthfulness
-did not begin till the next day so he said still
-more distantly, “Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>That evening Ethel said to her mother in William’s
-presence:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he’s not been so <i>bad</i> to-day, considering.”</p>
-
-<p>“You wait,” said William unctiously. “You
-wait till to-morrow when I start castin’ aside deceit
-an’ ... an’. To-day’ll be <i>nothin’</i> to it.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William awoke early on Christmas day. He had
-hung up his stocking the night before and was pleased
-to see it fairly full. He took out the presents quickly
-but not very optimistically. He had been early disillusioned
-in the matter of grown-ups’ capacity for
-choosing suitable presents. Memories of prayer books
-and history books and socks and handkerchiefs floated
-before his mental vision.... Yes, as bad as ever!
-... a case containing a pen and pencil and ruler, a new
-brush and comb, a purse (empty) and a new tie ...
-a penknife and a box of toffee were the only redeeming
-features. On the chair by his bedside was a book
-of Church History from Aunt Emma and a box containing
-a pair of compasses, a protractor and a set
-square from Uncle Frederick....</p>
-
-<p>William dressed, but as it was too early to go down<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</span>
-he sat down on the floor and ate all his tin of toffee.
-Then he turned his attention to his Church History
-book. He read a few pages but the character and
-deeds of the saintly Aidan so exasperated him that he
-was driven to relieve his feeling by taking his new pencil
-from its case and adorning the saint’s picture by the
-addition of a top hat and spectacles. He completed the
-alterations by a moustache and by changing the book
-the saint held into an attaché case. He made similar
-alterations to every picture in the book.... St. Oswald
-seemed much improved by them and this cheered
-William considerably. Then he took his penknife and
-began to carve his initials upon his brush and comb....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William appeared at breakfast wearing his new tie
-and having brushed his hair with his new brush or
-rather with what was left of his new brush after his
-very drastic initial carving. He carried under his arm
-his presents for his host and hostess. He exchanged
-“Happy Christmas” gloomily. His resolve to cast
-away deceit and hypocrisy and speak the truth
-one with another lay heavy upon him. He regarded
-it as an obligation that could not be shirked. William
-was a boy of great tenacity of purpose. Having
-once made up his mind to a course he pursued it
-regardless of consequences....</p>
-
-<p>“Well, William, darling,” said his mother. “Did
-you find your presents?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said William gloomily. “Thank you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you like the book and instruments that Uncle
-and I gave you?” said Aunt Emma brightly.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said William gloomily and truthfully.
-“I’m not int’rested in Church History an’ I’ve got
-something like those at school. Not that I’d want
-’em,” he added hastily, “if I hadn’t ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>William!</i>” screamed Mrs. Brown in horror.
-“How can you be so ungrateful!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m not ungrateful,” explained William wearily.
-“I’m only bein’ truthful. I’m casting aside deceit
-an’ ... an’ hyp-hyp-what he said. I’m only sayin’
-that I’m not int’rested in Church History nor in those
-inst’ments. But thank you very much for ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a gasp of dismay and a horrified silence
-during which William drew his paper packages
-from under his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Here are your Christmas presents from me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>The atmosphere brightened. They unfastened their
-parcels with expression of anticipation and Christian
-forgiveness upon their faces. William watched them,
-his face “registering” only patient suffering.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s very kind of you,” said Aunt Emma still
-struggling with the string.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not kind,” said William still treading doggedly
-the path of truth. “Mother said I’d got to bring you
-something.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown coughed suddenly and loudly but not
-in time to drown the fatal words of truth....</p>
-
-<p>“But still&mdash;er&mdash;very kind,” said Aunt Emma
-though with less enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p>At last she brought out a small pincushion.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you very much, William,” she said. “You
-really oughtn’t to have spent your money on me
-like this.”</p>
-
-<p>“I din’t,” said William stonily. “I hadn’t any
-money, but I’m very glad you like it. It was left
-over from Mother’s stall at the Sale of Work, an’
-Mother said it was no use keepin’ it for nex’ year
-because it had got so faded.”</p>
-
-<p>Again Mrs. Brown coughed loudly but too late.
-Aunt Emma said coldly:</p>
-
-<p>“I see. Yes. Your mother was quite right.
-But thank you all the same, William.”</p>
-
-<p>Uncle Frederick had now taken the wrappings
-from his present and held up a leather purse.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Ah, this is a really useful present,” he said
-jovially.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m ’fraid it’s not very useful,” said William.
-“Uncle Jim sent it to father for his birthday but
-father said it was no use ’cause the catch wouldn’
-catch so he gave it to me to give to you.”</p>
-
-<p>Uncle Frederick tried the catch.</p>
-
-<p>“Um ... ah ...” he said. “Your father was
-quite right. The catch won’t catch. Never mind,
-I’ll send it back to your father as a New Year present
-... what?”</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the Brown family were left alone it
-turned upon William in a combined attack.</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>warned</i> you!” said Ethel to her mother.</p>
-
-<p>“He ought to be hung,” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“William, how <i>could</i> you?” said Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“When I’m bad, you go on at me,” said William
-with exasperation, “an’ when I’m tryin’ to lead a
-holier life and cast aside hyp&mdash;hyp&mdash;what he said,
-you go on at me. I dunno what I <i>can</i> be. I don’t
-mind bein’ hung. I’d as soon be hung as keep havin’
-Christmas over an’ over again simply every year
-the way we do....”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William accompanied the party to church after
-breakfast. He was slightly cheered by discovering
-a choir boy with a natural aptitude for grimaces and
-an instinctive knowledge of the rules of the game.
-The Vicar preached an unconvincing sermon on
-unselfishness and the curate gave full play to an
-ultra-Oxford accent and a voice that was almost as
-unmusical as William’s. Aunt Emma said it had
-been a “beautiful service.” The only bright spot to
-William was when the organist boxed the ears of the
-youngest choir boy who retaliated by putting out his
-tongue at the organist at the beginning of each verse
-of the last hymn....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</span></p>
-
-<p>William was very silent during lunch.... He
-simply didn’t know what people saw in Christmas.
-It was just like ten Sundays rolled into one....
-An’ they didn’t even give people the sort of presents
-they’d like.... No one all his life had ever given
-him a water pistol or a catapult or a trumpet or bows
-and arrows or anything really useful.... And if
-they didn’t like truth an’ castin’ aside deceit an’&mdash;an’
-the other thing they could do without ...
-but he was jolly well goin’ to go on with it. He’d
-made up his mind and he was jolly well goin’ to
-go on with it.... His silence was greatly welcomed
-by his family. He ate plentifully, however, of
-the turkey and plum pudding and felt strangely
-depressed afterwards ... so much that he followed
-the example of the rest of the family and went up
-to his bedroom....</p>
-
-<p>There he brushed his hair with his new brush, but
-he had carved his initials so deeply and spaciously
-that the brush came in two with the first flourish.
-He brushed his shoes with the two halves with great
-gusto in the manner of the professional shoe black....
-Then having nothing else to do, he turned to his
-Church History again. The desecrated pictures of the
-Saints met his gaze and realising suddenly the enormity
-of the crime in grown up eyes he took his penknife
-and cut them all out. He made paper boats of them,
-and deliberately and because he hated it he cut his
-new tie into strips to fasten some of the boats
-together. He organised a thrilling naval battle with
-them and was almost forgetting his grudge against
-life in general and Christmas in particular....</p>
-
-<p>He was roused to the sense of the present by sounds
-of life and movement downstairs, and, thrusting his
-saintly paper fleet into his pyjama case, he went
-down to the drawing-room. As he entered there
-came the sound of a car drawing up at the front door
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</span>and Uncle Frederick looked out of the window and
-groaned aloud.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig24.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“DON’T YOU THINK IT’S VERY LIKE ME?” ASKED LADY<br />
-ATKINSON.<br />
-“IT’S NOT AS FAT AS YOU ARE,” SAID WILLIAM, CRITICALLY.<br />
-“I’M NOT IMPOLITE. I’M BEING TRUTHFUL.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“It’s Lady Atkinson,” he said, “Help! Help!”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Frederick dear,” said Aunt Emma hastily,
-“Don’t talk like that and <i>do</i> try to be nice to her.
-She’s one of <i>the</i> Atkinsons, you know,” she explained
-with empressement to Mrs. Brown in a whisper as
-the lady was shown in.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Atkinson was stout and elderly and wore
-a very youthful hat and coat.</p>
-
-<p>“A happy Christmas to you all!” she said graciously.
-“The boy? Your nephew? William? How do
-you do, William? He&mdash;<i>stares</i> rather, doesn’t he?
-Ah, yes,” she greeted every one separately with
-infinite condescension.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve brought you my Christmas present in person,”
-she went on in the tone of voice of one giving an
-unheard-of treat. “Look!”</p>
-
-<p>She took out of an envelope a large signed photograph
-of herself. “There now ... what do you think
-of that?”</p>
-
-<p>Murmurs of surprise and admiration and gratitude.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Atkinson drank them in complacently.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s very good isn’t it? You ... little boy
-... don’t you think it’s very like me?”</p>
-
-<p>William gazed at it critically.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not as fat as you are,” was his final offering
-at the altar of truth.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>William!</i>” screamed Mrs. Brown, “how can
-you be so impolite!”</p>
-
-<p>“Impolite?” said William with some indignation.
-“I’m not tryin’ to be polite! I’m bein’ truthful.
-I can’t be everything. Seems to me I’m the only
-person in the world what <i>is</i> truthful an’ no one seems
-to be grateful to me. It <i>isn’t</i> ’s fat as what she is,”
-he went on doggedly, “an’ it’s not got as many little
-lines on its face as what she has an’ it’s different<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</span>
-lookin’ altogether. It looks pretty an’ she doesn’t&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Lady Atkinson towered over him, quivering with
-rage.</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>nasty</i> little boy!” she said thrusting her
-face close to his. “You&mdash;<span class="large">NASTY</span>&mdash;little&mdash;boy!”</p>
-
-<p>Then she swept out of the room without another
-word.</p>
-
-<p>The front door slammed.</p>
-
-<p>She was gone.</p>
-
-<p>Aunt Emma sat down and began to weep.</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll never come to the house again,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“I always said he ought to be hung,” said Robert
-gloomily. “Every day we let him live he complicates
-our lives still worse.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall tell your father, William,” said Mrs. Brown,
-“<i>directly</i> we get home.”</p>
-
-<p>“The kindest thing to think,” said Ethel, “is that
-he’s mad.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William, “I don’ know what I’ve
-done ’cept cast aside deceit an’&mdash;an’ the other thing
-what he said in church an’ speak the truth an’ that.
-I don’ know why every one’s so mad at me jus’ ’cause
-of that. You’d think they’d be glad!”</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll never set foot in the house again,” sobbed
-Aunt Emma.</p>
-
-<p>Uncle Frederick, who had been vainly trying to
-hide his glee, rose.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think she will, my dear,” he said cheerfully.
-“Nothing like the truth, William ...
-absolutely nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>He pressed a half-crown into William’s hand
-surreptitiously as he went to the door....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>A diversion was mercifully caused at this moment
-by the arrival of the post. Among it there was a
-Christmas card from an artist who had a studio about<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</span>
-five minutes’ walk from the house. This little
-attention comforted Aunt Emma very much.</p>
-
-<p>“How kind of him!” she said, “and we never
-sent him anything. But there’s that calendar that
-Mr. Franks sent to us and it’s not written on. Perhaps
-William could be trusted to take it to Mr. Fairly
-with our compliments while the rest of us go for a
-short walk.” She looked at William rather coldly.</p>
-
-<p>William who was feeling the atmosphere indoors
-inexplicably hostile (except for Uncle Frederick’s
-equally inexplicable friendliness) was glad of an
-excuse for escaping.</p>
-
-<p>He set off with the calendar wrapped in brown
-paper. On the way his outlook on life was considerably
-brightened by finding a street urchins’ fight in
-full swing. He joined in it with gusto and was soon
-acclaimed leader of his side. This exhilarating
-adventure was ended by a policeman who scattered
-the combatants and pretended to chase William
-down a side street in order to vary the monotony
-of his Christmas “beat.”</p>
-
-<p>William, looking rather battered and dishevelled,
-arrived at Mr. Fairly’s studio. The calendar had
-fortunately survived the battle unscathed and William
-handed it to Mr. Fairly who opened the door. Mr.
-Fairly showed him into the studio with a low bow.
-Mr. Fairly was clothed in correct artistic style ...
-baggy trousers, velvet coat and a flowing tie. He
-had a pointed beard and a theatrical manner. He
-had obviously lunched well&mdash;as far as liquid refreshment
-was concerned at any rate. He was moved
-to tears by the calendar.</p>
-
-<p>“How kind! How very kind.... My dear
-young friend, forgive this emotion. The world is hard.
-I am not used to kindness. It unmans me....”</p>
-
-<p>He wiped away his tears with a large mauve and
-yellow handkerchief. William gazed at it fascinated.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</span></p>
-
-<p>“If you will excuse me, my dear young friend,”
-went on Mr. Fairly, “I will retire to my bedroom
-where I have the wherewithal to write and endite a
-letter of thanks to your most delightful and charming
-relative. I beg you to make yourself at home here....
-Use my house, my dear young friend, as
-though it were your own....”</p>
-
-<p>He waved his arms and retreated unsteadily to an
-inner room, closing the door behind him.</p>
-
-<p>William sat down on a chair and waited. Time
-passed, William became bored. Suddenly a fresh
-aspect of his Christmas resolution occurred to him.
-If you were speaking the truth one with another
-yourself, surely you might take everything that other
-people said for truth.... He’d said, “Use this
-house, my dear young friend, as though it were your
-own.”... Well, he would. The man prob’ly
-meant it ... well, anyway, he shouldn’t have said
-it if he didn’t.... William went across the room
-and opened a cupboard. It contained a medley of
-paints, two palettes, two oranges and a cake. The
-feeling of oppression that had followed William’s
-Christmas lunch had faded and he attacked the cake
-with gusto. It took about ten minutes to finish the
-cake and about four to finish the oranges. William
-felt refreshed. He looked round the studio with
-renewed interest. A lay figure sat upon a couch on
-a small platform. William approached it cautiously.
-It was almost life-size and clad in a piece of thin silk.
-William lifted it. It was quite light. He put it
-on a chair by the window. Then he went to the
-little back room. A bonnet and mackintosh (belonging
-to Mr. Fairly’s charwoman) hung there. He dressed
-the lay figure in the bonnet and mackintosh. He
-found a piece of black gauze in a drawer and put it
-over the figure’s face as a veil and tied it round the
-bonnet. He felt all the thrill of the creative artist.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</span>
-He shook hands with it and talked to it. He began
-to have a feeling of deep affection for it. He called it
-Annabel. The clock struck and he remembered
-the note he was waiting for.... He knocked
-gently at the bedroom door. There was no answer.
-He opened the door and entered. On the writing
-table by the door was a letter:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Friend</span>,</p>
-
-<p>Many thanks for your beautiful calendar.
-Words fail me....”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then came a blot&mdash;mingled ink and emotion&mdash;and
-that was all. Words had failed Mr. Fairly
-so completely that he lay outstretched on the sofa
-by the window sleeping the sleep of the slightly
-inebriated. William thought he’d better not wake
-him up. He returned to the studio and carried
-on his self-imposed task of investigation. He found
-some acid drops in a drawer adhering to a tube of
-yellow ochre. He separated them and ate the acid drops
-but their strong flavour of yellow ochre made him feel
-sick and he returned to Annabel for sympathy....</p>
-
-<p>Then he thought of a game. The lay figure was a
-captured princess and William was the gallant rescuer.
-He went outside, opened the front door cautiously,
-crept into the hall, hid behind the door, dashed into
-the studio, caught up the figure in his arms and dashed
-into the street with it. The danger and exhilaration of
-a race for freedom through the streets with Annabel in
-his arms was too enticing to be resisted. As a matter of
-fact the flight through the streets was rather disappointing.
-He met no one and no one pursued him....</p>
-
-<p>He staggered up the steps to Aunt Emma’s house
-still carrying Annabel. There, considering the matter
-for the first time in cold blood, he realised that his
-rescue of Annabel was not likely to be received<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</span>
-enthusiastically by his home circle. And Annabel
-was not easy to conceal. The house seemed empty
-but he could already hear its inmates returning from
-their walk. He felt a sudden hatred of Annabel for
-being so large and unhidable. He could not reach
-the top of the stairs before they came in at the door.
-The drawing-room door was open and into it he rushed,
-deposited Annabel in a chair by the fireplace with her
-back to the room, and returned to the hall. He
-smoothed back his hair, assumed his most vacant
-expression and awaited them. To his surprise they
-crept past the drawing-room door on tiptoe and
-congregated in the dining-room.</p>
-
-<p>“A caller!” said Aunt Emma. “Did you see?”
-“Yes, in the dining-room,” said Mrs. Brown. “I
-saw her hat through the window.”</p>
-
-<p>“Curse!” said Uncle Frederick.</p>
-
-<p>“The maids must have shown her in before they
-went up to change. I’m simply <i>not</i> going to see her.
-On Christmas day, too! I’ll just wait till she gets
-tired and goes or till one of the maids comes down
-and can send her away!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sh!” said Uncle Frederick, “She’ll hear you.”</p>
-
-<p>Aunt Emma lowered her voice.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think she’s a lady,” she said. “She
-didn’t look it through the window.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps she’s collecting for something,” said Mrs.
-Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Aunt Emma sinking her voice to a
-conspiratorial whisper. “If we stay in here and keep
-very quiet she’ll get tired of waiting and go.”</p>
-
-<p>William was torn between an interested desire
-to be safely out of the way when the dénouement
-took place and a disinterested desire to witness the
-dénouement. The latter won and he stood at the
-back of the group with a sphinx-like expression upon
-his freckled face....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig25.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“I’LL HAVE ONE MORE TRY,” SAID UNCLE FREDERICK,<br />
-AND ENTERED THE ROOM. “GOOD AFTERNOON,” HE<br />
-BELLOWED.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>They waited in silence for some minutes then Aunt
-Emma said, “Well, she’ll stay for ever it seems to
-me if someone doesn’t send her away. Frederick,
-go and turn her out.”</p>
-
-<p>They all crept into the hall. Uncle Frederick went
-just inside and coughed loudly. Annabel did not
-move. Uncle Frederick came back.</p>
-
-<p>“Deaf!” he whispered. “Stone deaf! Someone
-else try.”</p>
-
-<p>Ethel advanced boldly into the middle of the room.
-“Good afternoon,” she said clearly and sweetly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</span></p>
-
-<p>Annabel did
-not move. Ethel
-returned.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig26.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">ANNABEL DID NOT MOVE.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“I think she
-must be asleep,”
-said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“She looks
-drunk to me,”
-said Aunt Emma,
-peeping round
-the door.</p>
-
-<p>“I shouldn’t
-wonder if she
-was dead,” said
-Robert. “It’s
-just the sort of
-thing you read
-about in books.
-Mysterious dead
-body found in
-drawing-room.
-I bet I can find
-a few clues to the
-murder if she is
-dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Robert!</i>” reproved Mrs. Brown in a shrill whisper.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you’d better fetch the police, Frederick,”
-said Aunt Emma.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll have one more try,” said Uncle Frederick.</p>
-
-<p>He entered the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” he bellowed.</p>
-
-<p>Annabel did not move. He went up to her.</p>
-
-<p>“Now look here, my woman&mdash;&mdash;” he began laying
-his hand on her shoulder....</p>
-
-<p>Then the dénouement happened.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Fairly burst into the house like a whirlwind
-still slightly inebriated and screaming with rage.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Where’s the thief? Where is he? He’s stolen
-my figure. He’s eaten my tea. I shall have to
-eat my supper for my tea and my breakfast for my
-supper.... I shall be a meal wrong always.... I
-shall never get right. And it’s all his fault. Where
-is he? He’s stolen my charwoman’s clothes. He’s
-stolen my figure. He’s eaten my tea. Wait till
-I get him!” He caught sight of Annabel, rushed into
-the drawing-room, caught her up in his arms and
-turned round upon the circle of open-mouthed spectators.
-“I <i>hate</i> you!” he screamed, “and your nasty
-little calendars and your nasty little boys! Stealing
-my figure and eating my tea.... I’ll light the
-fire with your nasty little calendar. I’d like to light
-the fire with your nasty little boy!”</p>
-
-<p>With a final snort of fury, he turned, still clasping
-Annabel in his arms and staggered down the front
-steps. Weakly, stricken and (for the moment) speechless,
-they watched his departure from the top of the
-steps. He took to his heels as soon as he was in the
-road. But he was less fortunate than William.
-As he turned the corner and vanished from sight,
-already two policemen were in pursuit. He was
-screaming defiance at them as he ran. Annabel’s
-head wobbled over his shoulder and her bonnet
-dangled by a string.</p>
-
-<p>Then, no longer speechless, they turned on William.</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>told</i> you,” said Robert to them when there was
-a slight lull in the storm, “You wouldn’t take my
-advice. If it wasn’t Christmas day I’d hang him
-myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you won’t let me <i>speak!</i>” said William
-plaintively. “Jus’ listen to me a minute. When I got
-to his house he said, he said mos’ distinct, he said,
-’Please use this&mdash;&mdash;’”</p>
-
-<p>“William,” interrupted Mrs. Brown with dignity.
-“I don’t know what’s happened and I don’t <i>want</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</span>
-to know but I shall tell your father <i>all</i> about it <i>directly</i>
-we get home.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Uncle Frederick saw them off at the station the next
-day.</p>
-
-<p>“Does your effort at truth continue to-day as well?”
-he said to William.</p>
-
-<p>“I s’pose it’s Boxing Day too,” said William. “He
-din’ mention Boxing Day. But I s’pose it counts
-with Christmas.”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t ask you whether you’ve enjoyed yourself
-then,” said Uncle Frederick. He slipped another
-half-crown into William’s hand. “Buy yourself
-something with that. Your Aunt chose the Church
-History book and the instruments. I’m really grateful
-to you about&mdash;Well, I think Emma’s right. I
-don’t think she’ll ever come again.”</p>
-
-<p>The train steamed out. Uncle Frederick returned
-home. He had been too optimistic. Lady Atkinson
-was in the drawing-room talking to his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” she was saying, “I’m not annoyed.
-I bear no grudge because I believe the boy’s <i>possessed!</i>
-He ought to be ex&mdash;exercised.... You know, what
-you do with evil spirits.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It was the evening of William’s return home. His
-father’s question as to whether William had been
-good had been answered as usual in the negative and,
-refusing to listen to details of accusation or defence,
-(ignoring William’s, “But he <i>said</i> mos’ distinct, he
-said. Please use this&mdash;” and the rest of the explanation
-always drowned by the others) he docked William
-of a month’s pocket money. But William was not
-depressed. The ordeal of Christmas was over. Normal
-life stretched before him once more. His spirits
-rose. He wandered out into the lane. There he met
-Ginger, his bosom pal, with whom on normal days he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</span>
-fought and wrestled and carried out deeds of daring
-and wickedness, but who (like William) on festivals
-and holy days was forced reluctantly to shed the light
-of his presence upon his own family. From Ginger’s
-face too a certain gloom cleared as he saw William.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William, “’v you enjoyed it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I had a pair of braces from my aunt,” said Ginger
-bitterly. “A pair of <i>braces!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I had a tie an’ a Church History book.”</p>
-
-<p>“I put my braces down the well.”</p>
-
-<p>“I chopped up my tie into little bits.”</p>
-
-<p>“Was it nice at your aunt’s?”</p>
-
-<p>William’s grievances burst out.</p>
-
-<p>“I went to church an’ took what that man said an’
-I’ve been speaking the truth one with another an’
-leadin’ a higher life an’ well, it jolly well din’t make
-it the happiest Christmas of my life what he said it
-would.... It made it the worst. Every one
-mad at me all the time. I think I was the only person
-in the world speakin’ the truth one with another an’
-they’ve took off my pocket money for it. An’ you’d
-think ’f you was speakin’ the truth yourself you
-might take what any one else said for truth an’ I
-keep tellin ’em that he said mos’ distinct, ‘Please
-use this house as if it were your own,’ but they won’
-listen to me! Well, I’ve done with it. I’m goin’
-back to deceit an’&mdash;an’&mdash;what’s a word beginnin’
-with hyp&mdash;&mdash;?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hypnotism?” suggested Ginger after deep
-thought.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that’s it,” said William. “Well, I’m goin’
-back to it first thing to-morrow mornin’.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">AN AFTERNOON WITH WILLIAM</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William’s</span> family was staying at the seaside for its
-summer holidays. This time was generally cordially
-detested by William. He hated being dragged from
-his well-known haunts, his woods and fields and
-friends and dog (for Jumble was not the kind of dog
-one takes away on a holiday). He hated the
-uncongenial atmosphere of hotels and boarding houses.
-He hated the dull promenades and the town gardens
-where walking over the grass and playing at Red
-Indians was discouraged. He failed utterly to
-understand the attraction that such places seemed to
-possess for his family. He took a pride and pleasure
-in the expression of gloom and boredom that he
-generally managed to maintain during the whole
-length of the holiday. But this time it was different.
-Ginger was staying with his family in the same hotel
-as William.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger’s father and William’s father played golf
-together. Ginger’s mother and William’s mother
-looked at the shops and the sea together. William
-and Ginger went off together on secret expeditions.
-Though no cajoleries or coaxings would have persuaded
-William to admit that he was “enjoying his holiday,”
-still the presence of Ginger made it difficult for him
-to maintain his usual aspect of gloomy scorn. They
-hunted for smugglers in the caves, they slipped over
-sea-weedy rocks and fell into the pools left by the
-retreating tide. They carried on warfare from trenches
-which they made in the sand, dug mines and counter-mines
-and generally got damp sand so deeply ingrained<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</span>
-in their clothes and hair that, as Mrs. Brown said
-almost tearfully, they “simply defied brushing.”</p>
-
-<p>To-day they were engaged in the innocent pursuit
-of wandering along the front and sampling the various
-attractions which it offered. They stood through
-three performances of the Punch and Judy show,
-laughing uproariously each time. As they had taken
-possession of the best view and as it never seemed to
-occur to them to contribute towards the expenses,
-the showman finally ordered them off. They wandered
-off obligingly and bought two penny sticks of liquorice
-at the next stall. Then they bought two penny giant
-glasses of a biliousy-coloured green lemonade and
-quaffed them in front of the stall with intense enjoyment.
-Then they wandered away from the crowded
-part of the front to the empty space beyond the rocks.
-Ginger found a dead crab and William made a fire
-and tried to cook it, but the result was not encouraging.
-They ate what was left of their liquorice sticks to take
-away the taste, then went on to the caves. They
-reviewed the possibility of hunting for smugglers
-without enthusiasm. William was feeling
-disillusioned with smugglers. He seemed to have
-spent the greater part of his life hunting for smugglers.
-They seemed to be an unpleasantly secretive set of
-people. They might have let him catch just one....</p>
-
-<p>They flung stones into the retreating tide and leapt
-into the little pools to see how high they could make
-the splashes go.</p>
-
-<p>Then they saw the boat....</p>
-
-<p>It was lying by itself high and dry on the shore.
-It was a nice little boat with two oars inside.</p>
-
-<p>“Wonder how long it would take to get to France
-in it?” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Jus’ no time, I ’spect,” said Ginger. “Why,
-you can <i>see</i> France from my bedroom window. It
-must jus’be <i>no</i> distance&mdash;simply <i>no</i> distance.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</span></p>
-
-<p>They looked at the boat in silence for a few minutes.</p>
-
-<p>“It looks as if it would go quite easy,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“We’d have it back before whosever it is wanted
-it,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“We couldn’t do it any harm,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s simply <i>no</i> distance to France from my
-bedroom window,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>The longing in their frowning countenances changed
-to determination.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>It was quite easy to push and pull the boat down
-to the water. Soon they were seated, their hearts
-triumphant and their clothes soaked with sea water,
-in the little boat and were being carried rapidly out
-to sea. At first William tried to ply the oars but a
-large wave swept them both away.</p>
-
-<p>“Doesn’t really matter,” said William cheerfully,
-“the tide’s takin’ us across to France all right without
-botherin’ with oars.”</p>
-
-<p>For a time they lay back enjoying the motion and
-trailing fingers in the water.</p>
-
-<p>“’S almost as good as bein’ pirates, isn’t it?” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of half an hour Ginger said with a dark
-frown:</p>
-
-<p>“Seems to <i>me</i> we aren’t goin’ in the right d’rection
-for France. Seems to <i>me</i>, Cap’n, we’ve been swep’
-out of our course. I can’t see no land anywhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we mus’ be goin’ <i>somewhere</i>,” said William
-the optimist, “an’ wherever it is it’ll be <i>int’resting</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“It <i>mightn’t</i> be,” said Ginger, who was ceasing to
-enjoy the motion and was taking a gloomy view of life.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m gettin’ jolly hungry,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m <i>not</i>,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>William looked at him with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re lookin’ a bit pale,” he said with over-cheerful
-sympathy, “p’raps it was the crab.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</span></p>
-
-<p>Ginger made no answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Or it might have been the liquorice <i>or</i> the
-lemonade,” said William with interest.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you’d shut up talking about them,”
-snapped Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I feel almost <i>dyin’</i> of hunger,” said William.
-“In books they draw lots and then one kills the other
-an’ eats him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wun’t mind anyone killin’ an’ eatin’ me,” said
-Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve nothin’ to kill you with, anyway, so it’s no
-good talkin’ about it,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Seems to me,” said Ginger raising his head from
-his gloomy contemplation of the waves, “that we
-keep changin’ the d’rection we’re goin’ in. We’ll
-like as not end at America or China or somewhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ our folks’ll think we’re drowned.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll prob’ly find gold mines in China or somewhere
-an’ make our fortunes.”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ we’ll come home changed an’ old an’ they
-won’t know us.”</p>
-
-<p>Their spirits rose.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly William called excitedly, “I see land!
-Jus’ <i>look!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>They were certainly rapidly nearing land.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank goodness,” murmured Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“An uninhabited island I ’spect,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Or an island inhabited by wild savages,” said
-Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>The boat was pushed gently on to land by the
-incoming tide.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger and William disembarked.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care where we are,” said Ginger firmly,
-“but I’m goin’to stop here all my life. I’m not goin’
-in that ole boat again.”</p>
-
-<p>A faint colour had returned to his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>can’t</i> stop on an uninhabited island all your<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</span>
-life,” said William aggressively, “you’ll <i>have</i> to go
-away. You needn’t go an’ eat dead crabs jus’ before
-you start, but you can’t live on an uninhabited island
-all your life.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do shut up talkin’ about dead crabs,” said
-Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s a hole in a hedge,” called William. “Let’s
-creep through and see what there is the other side.
-Creep, mind, an’ don’ breathe. It’ll prob’ly be wild
-savages or cannibals or something.”</p>
-
-<p>They crept through the hedge.</p>
-
-<p>There in a wide green space some lightly-clad beings
-were dancing backwards and forwards. One in the
-front called out unintelligible commands in a shrill
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>William and Ginger crept behind a tree.</p>
-
-<p>“Savages!” said William in a hoarse whisper.
-“Cannibals!”</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” said Ginger. “What’ll we do?”</p>
-
-<p>The white-clad figures began to leap into the air.</p>
-
-<p>“Charge ’em,” said William, his freckled face set
-in a determined frown. “Charge ’em and put ’em
-to flight utterin’ wild yells to scare ’em&mdash;before
-they’ve time to know we’re here.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Ginger, “come on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ready?” said William through set lips. “Steady ...
-Go!”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The New School of Greek Dancing was a few miles
-down the coast from where William and Ginger had
-originally set forth in the boat. The second afternoon
-open-air class was in progress. Weedy males
-and æsthetic-looking females dressed in abbreviated
-tunics with sandals on their feet and fillets round their
-hair, mostly wearing horn spectacles, ran and sprang
-and leapt and gambolled and struck angular attitudes
-at the shrill command of the instructress and the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</span>
-somewhat unmusical efforts of the (very) amateur
-flute player.</p>
-
-<p>“Now run ... <i>so</i> ... hands extended ... <i>so</i>
-... left leg up ... <i>so</i> ... head looking over
-shoulder ... <i>so</i> ... no, try not to overbalance ...
-that piece again ... never mind the music ...
-just do as I say ... <i>so</i> ... <i>Ow</i> ... <span class="large"><i>OW!</i></span>”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Go!</i>”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig27.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">WILLIAM AND GINGER RUSHED OUT FROM BEHIND A TREE<br />
-AND CHARGED WILDLY INTO THE CROWD OF ÆSTHETIC<br />
-AND BONY REVELLERS.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Two tornadoes rushed out from behind a tree
-and charged wildly into the crowd of æsthetic and bony
-revellers. With heads and arms and legs they fought
-and charged and kicked and pushed and bit. They
-might have been a dozen instead of two. A crowd of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</span>
-thin, lightly-clad females ran screaming indoors.
-One young man nimbly climbed a tree and another
-lay prone in a rose bush.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve put ’em to flight,” said William breathlessly,
-pausing for a moment from his labours.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Ginger dispiritedly, “an’ what’ll we
-do <i>next?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, jus’ keep ’em at bay an’ live on their food,”
-said William vaguely, “an’ p’raps they’ll soon begin
-to worship us as gods.”</p>
-
-<p>But William was unduly optimistic. The flute
-player had secured some rope from an outhouse and,
-accompanied by some other youths, he was already
-creeping up behind William. In a few moments’ time
-William and Ginger found themselves bound to neighbouring
-trees. They struggled wildly. They looked
-a strange couple. The struggle had left them tieless
-and collarless. Their hair stood on end. Their faces
-were stained with liquorice juice.</p>
-
-<p>“They’ll eat us for supper,” said William to Ginger.
-“Sure’s Fate they’ll eat us for supper. They’re
-prob’ly boilin’ the water to cook us in now. Go on,
-try’n <i>bite</i> through your rope.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have tried,” said Ginger wearily, “it’s nearly
-pulled all my teeth out.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I’d told ’em to give Jumble to Henry,”
-said William sadly, “they’ll prob’ly keep him to
-themselves or sell him.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’ll be <i>sorry</i> they took my trumpet off me
-when they hear I’m eaten by savages,” said Ginger
-with a certain satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>The Greek dancers were drawing near by degrees
-from their hiding places.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Mad!</i>” they were saying. “One of them <i>bit</i> me
-and he’s probably got hydrophobia. I’m going to
-call on my doctor.” “He simply <i>charged</i> me in the
-stomach. I think it’s given me appendicitis.” “<i>Kicked</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</span>
-my leg. I can <i>see</i> the bruise.” “<i>Quite</i> spoilt the
-atmosphere.”</p>
-
-<p>“William,” said Ginger faintly, “isn’t it funny
-they talk English? Wun’t you expect them to talk
-some savage language?”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig28.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">MR. BROWN PAID VAST SUMS OF HUSH MONEY TO THE POLICE<br />
-FORCE AND BROUGHT IN HIS SON BY THE SCRUFF OF THE<br />
-NECK.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“I speck they’ve learnt it off folks they’ve eaten.”</p>
-
-<p>From the open window of the house behind the
-trees came the loud tones of a lady who was evidently
-engaged in speaking through a telephone.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, <i>wild</i> ... absolutely <i>mad</i> ... <i>must</i> have
-escaped from the asylum ... no one escaped from
-the asylum? ... then they must have been <i>going</i>
-to the asylum and escaped on the <i>way</i> ... well,
-if they aren’t <i>lunatics</i> they’re <i>criminals</i>. Please
-send a large <i>force</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>It was when two stalwart and quite obviously
-English policemen appeared that William’s bewilderment
-finally took from him the power of speech.</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” was all he said.</p>
-
-<p>He was quite silent all the way home. He coldly
-repulsed all the policemen’s friendly overtures.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown screamed when from the lounge window
-she saw her son and his friend approaching with their
-escort. It was Mr. Brown who went boldly out to
-meet them, paid vast sums of hush money to the police
-force and brought in his son by the scruff of his neck.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William almost tearfully, at the end
-of a long and painful course of home truths, “’f they’d
-reely <i>been</i> cannibals and eaten me you’d p’raps have
-been <i>sorry</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Brown, whose peace had been disturbed and
-reputation publicly laid low by William’s escort and
-appearance, looked at him.</p>
-
-<p>“You flatter yourself, my son,” he said with
-bitterness.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“What’ll we do to-day?” said Ginger the next
-morning.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s start with watchin’ the Punch and Judy,”
-said William.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not goin’ in no boats,” said Ginger firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William cheerfully, “but if
-we find another dead crab I’ve thought of a better
-way of cooking it.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM SPOILS THE PARTY</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">The Botts</span> were going to give a fancy dress dance
-at the Hall on New Year’s Eve, and William and all
-his family had been invited. The inviting of William,
-of course, was the initial mistake, and if only the
-Botts had had the ordinary horse sense (it was Robert,
-who said this) not to invite William the thing might
-have been a success. It wasn’t as if they didn’t
-know William. If they hadn’t known William,
-Robert said, one might have been sorry for them,
-but knowing William and deliberately inviting him
-to a fancy dress dance&mdash;well, they jolly well deserved
-all they got.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand William’s own family didn’t
-... and it was jolly hard lines on them (again I quote
-Robert).... Knowing that they had William all
-day and every day at home, anyone would think
-they’d have had the decency to invite them out without
-him.... I mean whatever you said or whatever
-you did, you couldn’t prevent it ... he spoilt your
-life wherever he went.</p>
-
-<p>But the Botts (of Botts’ Famous Digestive Sauce)
-had a ballroom that held 200 guests and they wanted
-to fill it. Moreover the Botts had a cherished daughter
-of tender years named Violet Elizabeth, and Violet
-Elizabeth with her most engaging lisp and that hint
-of tears that was her most potent weapon, had said
-that she wanted her friendth to be invited too an’
-she’d thcream an’ thcream an’ <i>thcream</i> till she was
-<i>thick</i> if they din’t invite her friendth to the party
-too....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</span></p>
-
-<p>“All right, pet,” had said Mr. Bott soothingly,
-“After all we may as well give a real slap-up show
-while we’re about it and swell out the whole place&mdash;kids
-an’ all.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bott was “self-made” and considering all
-things had made quite a decent job of himself, but
-his manners had not “the repose that stamps the caste
-of Vere de Vere.” Violet Elizabeth on the other hand
-had been brought up from infancy in the lap of luxury
-and refinement provided by the successful advertising
-of Botts’ Famous Digestive Sauce.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The delight with which Robert and Ethel (William’s
-elder brother and sister) received the invitation to the
-fancy dress dance was, as I have said, considerably
-tempered by the fact of William’s inclusion in the
-invitation. And William, with his natural perversity,
-was eager to go.</p>
-
-<p>“Any show we <i>want</i> him to go to,” said Robert
-bitterly, “he raises Cain about, but when a thing like
-this comes along&mdash;a thing that he’ll completely spoil
-for us if he comes like he always does&mdash;&mdash;” he spread
-out his arm with the eloquent gesture of one tried
-almost beyond endurance, and left the sentence
-unfinished.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, let’s accept for ourselves, and say that
-William can’t go because he’s got a previous engagement,”
-suggested Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“But I haven’t,” said William indignantly, “I
-haven’t got anything at all wrong with me. I’m quite
-well. An’ I <i>want</i> to go. I don’ see why everyone
-else should go but me. Besides,” using an argument
-that he knew would appeal to them, “you’ll all be
-there an’ you’ll be able to see I’m not doing anything
-wrong, but if I was alone at home you wouldn’t know
-what I was doing. Not,” he added hastily, “that I
-<i>want</i> to do anything wrong. All I want to do is to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</span>
-make others happy. An’ I’ll have a better chance of
-doin’ that at a party than if I was all alone at home.”</p>
-
-<p>These virtuous sentiments did but increase the
-suspicious distrust of his family. The general feeling
-was that far worse things happened when William
-was out to be good than when he was frankly out to
-be bad.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I think William must go,” said Mrs. Brown
-in her placid voice. “It will be so interesting for
-him and I’m sure he’ll be good.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown’s rather pathetic faith in William’s
-latent powers of goodness was unshared by any
-other of his family.</p>
-
-<p>“Anyway,” she went on hastily, seeing only
-incredulity on the faces around her, “the thing to
-do now is to decide what we’re all going as.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’ll go as a lion,” said William. “I should
-think you could buy a lion skin quite cheap.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, <i>quite!</i>” said Robert sarcastically. “Why
-not shoot one while you’re about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, an’ I will,” said William, “’f you’ll show me
-one. I bet my bow and arrow could kill a few lions.”</p>
-
-<p>“No William, darling,” interposed Mrs. Brown
-again quickly, “I think you’d find a lion skin too
-hot for a crowded room.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I wun’t go into the room,” said William,
-“I want to crawl about the garden in it roarin’ an’
-springin’ out at folks&mdash;scarin’ ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you just said you wanted to go to make
-people <i>happy</i>,” said Robert sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well that’d make ’em happy,” said William
-unabashed, “it’d be <i>fun</i> for ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Not</i> a lion, darling,” said his mother firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well a brigand then,” suggested William, “a
-brigand with knives all over me.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>No</i>, William.... I believe Aunt Emma has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</span>
-a fancy dress suit of Little Lord Fauntleroy that
-Cousin Jimmie once wore. I expect she’d lend it,
-but I’m not sure whether it wouldn’t be too small.”</p>
-
-<p>Wild shouts greeted this suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” William said offended, “I don’ know
-who he was but I don’ know why you should think
-me bein’ him so funny.”</p>
-
-<p>The Little Lord Fauntleroy suit proved too small
-much to the relief of William’s family, but another
-cousin was found to have a Page’s costume which
-just fitted William. But it certainly did not suit him.
-As Mrs. Brown put it, “I don’t know quite what’s
-wrong with the costume but somehow it looks so much
-more attractive off than on.”</p>
-
-<p>Robert was to go as Henry V and Ethel as Night.</p>
-
-<p>William to his delight found that all the members
-of his immediate circle of friends (known to themselves
-as the Outlaws) had been invited to the fancy dress
-dance. All had wished to go as animals or brigands
-or pirates, but family opposition and the offer of the
-loan of costumes from other branches of their families
-had been too strong in every case. Ginger was to
-be an Ace of Clubs, Henry a Gondolier (“dunno
-what it is,” remarked Henry despondently, “but you
-bet it’s nothing exciting or they wouldn’t have let
-me be it”). Douglas was to be a Goat Herd (“It’s
-an ole Little Boy Blue set-out,” he explained mournfully,
-“but I said I wouldn’t go if they didn’t call
-it something else. Not but what everyone’ll <i>know</i>,”
-he ended gloomily).</p>
-
-<p>“An’ we could’ve been brigands s’easy, s’easy,”
-said Ginger indignantly. “Why, you only want a
-shirt an’ a pair of trousers an’ a coloured handkerchief
-round your head an’ a scarf thing round your
-waist with a few knives an’ choppers an’ things on
-it.... No trouble at all for them, an’ they jus’
-won’t let us&mdash;jus’ cause we want to.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</span></p>
-
-<p>There was a short silence. Then William spoke.
-“Well, <i>let’s</i>,” he said, “let’s get Brigands things an’
-change into ’em when we’ve got there. They’ll never
-know. They’ll never notice. We’ll hide ’em in the old
-summer house by the lake an’ go an’ change there,
-an’&mdash;an’ we won’t wear their rotten ole Boy Blues
-an’ Gondowhatevritis. We’ll be Brigands.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll be Brigands,” agreed the Outlaws joyfully.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Botts were having a large house party for the
-occasion.</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Merton is going to be there,” said Mrs.
-Brown to her husband, looking up from her usual
-occupation of darning socks, as he entered the room.
-“Just fancy! He’s in the Cabinet! Mr. Bott’s
-got to know his son in business and he’s coming down
-for it and going to stay the night.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>That</i> fellow!” snorted Mr. Brown, “he ought to
-be shot.” Mr. Brown’s political views were always very
-decided and very violent. “He’s ruining the country.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is he, dear?” said Mrs. Brown in her usual
-placid voice. “But I’m sure he’ll look awfully nice as
-a Toreador. She says he’s going as a Toreador.”</p>
-
-<p>“Toreador!” snorted Mr. Brown, “very appropriate
-too. He <i>is</i> a Toreador!&mdash;and we’re the&mdash;bull.
-I tell you that man’s policy is bringing the country
-to rack and ruin. When you’re dying of starvation
-you can think of the fellow Toreadoring&mdash;Toreador
-indeed! I wonder decent people have him in their
-houses. Toreador indeed. I tell you he’s bleeding
-the country to death. He ought to be hung for
-murder. That man’s policy, I tell you, is wicked&mdash;<i>criminal</i>.
-Leave him alone and in ten years time
-he’ll have wiped out half the population of England
-by slow starvation. He’s killing trade. He’s
-<i>ruining</i> the country.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, dear,” murmured Mrs. Brown, “I’m sure<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</span>
-you’re right.... I think these blue socks of yours
-are almost done, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Ruining</i> it!” snorted Mr. Brown, going out of
-the room and slamming the door.</p>
-
-<p>William looked up from the table where he was
-engaged theoretically in doing his homework.
-Practically he was engaged in sticking pins into the
-lid of his pencil case.</p>
-
-<p>“Why’s he not in prison if he’s like that?” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>“Who, darling?” said Mrs. Brown, “your father?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, the man he was talking about. And
-what’s a Toreador?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh ... a man who fights bulls.”</p>
-
-<p>William’s spirits rose.</p>
-
-<p>“Will there be bulls there?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope not, dear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I go as a bull? It seems silly to have a
-Tor&mdash;what you said, without a bull. I could easy
-get a bull skin. I ’spect the butcher’d give me one.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“No dear, most certainly not. Now do get on
-with your homework.”</p>
-
-<p>William, having fixed all his pins except one into
-the lid, now took the last pin and began to
-twang them with it. They made different noises
-according as they were twanged near the head or
-near the point. Mrs. Brown looked up, then bent
-her head again over her darning ... what funny
-things they taught children nowadays, she thought.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The day of the dance drew nearer. Robert was
-still feeling sore at the prospect of William’s presence.
-He relieved his feelings by jeering at William’s costume.
-William himself, as it happened, was not quite happy
-about the costume. It was a long stretch from the
-animal skin and Brigand’s apparel of his fancy to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</span>
-this pale blue sateen of reality. When he heard
-a visitor, to whom Mrs. Brown showed it, say that it
-was “picturesque” his distrust of it grew deeper.</p>
-
-<p>Robert was never tired of alluding to it. “Won’t
-William look sweet?” he would say, and “Don’t
-frown like that, William. That won’t go with the
-little Prince Charming costume at all.”</p>
-
-<p>William accepted these taunts with outward
-indifference, but no one insulted William with
-impunity. Robert might have taken warning from
-past experiences....</p>
-
-<p>When not engaged in tempting the Fates by teasing
-William, Robert was engaged in trying to win the
-affection of a female epitome of all the virtues and
-graces who had come to stay with the Crewes for the
-dance. This celestial creature was called Glory
-Tompkins. Robert called her Gloire as being more
-romantic. At least he spelt it Gloire but pronounced
-it Glor. Through Robert’s life there passed a never-ending
-procession of young females endowed with
-every beauty of form and soul. To each one in turn
-he sincerely vowed eternal fidelity. Each one was
-told in hoarse accents how from now onwards his
-whole life would be dedicated to making himself
-more worthy of her. Then after a week or two
-her startling perfection would seem less startling,
-and someone yet more perfect would dawn upon
-the horizon, shattering poor Robert’s susceptible
-soul yet again. Fortunately the fidelity of these
-youthful radiant beings was about on a par with
-Robert’s own.... Anyway Glory was the latest,
-and Robert called on the Crewes every evening to tell
-Glory with his eyes (the expression that he fondly
-imagined to express lifelong passion as a matter of
-fact was suggestive chiefly of acute indigestion) or
-with his lips how empty and worthless his life had
-been till he met her....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</span></p>
-
-<p>William had his eye on the affair. He generally
-followed Robert’s love affairs with interest, though
-it was difficult to keep pace with them. A handle
-against Robert was useful and more than once Robert’s
-love affairs had afforded useful handles. Robert’s
-physical size and strength made William wary in his
-choice of weapons, but it was generally William who
-scored....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>On the day before the dance Robert had written a
-note to Miss Tompkins.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Beloved Gloire</span> (Robert preferred writing Gloire
-to saying it because he had a vague suspicion that
-he didn’t pronounce it quite right).</p>
-
-<p>“You will know with what deep feelings
-I am looking forward to to-morrow. Will you have
-the 1st and 3rd and 4th and 7th and 8th with me.
-The 4th is the Blues you know that we have been
-practising. If it is fine and the moon is out shall we
-sit out the 1st in the rose garden on the seat by the
-sundial? It will be my first meeting with you for
-two days and I do not want it profaned by other
-people, who know and care nothing of our deep
-feeling for each other, all about us. When the music
-starts will you be there, and just for the few sacred
-moments we will tell each other all that is in our
-souls. Then we will be gay for the rest of the evening,
-but the memory of those few sacred minutes of the
-first dance in the rose garden, just you and me and the
-moon and the roses, will be with us in our souls all
-the evening.</p>
-
-<p class="r">“Your knight,<br />
-
-“<span class="smcap rm">Robert.”</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>He was going to take it himself though he knew
-that his idol had gone away for the day. However a
-friend hailed him just as he was setting out, so he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</span>
-put the note on the hatstand and went out to join
-his friend, meaning to take the note later.</p>
-
-<p>He met William just coming in.</p>
-
-<p>“Hello, little page&mdash;&mdash;” he said in mock affection.</p>
-
-<p>William looked at him, his brows drawn into a
-frown, his most sphinx-like expression upon his
-freckled face. William’s stubbly hair as usual stood
-up around his face like a halo.... William was
-not beautiful.</p>
-
-<p>Robert, whistling gaily, went down the steps to
-join his friend at the gate.</p>
-
-<p>William took up the note, read the address, and
-went into the drawing-room where Mrs. Brown was,
-as usual, darning socks.</p>
-
-<p>“Sh’ I take this note for Robert?” he said,
-assuming his earnestly virtuous expression. Mrs.
-Brown was touched.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, dear,” she said, “how thoughtful of you.”</p>
-
-<p>An hour later Robert returned. “I say,” he
-said, “where’s that note? I left a note here. Has
-it been taken round?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, dear,” said Mrs. Brown absently.</p>
-
-<p>At that moment William was sitting on a gate far
-from the main road reading the note. On his face
-was a smile of pure bliss. There was a look of
-purpose in his eye.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The evening arrived. William as a Page, Ginger
-as Ace of Clubs, Douglas as a Goat Herd, Henry as a
-Gondolier, stood in a sheepish group and were gazed
-at proudly by their fond mothers. They looked far
-from happy, but the thought of the Brigands’ clothes
-concealed in the summer house comforted them.
-Robert as Henry V was having a good deal of trouble with
-his costume. He had closed the vizor of his helmet and
-it refused to open. Several of his friends were trying
-to force it. Muffled groans came from within.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig29.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“JUST TO THINK, DARLING,” MURMURED ROBERT, “THAT<br />
-LAST WEEK I DIDN’T KNOW YOU. YOU’VE GIVEN A NEW<br />
-MEANING TO MY LIFE.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</span></p>
-
-<p>Violet Elizabeth was dressed as a Star. She was
-leaping up and down and squeaking, “Look at me.
-I’m a thtar!” She shed stars at every leap, and an
-attendant nurse armed with needle and cotton sewed
-them on again.</p>
-
-<p>Pierrots, peasant girls, harlequins, kings, queens,
-gypsies and representatives of every nationality
-filled the room. It was noticed, with no particular
-interest on anyone’s part, that William the Page
-was no longer the centre of the sheepish group of
-fancy-dressed Outlaws. William the Page had crept
-into the ladies’ dressing-room, and in the temporary
-absence of the attendant (who was engaged in carrying
-on an impromptu flirtation with a good-looking
-chauffeur in the drive) he purloined a lady’s black
-velvet evening cloak and a filmy scarf. Fortunately
-the cloak had a hood....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Robert, helmetless and rather purple in the face
-as the result of his prolonged sojourn behind his
-vizor (from which he had finally been freed by a tin
-opener borrowed from the kitchen), came to the rose
-garden. Upon the seat that was the appointed
-trysting place a petite figure was awaiting him
-shrouded in a cloak.</p>
-
-<p>“Glory!” breathed Robert softly.</p>
-
-<p>The figure seemed to sway towards him, though its
-face was still completely hidden by its scarf and hood.</p>
-
-<p>Robert slipped his strong arm round it, and it
-nestled on his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Just to think,” murmured Robert, “that this time
-last week I didn’t know you. You’ve given an
-entirely new meaning to my life&mdash;I feel that everything
-will be different now. I shall give up all my life to
-trying to be more worthy of you&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The figure gave a sudden snort and Robert started.</p>
-
-<p>“Glor! Are you ill?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</span></p>
-
-<p>The figure hastily emitted a deep groan.</p>
-
-<p>Robert sprang up.</p>
-
-<p>“Glor,” he cried in distress. “I’ll get you some
-water. I’ll call a doctor. I’ll&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>He fled into the house, where he got a glass of water
-and actually found a doctor&mdash;a very unhappy doctor
-in a hired Italian costume that was too small for him.
-When he found the seat empty he turned upon Robert
-indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“But she <i>was</i> here,” said the bewildered Robert.
-“I left her here in the most awful agony. My God,
-if she’s dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“If she’s dead,” said the doctor coldly, “I’m
-afraid I can’t do anything. I’m sorry to seem
-unsympathetic, but if you knew the pain it causes
-me to walk in these clothes you’d understand my
-saying that I’ll let the whole world die in awful agony
-before I come out here again on your wild goose chase
-after dying females.”</p>
-
-<p>Robert was hunting distractedly under all the bushes
-around the seat....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws had changed their clothes. They
-stood arrayed as Brigands in all the glory of coloured
-scarves and handkerchiefs and murderous-looking
-weapons. Upon the floor lay the limp outer coating
-of the Page, the Ace of Clubs, the Gondolier and the
-Goat Herd. They leapt with joy and brandished
-kitchen choppers and bread knives and trowels.</p>
-
-<p>“Now what’re we going to <i>do?</i>” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Everyone else is dancing,” suggested Douglas
-mildly.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Dancing!</i>” repeated William scornfully. “D’you
-think we’ve put these things on to <i>dance?</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what’re we goin’ to do?” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s one thing we mus’ do first of all,” said
-William. He spoke in his leader’s manner and his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</span>
-freckled face was stern. “There’s a man here dressed
-as a tor&mdash;as a bull killer.”</p>
-
-<p>“A Toreador,” said Douglas with an air of superior
-knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>William looked at him crushingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well&mdash;din’ I say that?” he said, then turning
-to the others. “Well, this man, this torrydoor
-man’s been starvin’ folks an’ killin’ ’em. I heard my
-father say so. Well, we’ve gotter <i>do</i> something&mdash;we
-may never get a chance of gettin’ him again.
-He’s a starver an’ a murderer, I heard my father say
-so, an’ we’ve gotter <i>do</i> something to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>How?</i>” said the Brigands.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you listen to me,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>The Brigands gathered round.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William crept round the outside of the ballroom.
-Through the open window came the sound of the
-band, and looking in, William could see couples of
-gaily dancing youths and maidens in fantastic dresses.
-Near one open window Henry V stood with a small
-and dainty Columbine.</p>
-
-<p>“But it <i>is</i> my dance with you, Glor,” Henry V
-was saying hoarsely. “I wrote to you and asked
-you, and oh, I’m so glad that you’re better. I’ve
-been through hours of agony thinking you were
-dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re absolutely mad,” Glory replied
-impatiently. “I’ve no idea what you’re talking
-about. You never wrote and you’ve never asked
-me for a dance. I’ve never seen you all evening till
-this minute, except in the distance with everyone
-trying to pull your head off. You shouldn’t come in
-a costume like that if you don’t know how to open
-and shut it, and now you suddenly come and begin
-to talk nonsense about me being dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“Glor&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I wish you’d <i>stop</i> calling me by that silly name.”</p>
-
-<p>“But&mdash;Glor&mdash;Glory&mdash;you <i>must</i> have got my note.
-You were in the rose garden. You let me put my
-arm round you. I’ve been treasuring the memory
-all evening when I wasn’t racked with agony at the
-thought of you being ill&mdash;or dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“I <i>never</i> met you in the rose garden. You’re <i>mad!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not. You did. Oh, Glor&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Stop</i> calling me that. It sounds like a patent
-medicine or a new kind of metal polish ... and as
-you don’t care for me enough to get a dance in decent
-time, and as you go mooning about the garden with
-other girls&mdash;girls who seem to go dying all over the
-place from your account&mdash;and pretend you think
-they’re me&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t pretend. I thought it was. It must
-have been. Oh, Glor&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Stop</i> saying that! I’ve simply finished with
-you. Well, if you don’t care about me enough to
-know who <i>is</i> me and&mdash;thank you, when I want to die
-I’ll do it at home and not in a beastly old rose garden&mdash;so
-<i>there</i>&mdash;And I’ve <i>finished</i> with you, Robert Brown,&mdash;so
-<i>there</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Columbine flounced off and Henry V, pale and
-distraught, pursued her with a ghostly, “Oh,
-Glor&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The Brigand passed on, a faint smile on his face.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Toreador had found a quiet corner in the empty
-smoking-room and was relaxing his weary limbs in an
-arm chair. He had indulged in a quiet smoke and
-was now indulging in a quiet doze.... He did not
-like dancing. He did not like wearing fancy dress.
-He did not like the Botts. He did not like the noise
-of the band. He did not like anything....</p>
-
-<p>He opened his eyes with a start, conscious of an
-alien presence. By his side he saw a small and very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</span>
-villainous-looking Brigand with a stern freckled face,
-a row of gardening tools and a carving knife round his
-waist and a red handkerchief tied round his head.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a Russian wants to see you,” said the
-Brigand in a dramatic whisper, “he’s waiting for you
-in the coach-house. He’s gotter message for you
-from the Russians&mdash;private.”</p>
-
-<p>The Toreador sat up and rubbed his eyes. The
-Brigand was still there.</p>
-
-<p>“Please say it again,” said the Toreador.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a Russian wants to see you. He’s waiting
-for you in the coach-house. He’s gotter message
-for you from the Russians,” repeated the Brigand.</p>
-
-<p>“Where did you say he was?” said the Toreador.</p>
-
-<p>“In the coach-house.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what do you say he’s got?”</p>
-
-<p>“A message from the Russians.”</p>
-
-<p>“What Russians?”</p>
-
-<p>“All the Russians.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good Lord!” said the Toreador. “Just pinch
-me, will you?”</p>
-
-<p>William obeyed without a flicker of expression
-upon his face.</p>
-
-<p>“Still here,” said the Toreador in a resigned tone
-of voice. “I thought it might be a nightmare.
-Well, there’s no harm in going to see. What’s he like?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh&mdash;just like a Russian,” said William vaguely.
-“Russian clothes an’ Russian face an’&mdash;an’&mdash;Russian
-boots.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did he get here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Walked,” said William calmly. “Walked all the
-way from Russia.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does he speak English?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. Russian.”</p>
-
-<p>“How do you know what he says then?”</p>
-
-<p>“I learn Russian at school,” said William with
-admirable presence of mind.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You’re a linguist,” commented the Toreador.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I’m not,” corrected William, “I’m English
-like you.”</p>
-
-<p>They were on the way to the coach-house.</p>
-
-<p>“I may as well see it through,” said the Toreador.
-“It’s so intriguing. It’s like Alice in Wonderland.
-A Russian brought a message from all the Russians
-and walked all the way from Russia. He must have
-started when he was quite a child. It’s better than
-being bored to death watching idiots making still
-greater idiots of themselves.”</p>
-
-<p>“This is the coach-house,” said the Brigand.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s dark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the Brigand. “He’s right in the
-corner over there. He’s just having a little sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>The Toreador stepped into the coach-house. The
-door was immediately slammed and bolted from outside.
-The Toreador took out his pocket torch and
-looked round the room. It was empty. No Russian
-in Russian boots, etc., with a message from all the
-Russians slept in a corner. The only means of exit
-were the door and a barred window. He went to
-the barred window. Four small stern Brigands stood
-outside.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” said the Toreador. “Look here&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The freckled frowning Brigand who had led him
-there spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“We’re not going to let you out,” he said, “till
-you’ve promised to go away from England and never
-come back.”</p>
-
-<p>“But <i>why?</i>” said the Toreador. “Why should I?
-I know it’s all a dream. But just tell me why I
-should, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>“Because you’re starvin’ an’ killin’ folks,” said
-the Brigand sternly. “You’re ruinin’ the country.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do hope I remember all this when I wake up,”
-said the Toreador, “it’s too priceless. But look here
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</span>&mdash;if you don’t let me out I’ll kick the door down. I’ve
-never starved anyone and I’ve never killed anyone,
-and I&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig30.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“I SAY,” SAID THE TOREADOR, “IF YOU DON’T LET ME<br />
-OUT I’LL KICK THE DOOR DOWN.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“We don’ want to argue,” said William remembering
-a frequent remark of his father’s and trying to
-imitate his tone of voice, “but we’re not goin’ to
-let you out till you promise to go out of England and
-never come back.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig31.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“WE’RE NOT GOING TO LET YOU OUT,” SAID WILLIAM,<br />
-“TILL YOU PROMISE TO GO OUT OF ENGLAND, AND NEVER<br />
-COME BACK.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</span></p>
-
-<p>With that the Brigands turned and went slowly
-back to the house. The sound of a mighty kick against
-the coach-house door followed them into the night.</p>
-
-<p>“What we goin’ to do <i>now</i>,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, jus’ look round a bit,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>Again they went round the outside of the house
-passing by each open window. Just inside one sat
-Henry V with a very demure Spring.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t tell you what a difference it’s made to
-me getting to know you&mdash;&mdash;” Henry V was saying.</p>
-
-<p>By another a group of people stood around a&mdash;Yes&mdash;the
-Brigands rubbed their eyes, but there he
-was&mdash;a Toreador.</p>
-
-<p>A tall angular Helen of Troy well past her first
-youth and quite obviously never having possessed a
-face that could launch a thousand ships, was sitting in
-the window recess with an emaciated Henry VIII.
-“Look,” she was saying, “that Toreador’s Lord
-Merton&mdash;on the Cabinet you know, quite important.”</p>
-
-<p>The Brigands gaped at each other.</p>
-
-<p>A few minutes later Helen of Troy looking down
-saw a small meek boy dressed in a sort of pirate’s
-costume sitting by her.</p>
-
-<p>“Please,” he said politely, “Would you kin’ly
-tell me who that man in a bull fighter’s dress is.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s Lord Merton, dear,” said Helen of Troy kindly.
-“He’s in the Cabinet. Do you know what that means?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then is there&mdash;are there two Toreadors?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. The other’s Mr. Jocelyn. He’s a writer,
-I believe. Nobody important.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve took the wrong one,” said William in a hoarse
-whisper, as he rejoined the Brigands, “There was two.”</p>
-
-<p>“Crumbs!” said the Brigands aghast.</p>
-
-<p>“What we goin’ to do <i>now</i>?” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>William was not one to relinquish a task half
-done. “We’ll have to put this one in an’ let the
-other out,” he said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</span></p>
-
-<p>A few minutes later the Toreador came out on to
-the lawn smoking a cigar.</p>
-
-<p>“If you please,” said a miniature Brigand, who
-seemed to rise up from the ground at his feet, “Some
-one wants to see you special. He says he’s a German
-with a message quite private. He doesn’t want
-anyone else to know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ha!” snorted the Toreador throwing away his
-cigar. “Show me, boy.”</p>
-
-<p>He followed William to the coach-house. The
-other Brigands came behind athrill for whatever
-would happen. William flung open the door of
-the coach-house. The second Toreador entered. The
-first Toreador, who had by this time completely lost
-sight of any humorous aspect the affair might previously
-have had in his eyes, and had worked himself
-up into a blind fury, sprang upon the second Toreador
-as he entered and threw him to the ground. The
-second Toreador pulled the first down with him, and
-they fought fiercely in the dark upon the floor of the
-coach-house, with inarticulate bellows of rage and
-rendings of clothes and hurling of curses....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Aghast, and apprehensive of consequences, the
-Brigands turned and went quickly towards the house
-so as to be as far as possible from the scene of the crime.</p>
-
-<p>But all was changed at the house. There was no
-dancing. The band was mute. In the middle of the
-ballroom was a little heap of clothes, a Page’s costume,
-an Ace of Clubs costume, a Gondolier’s costume, and a
-Goat Herd’s costume, and over it stood four distraught
-mothers. Mrs. Brown was almost hysterical. The
-guests stood in wondering groups around.</p>
-
-<p>“The clothes have been found near the lake,”
-sobbed Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s no trace of them anywhere,” sobbed
-Ginger’s mother.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</span></p>
-
-<p>“The grounds have been searched.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’re nowhere in the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“They must have taken off their clothes to swim.”</p>
-
-<p>“And they’re <i>drowned</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Drowned.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“Now don’t take on,” said Mrs. Bott soothingly to
-the distraught mothers, “don’t take on so, dearies.
-Botty’ll have the lake dragged at once. There’s
-nothing to worry about.”</p>
-
-<p>The mothers went down to the lake followed by
-the whole assembly. The Brigands, feeling that
-the situation had got far beyond their control,
-followed cautiously in the rear keeping well in the
-shadow of the bushes.</p>
-
-<p>It was bright moonlight. All the guests stood
-round the lake gazing with mournful anticipation at
-its calm surface. The mothers clung to each other
-sobbing.</p>
-
-<p>“He was always such a <i>good</i> boy,” sobbed Mrs.
-Brown. “And he looked so <i>sweet</i> in his little blue suit.”</p>
-
-<p>Henry V, with one arm round Spring, was leaning
-over the lake and vaguely fishing in it with a garden
-rake that he had picked up near by. “You didn’t
-know him, of course,” he said to Spring, “but he
-was such a dear little chap and so fond of me.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Toreadors arrived, torn and battered and
-cobwebby and grimy. “Where are they?” they
-panted as they ran. “We’ve been insulted. We’ve
-been outraged. We’ve been <i>shamefully</i> treated. We
-demand those boys. We&mdash;<i>ah!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>They caught sight of four Brigands cowering
-behind the bushes, and sprang at them.</p>
-
-<p>The Brigands fled from them towards the lake.
-Henry V and Spring blocked William’s way. He
-pushed them on to one side, and both fell with a
-splash into the lake.</p>
-
-<p>Then the guests and fate closed round the Brigands.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the scene of retribution that followed Robert
-showed himself unsympathetic, even glorying in
-William’s afflictions.... For a whole week after
-the fancy dress dance Robert repeatedly proclaimed
-that William had spoilt his life again.</p>
-
-<p>“She’ll never look at me now, of course,” he said
-bitterly to his mother. “How could she look at the
-brother of the boy who nearly drowned her. And the
-only girl I’ve ever met who really understood me. And
-her mother says she’s had a cold in her head ever since.”</p>
-
-<p>“What was her name? Glory something, wasn’t
-it, dear?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, Mother,” impatiently, “That’s a girl I knew
-ever so long ago, and who never really understood me.
-This one&mdash;&mdash;” William entered and Robert stopped
-abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>“How do you like those new socks I made for you,
-dear?” said his mother to William. “Are they all
-right?”</p>
-
-<p>William felt that his hour had come. He’d had
-a rotten time but he was going to do just a little
-scoring on his own.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said William slowly, “and just to think
-that this time last week I didn’t know them. They’ve
-given an entirely new meaning to my life. I shall
-give up all my life trying to be more worthy of them.
-I’ve not got them on now because I don’t want them
-profaned by people who don’ know or care about
-them&mdash;&mdash;” Then William gave a little groan and
-flopped into a chair in a fainting position.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>William</i>,” said Mrs. Brown, “What <i>ever’s</i> the
-matter with you?”</p>
-
-<p>But Robert had gone a deep purple and was
-creeping quickly from the room.</p>
-
-<p>William watched him, smoothing back his
-unsmoothable hair.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Glor!” he ejaculated softly.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">THE CAT AND THE MOUSE</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William’s</span> signal failure as a student of science was
-not due to any lack of interest. It was due to excess
-of zeal rather than to lack of zeal. William liked to
-experiment. He liked to experiment with his experiments.
-He liked to put in one or two extra things
-and see what happened. He liked to heat things
-when he was not told to heat them just to see what
-happened. And strange things happened. On
-several occasions William was deprived of his
-eyebrows and front hair. William in this condition
-felt proud of himself. He felt that everyone who
-saw him must imagine him to be the hero of some
-desperate adventure. He cultivated a stern frown
-with his hairless eyebrows. Old Stinks the Science
-Master rather liked William. He kept him in for
-hours in the lab. after school washing up innumerable
-test tubes and cleaning the benches as atonement
-for his unauthorised experiments; but he would
-generally stay there himself, as well, smoking by the
-fire and drawing from William his views on life in
-general. On more than one occasion he gravely
-accepted from William the peace offering of a liquorice
-stick. In spite of William’s really well-meant efforts,
-Old Stinks generally had to re-wash all the test tubes
-and other implements when William had gone.
-Occasionally he invited William to tea and sat
-fascinated at the sight of the vast amount of nourishment
-that William’s frame seemed able to assimilate.
-In return William lent him his original stories and plays
-to read (for William rather fancied himself as an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</span>
-author and had burnt much midnight candle over
-“The Hand of Deth” and “The Tru Story of an
-Indian Brave”). It is not too much to say that
-“Stinks” enjoyed these far more than he did many
-works of better known authors.</p>
-
-<p>But this term, Old Stinks, having foolishly contracted
-Scarlet Fever on the last day of the holidays,
-was absent and his place was taken by Mr. Evelyn
-Courtnay, an elegant young man with spats, very
-sleek hair and a microscopic moustache. From
-the moment he first saw him William felt that Mr.
-Evelyn Courtnay was the sort of man who would
-dislike him intensely. His fears were not ill-founded.
-Mr. Courtnay disliked William’s voice and William’s
-clothes and William’s appearance. He disliked everything
-about William. It is only fair to add that
-this dislike was heartily reciprocated by William.
-William, however, was quite willing to lie low. It
-was Mr. Courtnay who opened the campaign. He
-set William a hundred lines for overbalancing on
-his stool in an attempt to regain a piece of his
-litmus paper that had been taken with felonious intent
-by his vis-à-vis. When William expostulated he
-increased it to three hundred. When William,
-turning back to his desk and encountering a whiff of
-hydrochloric acid gas of his neighbour’s manufacture,
-sneezed, he increased it to four hundred. Then
-came a strange time for William. William had previously
-escaped scot free for most of his crimes. Now
-to his amazement and indignation he found himself
-in the unfamiliar position of a scapegoat. Any
-disturbance in William’s part of the room was visited
-on William and quite occasionally William was not
-guilty of it. Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, having taken a
-dislike to William, gratified his dislike to the full.
-Most people considered that this was very good for
-William, but it was a view that was not shared by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</span>
-William himself. He wrote lines in most of his spare
-time and made a thorough and systematic study of
-Mr. Courtnay. Silently he studied his habits and
-his mode of life and his character. He did this because
-he had a vague idea that Fate might some day deliver
-his enemy into his hand.</p>
-
-<p>William rarely trusted Fate in vain.... He
-gleaned much of his knowledge of the ways of Mr.
-Courtnay from Eliza, Mr. Courtnay’s maid who
-occasionally spent the evening with Ellen, the Brown’s
-housemaid.</p>
-
-<p>“’Is aunt’s comin’ to dine wif ’im to-morrer
-night,” said Eliza one evening.</p>
-
-<p>William, who was whittling sticks in the back
-garden near the open kitchen door, put his penknife in
-his pocket, scowled and began to listen.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it’s goin’ to be a set out an’ no mistake,”
-went on Eliza. “From what I makes out ’e’s expectin’
-of money from ’er an’&mdash;oh my! the fuss&mdash;such a
-set out of a dinner an’ all! I can’t abide a young
-man what fusses to the hextent ’e does. An’ ’e sez
-the larst time she ’ad dinner wif ’im she seed a mouse
-an’ screamed the place down an’ went orf in an ’uff
-so there’s got to be mousetraps down in the dining
-room all night before she comes as well as all the
-hother fuss.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I never!” said Ellen.</p>
-
-<p>William took out his penknife and moved away
-in search of fresh sticks to whittle.</p>
-
-<p>But he moved away thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The next morning William had a Science lesson.
-He was still thoughtful. Mr. Evelyn Courtnay was
-jocular and facetious. In the course of a few jocular
-remarks to the front row he said, “The feline species is
-as abhorrent to me as it was to the great Napoleon.
-Contact with it destroys my nerve entirely.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</span></p>
-
-<p>“What’s he mean?” whispered William to his
-neighbour.</p>
-
-<p>“He means he don’t like cats,” said William’s
-neighbour.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, why don’t he say so then?” said William
-scornfully.</p>
-
-<p>Someone near William dropped a test tube. Mr.
-Courtnay turned his languid eye upon William.</p>
-
-<p>“A hundred lines, Brown,” he said pleasantly.</p>
-
-<p>“It wasn’t me what did it, sir,” said William
-indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Two hundred,” said Mr. Courtnay.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Well!</i>” gasped William in outraged innocence.</p>
-
-<p>“Four hundred,” said Mr. Courtnay.</p>
-
-<p>William was too infuriated to reply. He angrily
-mixed two liquids from the nearest bottles and heated
-them over his bunsen burner to relieve his feelings.
-There was a loud report. William blinked and wiped
-something warm off his face. His hand was bleeding
-from the broken glass.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Courtnay watched from a distance.</p>
-
-<p>“Six hundred,” he said as William took a bit of
-test tube from his hair, “and to be done before
-Saturday, please.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t do ’em,” said Ginger as he walked
-homeward with William.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said William bitterly, “an’ that means
-go to the Head an’ you know what <i>that</i> means.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Douglas ’n Henry ’n me’ll all help,” said
-Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>William’s countenance softened, then became
-sphinx-like.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks,” he said. “I’ve thought of a better
-plan than that but thanks all the same.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<div class="figright">
-<img src="images/fig32.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“CATCH THE MOUSE,”<br />
-SCREAMED MISS FELICIA.<br />
-“GET DOWN AND CATCH<br />
-THAT MOUSE!”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>William walked slowly down the road. One hand
-was in his pocket. The other held a covered basket.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</span>
-He approached with a stern frown and many cautious
-glances around him the house of Mr. Evelyn Courtnay.
-He entered the back gate warily. His entry did not
-suggest the welcome guest
-or even anyone who had
-the right of entry. There
-was something distinctly
-furtive about it. He made
-his way round to the house
-by the wall behind the
-bushes. He peeped in at the
-dining-room window. The
-perspiring Eliza was engaged
-in putting the last touches
-to the dining table. He
-peeped into the drawing-room
-window. There sat
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay in the
-most elegant of elegant dress
-suits, engaged in the process
-of charming his aunt, Miss
-Felicia Courtnay. Miss
-Felicia Courtnay was elderly
-and grim and not very
-susceptible to charm, but her
-nephew was doing his best.
-Through the open window
-William could hear plainly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, I get on splendidly,
-Aunt. I’m so fond of
-children&mdash;devoted to them.
-In some ways, of course,
-teaching is a waste of my
-talents, but on the whole&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>It was here that William
-drew his hand from his pocket
-and noiselessly deposited<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</span>
-something on the floor through the open window. The
-something scuttled along the floor by the skirting
-board. William withdrew into the shadow. Suddenly
-a piercing scream came from within.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a <i>mouse</i>, Evelyn! Help! <i>Help! <span class="large">HELP!</span></i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</span></p>
-
-<p>More screams followed.</p>
-
-<p>William peeped in at the window and enjoyed the
-diverting spectacle of Miss Felicia Courtnay standing
-on a chair holding up her skirts and screaming, and of
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay on his knees with the poker in
-one hand, trying to reach the mouse who had taken
-refuge beneath a very low sofa. It was at that moment
-that William took Terence from the basket and
-deposited him upon the floor. Now Terence, William’s
-cat, though he disliked William intensely, was of a
-sociable disposition. He found himself in a strange
-room with a fire upon the hearth. He liked fires.
-He did not like the basket in which he had just made
-his journey with William. He did not wish to go
-in the basket again. He wished to stay in the room.
-He decided that the best policy was to make up to the
-occupants of the room in the hopes that they would
-allow him to sit on the hearthrug in front of the fire.
-He approached the only occupant he could see. Terence
-may have known that there was a mouse in the room
-or he may not. He was not interested. He was a
-lover of comfort only. He was no mouser.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig33.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">MR. EVELYN COURTNAY SPRANG UP WITH A YELL AND<br />
-LEAPT UPON THE GRAND PIANO. “THE BRUTE TOUCHED<br />
-ME!” HE SHOUTED.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, who was now lying at full
-length on the floor trying to look beneath the low
-sofa, felt suddenly something soft and warm and furry
-and purring rub itself hard against his face. He
-sprang up with a yell and leapt upon the grand piano.</p>
-
-<p>“The brute!” he screamed. “The brute! It
-<i>touched</i> me.”</p>
-
-<p>The episode seemed to have driven him into a state
-closely bordering on lunacy.</p>
-
-<p>William’s cat purred ingratiatingly at the foot of
-the grand piano.</p>
-
-<p>“Catch the mouse!” screamed Miss Felicia
-Courtnay. “Get down and catch the mouse!”</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t while that brute’s in the room,” screamed
-Mr. Evelyn Courtnay from the grand piano. “I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</span>
-can’t&mdash;I tell you. I can’t bear ’em. It <i>touched</i>
-me!”</p>
-
-<p>“You <i>coward!</i> I’m going to faint in a minute.”</p>
-
-<p>“So am I, I tell you. I can’t get down. It’s
-looking at me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never forget this&mdash;<i>never!</i> You <i>brute</i>&mdash;you&mdash;you&mdash;<i>tyrant</i>&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t either. Go away, you nasty beast, go
-<i>away!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>At that moment two things happened. The mouse
-put its little whiskered head out of its retreat to
-reconnoitre and Terence, determined to make friends
-with this new and strange acquaintance, leapt upon
-the grand piano on to the very top of Mr. Evelyn
-Courtnay. Two screams rent the air&mdash;one a fine
-soprano, one a fine tenor.</p>
-
-<p>“I can see it. Oh, this will <i>kill</i> me!”</p>
-
-<p>“Get <i>down</i>, you brute. Get <i>down!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>At this critical moment William entered like a
-<i>deus ex machina</i>. He swooped down upon the mouse
-before it realised what was happening, caught it by
-its tail and dropped it through the open window.
-Then he picked up Terence and did the same with him.
-Miss Felicia Courtnay, tearful and trembling, descended
-from her chair and literally fell upon William’s neck.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh you <i>brave</i> boy!” she sobbed. “You <i>brave</i>
-boy! What <i>should</i> I have done without you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I happened to see you through the window trying
-to catch the mouse,” said William, looking at her
-with an inscrutable expression and wide innocent
-eyes, “an’ I di’n’ want to disturb you by comin’ in
-myself so I just put the cat in an’ when I saw that
-wasn’t no good I jus’ come in myself.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Evelyn Courtnay had descended hastily from
-his grand piano and was smoothing his hair with
-both hands and glaring at William.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank the dear little boy, Evelyn,” said Miss<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</span>
-Felicia giving her nephew a cold glance. “I don’t
-know what I should have done without his protection.
-He practically saved my life.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Evelyn Courtnay glared still more ferociously
-at William and muttered threateningly.</p>
-
-<p>“A little child rushing in where grown men fear
-to tread,” misquoted Miss Felicia sententiously, still
-beaming fondly at William. “He must certainly
-stay to dinner after that.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Evelyn Courtnay, to his fury, had to provide
-William with a large meal to which William did full
-justice, munching in silence except when Miss Felicia’s
-remarks demanded an answer. Miss Felicia ignored her
-nephew and talked with fond and grateful affection
-to William only. It was William who volunteered the
-information that her nephew taught him Science.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope he’s kind to you,” said Miss Felicia.</p>
-
-<p>William gave her a pathetic glance like one who
-wishes to avoid a dark and painful subject.</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I expect he means to be,” he said sadly.</p>
-
-<p>William departed immediately after dinner. He
-seldom risked an anticlimax. He possessed the artistic
-instinct. Mr. Evelyn Courtnay accompanied him
-to the door.</p>
-
-<p>“No need to talk of this, my boy,” said Mr. Courtnay
-with elaborate nonchalance.</p>
-
-<p>William made no answer.</p>
-
-<p>“And no need to do those lines,” said Mr. Courtnay.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” said William. “Good-night.”</p>
-
-<p>He walked briskly down the road. He’d enjoyed
-the evening. Its only drawback was that he could
-never tell anyone about it. For William, with all
-his faults, was a sportsman.</p>
-
-<p>But he’d scored! He’d scored! He’d scored!</p>
-
-<p>And Old Stinks was coming back next week!</p>
-
-<p>Unable to restrain his feelings, William turned
-head over heels in the road.</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM AND UNCLE GEORGE</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was William who bought the horn-rimmed
-spectacles. He bought them for sixpence from a boy
-who had bought them for a shilling from a boy to
-whose dead aunt’s cousin’s grandfather they had
-belonged.</p>
-
-<p>William was intensely proud of them. He wore
-them in school all the morning. They made everything
-look vague and blurred, but he bore that
-inconvenience gladly for the sake of the prestige
-they lent him.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger borrowed them for the afternoon and got all
-his sums wrong because he could not see the figures,
-but that was a trifling matter compared with the joy
-of wearing horn-rimmed spectacles. Douglas bagged
-them for the next day and Henry for the day after
-that. William had many humble requests for the loan
-of them from other boys which he coldly refused.
-The horn-rimmed spectacles were to be the badge of
-superiority of the Outlaws.</p>
-
-<p>On the third day one of the masters who discovered
-that the horn-rimmed spectacles were the common
-property of William and his boon companions and
-were, optically speaking, unnecessary, forbade their
-future appearance in school. The Outlaws then wore
-them in turn on the way to school and between lessons.</p>
-
-<p>“My father,” said Douglas proudly, as he and
-William and Ginger strolled through the village
-together, “’s got a pair of spectacles an’s gotter wear
-’em <i>always</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not like these,” objected William who was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</span>
-wearing the horn-rimmed spectacles. “Not great
-thick ’uns like these.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, anyway,” said Ginger. “I’ve gotter aunt
-what’s got false teeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s nothin’,” said William. “False teeth
-isn’t like spectacles. They look just like ornery
-teeth. You can’t <i>see</i> they’re false teeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, but you can <i>hear</i> ’em,” said Ginger. “They
-tick.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, anyway,” said Douglas, “my cousin knows
-a man what’s gotter false eye. It stays still while
-the other looks about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said William determined not to be outdone,
-“my father knows a man what’s gotter false leg.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I remember once hearin’,” said Ginger
-somewhat vaguely, “’bout a man with all false arms
-an’ legs an’ only his body real.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s nothin’,” said William giving rein to
-his glorious imagination. “I once heard of a man
-with a false body an’ only legs an’ arms reel.”</p>
-
-<p>His companions’ united yell of derision intimated
-to him that he had overstepped the bounds of credulity,
-and adjusting his horn-rimmed spectacles with a
-careless flourish he continued unperturbed, “Or I
-might have dreamed about him. I don’ <i>quite</i> remember
-which.”</p>
-
-<p>“I bet you <i>dreamed</i> about him,” said Ginger
-indignantly. “I bet it isn’t <i>possible</i>. How’d his
-stomach work ’f he hadn’t gotter real one?”</p>
-
-<p>“An’ I bet it <i>is</i> possible,” said William stoutly.
-“It’d work with machinery an’ wheels an’ springs
-an’ things same as a clock works an’ he’d hafter
-wind it up every mornin’.”</p>
-
-<p>The other Outlaws were impressed by William’s
-tone of certainty.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Ginger guardedly, “I don’ say it
-isn’t <i>possible</i>. I only say it isn’t <i>prob’le</i>.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</span></p>
-
-<p>The vast knowledge of the resources of the English
-language displayed by this remark vaguely depressed
-the others, and they dropped the subject hastily.</p>
-
-<p>“I can walk like a man with a false leg,” said
-William, and he began to walk along, swinging one
-stiff leg with a flourish.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I can click my teeth ’s if they was false,”
-said Ginger, and proceeded to bite the air vigorously.</p>
-
-<p>“I bet I can look ’s if I had a glass eye,” said
-Douglas, making valiant if unsuccessful efforts to
-keep one eye still and roll the other.</p>
-
-<p>They walked on in silence, each of them wholly
-and frowningly absorbed in his task, William limping
-stiffly, Ginger clicking valiantly, and Douglas rolling
-his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>A little short-sighted man who met them stopped
-still and stared in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear me!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve gotter false leg,” William condescended to
-explain, “and <i>he</i>,” indicating Douglas, “’s gotter
-glass eye, an’ <i>he’s</i> got false teeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dear me!” gasped the little old man. “How
-very extraordinary!”</p>
-
-<p>They left him staring after them....</p>
-
-<p>Douglas, wildly cross-eyed, set off at the turning
-to his home. He was labouring under the delusion
-that he had at last acquired the knack of keeping one
-eye still while he rolled the other, though William
-and Ginger informed him repeatedly that he was
-mistaken.</p>
-
-<p>“They’re <i>both</i> movin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’re <i>not</i>, I tell you. One’s keepin’ still. I
-can feel it keepin’ still.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we can <i>see</i> it, can’t we? We oughter know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ care what you can <i>see</i>. I know what I
-<i>do</i>, don’ I? It’s <i>my</i> eye an’ I move it an’ <i>I</i> oughter be
-able to tell when I’m <i>not</i> movin’ it.... So <i>there!</i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</span></p>
-
-<p>He rolled both eyes at them fiercely as he
-departed.</p>
-
-<p>William and Ginger went on together, stumping
-and clicking with great determination. Suddenly
-they both stopped.</p>
-
-<p>On the footpath just outside a door that opened
-straight on to the street, stood a bath-chair. In it
-were a rug and a scarf.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s my bath-chair,” said William. “’S tirin’
-walkin’ like this with a false leg all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>He sat down in the chair with such a jerk that
-his horn-rimmed spectacles fell off. Though it was
-somewhat of a relief to see the world clearly, he
-missed the air of distinction that he imagined they
-imparted to him and, picking them up, adjusted them
-carefully on his nose. The sensation of being the
-possessor of both horn-rimmed spectacles and a false
-leg had been a proud and happy one. He wrapped
-the rug around his knees.</p>
-
-<p>“You’d better push me a bit,” he said to Ginger.
-“’S not tirin’ havin’ false teeth. You oughter be
-the one to push.”</p>
-
-<p>But Ginger, unlike William, was not quite lost
-in his rôle.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not our bath-chair. Someone’ll be comin’
-out an’ makin’ a fuss if we start playin’ with it.
-Besides,” with some indignation, “how d’you know
-havin’ false teeth isn’t tirin’? Ever tried ’em?
-An’ let me <i>tell</i> you clickin’ <i>is</i> tirin’. It’s makin’
-my jaws ache somethin’ terrible.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come on!” said William impatiently, “do
-stop talkin’ about your false teeth. Anyway it couldn’t
-rest your <i>jaws</i> ridin’ in a <i>chair</i>, could it? A
-<i>chair</i> couldn’t rest your jaw <i>or</i> your teeth, could
-it? Well, it <i>could</i> rest my false leg an’, anyway,
-we’ll only go a bit an’ whosever it is won’t miss it
-before we bring it back, an’ anyway I don’t suppose<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</span>
-they mind lendin’ it to help a pore ole man with a
-false leg an’ another with false teeth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not much helpin’ <i>me</i> pushin’ <i>you!</i>” said Ginger
-bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“Your false teeth seems to be makin’ you very
-grumpy!” said William severely. “Oh, come on!
-They’ll be comin’ out soon.”</p>
-
-<p>Ginger began to push the bath-chair at first reluctantly,
-but finally warmed to his task. He tore
-along at a break-neck speed. William’s face was
-wreathed in blissful smiles. He held the precious
-horn-rimmed spectacles in place with one hand and
-with the other clutched on to the side of the bath-chair,
-which swayed wildly as Ginger pursued his
-lightning and uneven way. They stopped for breath
-at the end of the street.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re a jolly good pusher!” said William.</p>
-
-<p>Praise from William was rare. Ginger, in spite
-of his breathlessness, looked pleased.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s nothin’,” he said modestly. “I could
-do it ten times as fast as that. I’m a bit tired of false
-teeth though. I’m goin’ to stop clickin’ for a bit.”</p>
-
-<p>William tucked in his rug and adjusted his
-spectacles again.</p>
-
-<p>“Do I look like a pore old man?” he said proudly.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger gave a scornful laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“No, you don’t. You’ve gotter boy’s face.
-You’ve got no lines nor whiskers nor screwedupness
-like an old man.”</p>
-
-<p>William drew his mouth down and screwed up his
-eyes into a hideous contortion.</p>
-
-<p>“Do I now?” he said as clearly as he could through
-his distorted mask of twisted muscles.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger looked at him dispassionately.</p>
-
-<p>“You look like a kinder monkey now,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>William took the long knitted scarf that was at
-the bottom of the bath-chair and wound it round and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</span>
-round his head and face till only his horn-rimmed
-spectacles could be seen.</p>
-
-<p>“Do I now?” he said in a muffled voice.</p>
-
-<p>Ginger stared at him in critical silence for a minute
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, you do now. At least you look’s if you
-might be <i>anything</i> now.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said William in his far-away muffled
-voice. “Pretend I’m an old man. Wheel me back
-now ... <i>slowly</i>, mind! ’cause I’m an old man.”</p>
-
-<p>They began the return journey. Ginger walked
-very slowly, chiefly because it was uphill and he was
-still out of breath. William leant back feebly in
-his chair enjoying the rôle of aged invalid, his horn-rimmed
-spectacles peering out with an air of deep
-wisdom from a waste of woollen muffler.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly a woman who was passing stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“Uncle George!” she said in a tone of welcome
-and surprise.</p>
-
-<p>She was tall and thin and grey-haired and skittish-looking
-and gaily dressed.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“Well, this <i>is</i> a pleasant surprise,” she said.
-“When you didn’t answer our letter we thought you
-really weren’t going to come to see us. We really
-did. And now I find you on your way to our house.
-<i>What</i> a treat for us! I’d have known you anywhere,
-<i>dear</i> Uncle George, even if I hadn’t recognised the
-bath-chair and the muffler that I knitted for you
-on your last birthday. How <i>sweet</i> of you to wear it!
-And you’re looking <i>so</i> well!” She dropped a vague
-kiss upon the woollen muffler and then turned to Ginger.
-“This little boy can go. I can take you on to the
-house.” She slipped a coin into Ginger’s hand.
-“Now run away, little boy! I’ll look after him.”</p>
-
-<p>Ginger, after one bewildered look, fled, and the
-lady began to push William’s chair along briskly.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</span>
-William was so entirely taken aback that he could
-for the moment devise no plan of action, and meekly
-allowed himself to be propelled down the village
-street. With an instinctive desire to conceal his
-identity he had pulled the rug up to his elbows and
-arranged the flowing ends of the all-enveloping scarf to
-cover the front of his coat. Wistfully he watched
-Ginger’s figure which was fast disappearing in the
-distance. Then the tall female bent down and
-shouted into his ear.</p>
-
-<p>“And how <i>are</i> you, dear Uncle George?”</p>
-
-<p>William looked desperately round for some chance
-of escape, but saw none. Feeling that some reply was
-necessary, and not wishing to let his voice betray
-him he growled.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>So</i> glad,” yelled the tall lady into the muffler.
-“<i>So</i> glad. If you <i>think</i> you’re better, you <i>will</i> be better
-you know, as I always used to tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>To his horror, William saw that he was being
-taken in through a large gateway and up a drive. He
-felt as though he had been captured by some terrible
-enemy. Would he ever escape? What would the
-dreadful woman do to him when she found out?
-He couldn’t breathe, and he could hardly see, and he
-didn’t know what was going to happen to him....
-He growled again rather ferociously, and she leant
-down to the presumptive region of his ear and
-shouted.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Much</i> better, dear Uncle George!... <i>Ever</i> so
-much better ... it’s only a question of <i>will</i> power.”</p>
-
-<p>She left him on a small lawn and went through
-an opening in the box hedge. William could hear
-her talking to some people on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s <i>come!</i> Uncle George’s <i>come!</i>” she said in
-a penetrating whisper.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, <i>dear!</i>” said another voice. “He’s <i>so</i> trying!
-What shall we do?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He’s <i>wealthy</i>. Anyway we may as well try to
-placate him a bit.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush! He’ll hear you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, he’s been as deaf as a post for years.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did you meet him, Frederica, darling?”</p>
-
-<p>“I met him <i>quite</i> by accident,” said Frederica
-darling in her shrill and cheerful voice. “He was
-being brought here by a boy.”</p>
-
-<p>“And did you recognise him? It’s ten years
-since you saw him last.”</p>
-
-<p>“I recognised the bath-chair. It’s the one poor,
-dear Aunt Ferdinanda used to have, and the darling
-was wearing that scarf I knitted for him. Oh, but I
-think I’d have recognised the old man anyway. He
-hasn’t changed a bit; though he’s dreadfully muffled
-up. You know he was always so frightened of fresh
-air ... and he’s shrunk a bit, I think ... you
-know, old people do&mdash;and I’m afraid he’s as touchy
-as ever. He was <i>quite</i> huffy on the way here because
-I said that if he’d <i>will</i> to be well he <i>would</i> be well.
-That always annoyed him, but I must be true to my
-principles, mustn’t I?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hadn’t someone better go to him? Won’t it
-annoy him to be left alone?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I don’t know. He’s not sociable, you know&mdash;and
-as deaf as a post and&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you’d better explain to the boys,
-Frederica&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, <i>yes!</i> It’s your great Uncle George, you
-know&mdash;<i>ever</i> so old, and we’ve not seen him for <i>ten</i>
-years, and he’s just come to live here with his <i>male</i>
-attendant, you know&mdash;taken a furnished house, and
-though we asked him to come to see us (he’s most
-<i>eccentric</i>, you know&mdash;simply won’t see <i>anyone</i> at his
-own house) he never even answered and we thought he
-must be still annoyed. I told him the last time I
-saw him, ten years ago, that if only he’d think he could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</span>
-walk, he’d be <i>able</i> to walk, and it annoyed him, but I
-must be true to my principles&mdash;anyway to my surprise
-I found him on his <i>way</i> to our house this afternoon
-and&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>Frederica paused for breath.</p>
-
-<p>“We’d better go to him, dear. He might be feeling
-lonely.”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>William was far from lonely. He was listening
-with mingled interest and apprehension to the conversation
-on the other side of the hedge and revolving
-in his mind the question whether they’d see him if he
-crawled across the lawn to the gate&mdash;or perhaps it
-would be better to make a dash for it, tear off the rug
-and muffler and run for all he was worth to the gate
-and down the road.</p>
-
-<p>He had almost decided to do that when they all
-suddenly appeared through the opening in the hedge.
-William gave a gasp as he saw them. First came
-Frederica&mdash;the tall and agile lady who had captured
-him&mdash;next a very old lady with a Roman nose, and
-expression of grim determination and a pair of
-lorgnettes&mdash;next came a young curate&mdash;next a
-muscular young man in a college blazer, and last a
-little girl.</p>
-
-<p>William knew the little girl.</p>
-
-<p>Her name was Emmeline, and she went to the same
-school as William&mdash;and William detested her. William
-now allowed himself the slight satisfaction of putting
-out his tongue at her beneath his expanse of muffler.</p>
-
-<p>But his heart sank as they surrounded him. They
-all surveyed him with the greatest interest. He
-looked about desperately once more for some way of
-escape, but his opportunity had gone. Like the
-psalmist’s enemies, they closed him in on every side.
-Nervously he pulled up his rug, spread out his muffler
-and crouched yet further down in his bath-chair.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig34.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“YOU REMEMBER MOTHER, DEAR UNCLE GEORGE, DON’T<br />
-YOU?” FREDERICA SCREAMED INTO THE MUFFLER.<br />
-WILLIAM MERELY GROWLED.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“You remember Mother, dear Uncle George, don’t
-you?” screamed Frederica into the muffler.</p>
-
-<p>The dignified dame raised the lorgnettes and held
-out a majestic hand. William merely growled. He
-was beginning to find the growl effective. They all
-hastily took a step back.</p>
-
-<p>“Sulking!” explained Frederica in her penetrating<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</span>
-whisper. “<i>Sulking!</i> Just because I told him on
-the way here that if he <i>willed</i> to be well he <i>would</i>
-be well. It always annoyed him, but I must be true
-to my principles, mustn’t I?&mdash;even if it makes him
-<i>sulk</i>&mdash;even if he cuts me out of his will I must&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig35.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">THEY ALL SURVEYED THE OCCUPANT OF THE BATH-CHAIR<br />
-WITH GREAT INTEREST.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Hush, Frederica! He’ll hear you!”</p>
-
-<p>“No, dear, he’s almost stone deaf.”</p>
-
-<p>She leant down again to his ear.</p>
-
-<p>“Is your <span class="large">DEAFNESS</span> any better, Uncle George?”
-she screamed.</p>
-
-<p>She seemed to regard Uncle George as her own
-special property.</p>
-
-<p>William growled again.</p>
-
-<p>The circle drew another step farther back. The
-old lady looked anxious.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid he’s ill,” she said. “I hope it’s
-nothing infectious! James, I think you’d better
-examine him.”</p>
-
-<p>Frederica drew one of the bashful and unwilling
-young men forward.</p>
-
-<p>“This is your great-nephew, James,” she shouted.
-“<span class="large">DEAR</span> Uncle George. He’s a <span class="large">MEDICAL STUDENT</span>,
-and he’d <span class="large">SO</span> love to talk to you.”</p>
-
-<p>The rest withdrew to the other end of the lawn
-and watched proceedings from a distance. It would
-be difficult to say whether James or William felt the
-more desperate.</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;how are you, Uncle George,” said James
-politely, then, remembering Uncle George’s deafness,
-changed his soft bass to a shrill tenor. “<span class="large">HOW ARE
-YOU?</span>”</p>
-
-<p>William did not answer. He was wondering how
-long it would be before one of them tore off his rug
-and muffler, and horn-rimmed spectacles, and hoping
-that it would not be either of the young men who
-would administer punishment.</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;may I&mdash;er&mdash;feel your pulse?” went on
-James, then remembered and yelled “<span class="large">PULSE</span>.”</p>
-
-<p>William sat on his hands and growled. James
-mopped his brow.</p>
-
-<p>“If I could see your tongue&mdash;er&mdash;<span class="large">TONGUE</span>&mdash;you
-seem to be in pain&mdash;perhaps&mdash;<span class="large">TONGUE</span>&mdash;allow me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</span></p>
-
-<p>He took hold of the muffler about William’s head.
-William gave a sudden shake and a fierce growl
-and James started back as though he had been bitten.
-William was certainly perfecting the growl.</p>
-
-<p>It was gaining a note of savage, almost blood-curdling
-ferocity. James gazed at him apprehensively,
-then, as another growl began to arise from the depth
-of William’s chair, hastily rejoined the others.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve&mdash;er&mdash;examined him,” he said, making a
-gesture as though to loosen his collar, and still gazing
-apprehensively in the direction of Uncle George.
-“I’ve&mdash;er&mdash;examined him. There’s nothing&mdash;er&mdash;fundamentally
-wrong with him. He’s just&mdash;er&mdash;got
-a foul temper, that’s all.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a case for you, then, I think, Jonathan,”
-said the old lady grimly.</p>
-
-<p>Frederica drew the second reluctant youth across
-the lawn.</p>
-
-<p>“This is your great-nephew Jonathan,” she yelled
-into the muffler. “He’s in the <span class="large">CHURCH</span>. He’s
-looking forward <span class="large">SO</span> much to a <span class="large">TALK</span> with you, <span class="large">DEAR</span>
-Uncle George.”</p>
-
-<p>With a sprightly nod at the horn-rimmed spectacles,
-she departed. Jonathan smiled mirthlessly. Then he
-proceeded to shout at William with <i>sotto voce</i> interjections.</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="large">GOOD AFTERNOON, UNCLE GEORGE</span>&mdash;confound
-you&mdash;<span class="large">WE’RE SO GLAD TO SEE YOU</span>&mdash;don’t
-think&mdash;<span class="large">WE EXPECT TO SEE A LOT OF YOU
-NOW</span>&mdash;worse luck&mdash;<span class="large">WE WANT TO BE A HAPPY,
-UNITED FAMILY</span>&mdash;you crusty old mummy&mdash;<span class="large">WE
-HOPE</span>&mdash;er&mdash;<span class="large">WE HOPE</span>&mdash;er&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>He couldn’t think what else to hope, so, purple
-with the effort of shouting, he stopped for breath.
-William, who was enjoying this part, chuckled.
-Jonathan with a sigh of relief departed. He went
-to the others who were watching expectantly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</span></p>
-
-<p>“It’s all right,” he said airily. “The old chap’s
-quite good-tempered now&mdash;my few words seemed to
-hit the spot.”</p>
-
-<p>William watched the group, wondering what was
-going to be done next and who was going to do it.
-He hardly dared move in case his spectacles or muffler
-or rug fell off and revealed him to the cold light of
-day. He felt instinctively that the cold light of day
-would have little pity on him.</p>
-
-<p>Then he saw two maids come round the house to the
-lawn. One carried a table and the other a tray on
-which were some cakes that made William’s mouth
-water. Would he&mdash;Oh, would he have to sit fasting
-and watch these unworthy people eat those glorious
-cakes and, Oh, scrummy!&mdash;there was a bowl of
-fruit salad. Surely&mdash;&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>Oh, surely he deserved a bit of food after all he’d
-been through. His eyes shone eagerly and hungrily
-through his horn-rimmed spectacles&mdash;if he just undid
-his muffler enough to eat a bit of fruit salad&mdash;and
-that chocolate cake&mdash;<i>and</i> the one with green icing&mdash;Oh,
-<i>and</i> that one with nuts on the top&mdash;surely eating
-just a little like that wouldn’t give him away. He
-couldn’t starve for ever.</p>
-
-<p>And what was going to happen to him, anyway&mdash;he
-couldn’t stay all his life in a bath-chair in that garden
-starving and growling at people&mdash;he was jolly sick of
-it already, but he didn’t know what to do&mdash;they’d
-have to find out sometime&mdash;and he didn’t know what
-they’d do when they did find out&mdash;and he was sick
-of the whole thing&mdash;and it was all Ginger’s fault going
-off and leaving him and&mdash; He looked across the lawn
-at them. His gaze through the horn-rimmed spectacles
-was wistful.</p>
-
-<p>To his horror he saw Emmeline being launched
-across the lawn to him by Frederica. Emmeline
-wore a super-sweet expression and carried in her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</span>
-hand a bunch of roses. She laid them on the bath-chair
-with an artless and confiding smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear, Great great Uncle George,” she said in
-her squeaky little voice. “We’re all so glad to see
-you and love you so much an’&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>The elders were watching the tableau with proud
-smiles, and William was summoning his breath for a
-really ferocious growl when suddenly everyone turned
-round. A little old man, purple with anger, had
-appeared running up the drive.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“Where is he?” screamed the little old man in
-fury. “They said he came in here&mdash;my bath-chair&mdash;where
-is he?&mdash;the thief&mdash;the blackguard&mdash;how dare
-he?&mdash;I’ll teach him&mdash;where is he?”</p>
-
-<p>William did not wait to be taught. With admirable
-presence of mind he tore off his wrappings, flung away
-his horn spectacles, and dashed with all his might
-through the opening in the hedge and across the back
-lawn. The little old man caught up a trowel that
-the gardener had left near a bed and flung it after
-William. It caught him neatly on the ankle and
-changed his swift flight to a limp.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear Uncle George,” cooed Frederica to the old
-man. “I don’t know what’s happened, but I <i>always</i>
-said you could walk quite well if you liked.”</p>
-
-<p>With a howl of fury the old man turned on her,
-snatched up the bowl of fruit salad and emptied it
-over her.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the muscular young medical student
-had overtaken William just as he was disappearing
-through the gate and in spite of William’s struggles
-was administering fairly adequate physical correction....
-Occasionally Nemesis did overtake William.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The next day William met Ginger on the way to
-school.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, <i>you’re</i> brave, aren’t you?” he said sarcastically,
-“goin’ off an’ leavin’ me an’ not rescuin’ me
-nor nothin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“I like that,” said Ginger indignantly. “What
-could I do, I’d like to know. You <i>would</i> ride an’ me
-push. ’F you’d bin unselfish an’ pushed an’ me rode
-<i>you’d</i> ’ve got off.”</p>
-
-<p>This was unanswerable, but while William was
-trying to think out an answer Ginger said scornfully:</p>
-
-<p>“You still practisin’ havin’ a false leg? I stopped
-clickin’ ever so long ago. I should think you was
-tired of that old game.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m <i>not!</i>” said William with great self-possession.
-“I’m goin’ to go on sometime yet jus’
-to show I <i>can</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>Just then Emmeline appeared on the road, wearing
-the horn-rimmed spectacles.</p>
-
-<p>“I say, those is ours!” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, <i>no!</i>” said Emmeline with a shrill triumphant
-laugh. “I found them on our front lawn. They’re
-<i>mine</i> now. You ask William Brown <i>how</i> I found them
-on our front lawn. But they’re <i>mine</i> now. So there!”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment William was nonplussed. Then a
-beatific smile overspread his freckled face.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear great great Uncle George!” he mimicked
-in a shrill falsetto. “We’re all so glad to see you&mdash;we
-love you so much.”</p>
-
-<p>Emmeline gave a howl of anger and ran down the
-road holding her horn-rimmed spectacles on as she ran.</p>
-
-<p>“Boo-hoo!” she sobbed. “<i>Nasty</i> William Brown!
-Comin’ into our garden an’ breathin’ our air an’
-runnin’ over our beds an’ makin’ Uncle George cross
-an’ wastin’ our fruit salad an’ bein’ nasty to me&mdash;<i>Nasty</i>
-William Brown&mdash;they’re my spectacles, they is&mdash;Boo-hoo!”</p>
-
-<p>“I say, what happened yesterday?” said Ginger
-when she had disappeared.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I almost forget,” said William evasively.
-“I growled at ’em an’ scared ’em no end an’ I didn’t
-get any tea an’ he threw somethin’ at me&mdash;Oh, a
-lot of things like that&mdash;I almost forget&mdash;But,” with
-sudden interest, “how much did she give you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sixpence,” said Ginger proudly, taking it out
-of his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on!” said William joyfully, giving a cheerful
-little limp forward. “Come on an’ let’s spend it.”</p>
-<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="c less">WILLIAM AND SAINT VALENTINE</p>
-
-
-<p><span class="smcap">William</span> was, as not infrequently, under a cloud.
-His mother had gone to put some socks into one of
-his bedroom drawers and had found that most of the
-drawer space was occupied by insects of various kinds,
-including a large stag beetle, and that along the side
-of the drawer was their larder, consisting of crumby
-bits of bread and a little pool of marmalade.</p>
-
-<p>“But it <i>eats</i> marmalade,” pleaded William. “The
-stag beetle does. I know it does. The marmalade
-gets a little less every day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Because it’s soaking into the wood,” said Mrs.
-Brown sternly. “<i>That’s</i> why. I don’t know why
-you <i>do</i> such things, William!”</p>
-
-<p>“But they’re doing no harm,” said William.
-“They’re <i>friends</i> of mine. They <i>know</i> me. The
-stag beetle does anyway and the others will soon. I’m
-teaching the stag beetle tricks.... <i>Honest</i>, it
-knows me and it knows its name. Call ‘Albert’ to
-it and see if it moves.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall do nothing of the sort, William. Take
-the creatures out at once. I shall have to scrub the
-drawers and have everything washed. You’ve got
-marmalade and crumbs all over your socks and handkerchiefs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I moved ’em right away when I put them
-in. They’ve sort of spread back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why ever didn’t you keep the things outside?”</p>
-
-<p>“I wanted to have ’em and play with ’em at nights
-an’ mornin’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“And here’s one of them <i>dead!</i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I hope it didn’t die of anythin’ catchin’,” said
-William anxiously. “I shun’t like Albert to get
-anythin’. There’s no <i>reason</i> for ’em to die. They’ve
-got plenty of food an’ plenty of room to play about
-in an’ air gets in through the keyhole.”</p>
-
-<p>“Take them <i>away!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>William lovingly gathered up his stag beetle and
-woodlice and centipedes and earwigs and took them
-downstairs, leaving his mother groaning over the
-crumby marmalady drawer....</p>
-
-<p>He put them into cardboard boxes and punched holes
-in the tops. He put Albert, the gem of the collection,
-in a small box in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>Then it began to rain and he came back to the house.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing to do....</p>
-
-<p>He wandered from room to room. No one was in.
-The only sounds were the sounds of the rain and of
-his mother furiously scrubbing at the drawer upstairs.
-He wandered into the kitchen. It was
-empty. On the table by the window was a row of
-jam jars freshly filled and covered. His mother had
-made jam that morning. William stood by the table,
-half sprawling over it, resting his head on his hands
-and watched the rain disconsolately. There was a
-small knife on the table. William took it up and,
-still watching the rain, absent-mindedly “nicked”
-in all the taut parchment covers one by one. He was
-thinking of Albert. As he nicked in the parchment,
-he was vaguely conscious of a pleasant sensation like
-walking through heaped-up fallen leaves or popping
-fuschia buds or breaking ice or treading on nice fat
-acorns.... He was vaguely sorry when the last
-one was “nicked.”</p>
-
-<p>Then his mother came in.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>William!</i>” she screamed as she saw the jam
-jars.</p>
-
-<p>“What’ve I done now?” said William innocently.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</span>
-“Oh ... those! I jus’ wasn’t thinking what I
-was doin’. Sorry!”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Brown sat down weakly on a kitchen chair.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think anyone ever had a boy like you
-ever before William,” she said with deep emotion.
-“The work of <i>hours</i>.... And it’s <i>after</i> time for you
-to get ready for Miss Lomas’ class. Do go, and then
-perhaps I’ll get a little peace!”</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>Miss Lomas lived at the other end of the village.
-She held a Bible class for the Sons and Daughters of
-Gentlefolk every Saturday afternoon. She did it
-entirely out of the goodness of her heart, and she had
-more than once regretted the goodness of her heart
-since that Son of Gentlefolk known to the world as
-William Brown had joined her class. She had worked
-hard to persuade Mrs. Brown to send him. She
-thought that she could influence William for good.
-She realised when William became a regular attendant
-of her class that she had considerably over-estimated
-her powers. William could only be persuaded to join
-the class because most of his friends, not without much
-exertion of maternal authority, went there every
-Saturday. But something seemed to have happened
-to the class since William joined it. The beautiful
-atmosphere was destroyed. No beautiful atmosphere
-was proof against William. Every Saturday Miss
-Lomas hoped that something would have happened
-to William so that he could not come, and every
-Saturday William hoped equally fervently that something
-would have happened to Miss Lomas so that
-she could not take the class. There was something
-dispirited and hopeless in their greeting of each
-other....</p>
-
-<p>William took his seat in the dining-room where Miss
-Lomas always held her class. He glanced round
-at his fellow students, greeting his friends Ginger<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</span>
-and Henry and Douglas with a hideous contortion
-of his face....</p>
-
-<p>Then he took a large nut out of his pocket and cracked
-it with his teeth.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Not</i> in here, William,” said Miss Lomas faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“I was goin’ to put the bits of shell into my pocket,”
-said William. “I wasn’t goin’ to put ’em on your
-carpet or anything, but ’f you don’t want me to’s all
-right,” he said obligingly, putting nut and dismembered
-shell into his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Now we’ll say our verses,” said Miss Lomas
-brightly but keeping a fascinated apprehensive eye on
-William. “William, you begin.”</p>
-
-<p>“’Fraid I din’t learn ’em,” said William very
-politely. “I was goin’ to last night an’ I got out my
-Bible an’ I got readin’ ’bout Jonah in the whale’s
-belly an’ I thought maybe it’d do me more good than
-St. Stephen’s speech an’ it was ever so much more
-int’restin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“That will do, William,” said Miss Lomas. “We’ll&mdash;er&mdash;all
-take our verses for granted this afternoon,
-I think. Now, I want to give you a little talk on
-Brotherly Love.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s Saint Valentine?” said William who was
-burrowing in his prayer-book.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, William?” said Miss Lomas patiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, his day seems to be comin’ this month,”
-said William.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Lomas, with a good deal of confusion, launched
-into a not very clear account of the institution of Saint
-Valentine’s Day.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’t think much of <i>him</i> ’s a saint,” was
-William’s verdict, as he took out another nut and
-absent-mindedly cracked it, “writin’ soppy letters
-to girls instead of gettin’ martyred prop’ly like Peter
-an’ the others.”</p>
-
-<p>Miss Lomas put her hand to her head.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You misunderstand me, William,” she said.
-“What I meant to say was&mdash; Well, suppose we leave
-Saint Valentine till later, and have our little talk on
-Brotherly Love first.... <i>Ow-w-w!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Albert’s box had been accidentally opened in William’s
-pocket, and Albert was now discovered taking a
-voyage of discovery up Miss Lomas’ jumper. Miss
-Lomas’ spectacles fell off. She tore off Albert and
-rushed from the room.</p>
-
-<p>William gathered up Albert and carefully examined
-him. “She might have hurt him, throwing him about like
-that,” he said sternly. “She oughter be more careful.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he replaced Albert tenderly in his box.</p>
-
-<p>“Give us a nut,” said Ginger.</p>
-
-<p>Soon all the Sons and Daughters of Gentlefolk
-were cracking nuts, and William was regaling them
-with a racy account of Jonah in the whale’s belly, and
-trying to entice Albert to show off his tricks....</p>
-
-<p>“Seems to me,” said William at last thoughtfully,
-looking round the room, “we might get up a good
-game in this room ... something sort of quiet, I
-mean, jus’ till she comes back.”</p>
-
-<p>But the room was mercifully spared one of William’s
-“quiet” games by the entrance of Miss Dobson, Miss
-Lomas’ cousin, who was staying with her. Miss
-Dobson was very young and very pretty. She had
-short golden curls and blue eyes and small white
-teeth and an attractive smile.</p>
-
-<p>“My cousin’s not well enough to finish the lesson,”
-she said. “So I’m going to read to you till it’s time
-to go home. Now, let’s be comfortable. Come and
-sit on the hearthrug. That’s right. I’m going to
-read to you ‘Scalped by the Reds.’”</p>
-
-<p>William drew a deep breath of delight.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of the first chapter he had decided that
-he wouldn’t mind coming to this sort of Bible class
-every day.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</span></p>
-
-<p>At the end of the second he had decided to marry
-Miss Dobson as soon as he grew up....</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>When William woke up the next morning his
-determination to marry Miss Dobson was unchanged.
-He had previously agreed quite informally to marry
-Joan Crewe, his friend and playmate and adorer, but
-Joan was small and dark-haired and rather silent.
-She was not gloriously grown-up and tall and fair
-and vivacious. William was aware that marriage
-must be preceded by courtship, and that courtship
-was an arduous business. It was not for nothing that
-William had a sister who was acknowledged to be
-the beauty of the neighbourhood, and a brother who
-was generally involved in a passionate if short-lived
-<i>affaire d’amour</i>. William had ample opportunities
-of learning how it was done. So far he had wasted
-these opportunities or only used them in a spirit of
-mockery and ridicule, but now he determined to use
-them seriously and to the full.</p>
-
-<p>He went to the garden shed directly after breakfast
-and discovered that he had made the holes in his
-cardboard boxes rather too large and the inmates
-had all escaped during the night. It was a blow, but
-William had more serious business on hand than
-collecting insects. And he still had Albert. He put
-his face down to where he imagined Albert’s ear to
-be and yelled “Albert” with all the force of his lungs.
-Albert moved&mdash;in fact scuttled wildly up the side of
-his box.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, he cert’n’ly knows his name now,” said
-William with a sigh of satisfaction. “It’s took
-enough trouble to teach him that. I’ll go on with
-tricks now.”</p>
-
-<p>He went to school after that. Albert accompanied
-him, but was confiscated by the French master just as
-William and Ginger were teaching it a trick. The trick<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</span>
-was to climb over a pencil, and Albert, who was labouring
-under a delusion that freedom lay beyond the pencil,
-was picking it up surprisingly well. William handed
-him to the French master shut up in his box, and was
-slightly comforted for his loss by seeing the master
-on opening it get his fingers covered with Albert’s
-marmalade ration for the day, which was enclosed in
-the box with Albert. The master emptied Albert
-out of the window and William spent “break” in
-fruitless search for him, calling “Albert!” in his
-most persuasive tones ... in vain, for Albert had
-presumably returned to his mourning family for a
-much-needed “rest cure.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, <i>I</i> call it stealin’,” said William sternly,
-“takin’ beetles that belong to other people....
-It’d serve ’em right if I turned a Bolshevist.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t suppose they’d mind what you turned,”
-said Ginger unfeelingly but with perfect truth.</p>
-
-<p>It was a half-holiday that afternoon, and to the
-consternation of his family William announced his
-intention of staying at home instead of as usual joining
-his friends the Outlaws in their lawless pursuits.</p>
-
-<p>“But, William, some people are coming to tea,”
-said Mrs. Brown helplessly.</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” said William. “I thought p’raps you’d
-like me to be in to help with ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>The thought of this desire for William’s social help
-attributed to her by William, left Mrs. Brown speechless.
-But Ethel was not speechless.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, of course,” she remarked to the air in front
-of her, “that means that the whole afternoon is spoilt.”</p>
-
-<p>William could think of no better retort to this than,
-“Oh, yes, it does, does it? Well, I never!”</p>
-
-<p>Though he uttered these words in a tone of biting
-sarcasm and with what he fondly imagined to be a
-sarcastic smile, even William felt them to be rather
-feeble and added hastily in his normal manner:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</span></p>
-
-<p>“’Fraid I’ll eat up all the cakes, I s’pose? Well, I
-will if I get the chance.”</p>
-
-<p>“William, dear,” said Mrs. Brown, roused to
-effort by the horror of the vision thus called up,
-“do you think it’s quite fair to your friends to desert
-them like this? It’s the only half-holiday in the
-week, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, ’s all right,” said William. “I’ve told ’em I’m
-not comin’. They’ll get on all right.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, <i>they’ll</i> be all right,” said Ethel in a meaning
-voice and William could think of no adequate
-reply.</p>
-
-<p>But William was determined to be at home that
-afternoon. He knew that Laurence Hinlock, Ethel’s
-latest admirer, was expected and William wished to
-study at near quarters the delicate art of courtship.
-He realised that he could not marry Miss Dobson for
-many years to come, but he did not see why his courtship
-of her should not begin at once.... He was
-going to learn how it was done from Laurence Hinlock
-and Ethel....</p>
-
-<p>He spent the earlier part of the afternoon collecting
-a few more insects for his empty boxes. He was still
-mourning bitterly the loss of Albert. He deliberately
-did not catch a stag beetle that crossed his path
-because he was sure that it was not Albert. He found
-an earwig that showed distinct signs of intelligence and
-put it in a large, airy box with a spider for company
-and some leaves and crumbs and a bit of raspberry
-jam for nourishment. He did not give it marmalade
-because marmalade reminded him so poignantly
-of Albert....</p>
-
-<p>Then he went indoors. There were several people
-in the drawing-room. He greeted them rather coldly,
-his eye roving round the while for what he sought.
-He saw it at last.... Ethel and a tall, lank young
-man sitting in the window alcove in two comfortable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</span>
-chairs, talking vivaciously and confidentially. William
-took a chair from the wall and carried it over to them,
-put it down by the young man’s chair, and sat down.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig36.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“DON’T YOU WANT TO GO AND PLAY WITH YOUR<br />
-FRIENDS?” ASKED THE YOUNG MAN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>There was a short, pregnant silence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon,” said William at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Er&mdash;good afternoon,” said the young man.</p>
-
-<p>There was another silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Hadn’t you better go and speak to the others?”
-said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve spoke to them,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>There was another silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you want to go
-and play with your
-friends?” asked the young
-man.</p>
-
-<p>“No, thank you,” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>Silence again.</p>
-
-<p>“I think Mrs. Franks
-would like you to go and
-talk to her,” said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I don’t think she
-would,” said William with
-perfect truth.</p>
-
-<div class="figleft">
-<img src="images/fig37.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“NO, THANK YOU,” SAID<br />
-WILLIAM.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The young man took
-out a shilling and handed
-it to William.</p>
-
-<p>“Go and buy some
-sweets, for yourself,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>William put the shilling
-in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks,” he said.
-“I’ll go and get them to-night
-when you’ve all
-gone.”</p>
-
-<p>There was another and
-yet deeper silence. Then Ethel and the young
-man began to talk together again. They had
-evidently decided to ignore William’s presence.
-William listened with rapt attention. He wanted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</span>
-to know what you said and the sort of voice you said
-it in.</p>
-
-<p>“St. Valentine’s Day next week,” said Laurence
-soulfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no one takes any notice of that nowadays,”
-said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m going to,” said Laurence. “I think it’s a
-beautiful idea. Its meaning, you know ... true
-love.... If I send you a Valentine, will you
-accept it?”</p>
-
-<p>“That depends on the Valentine,” said Ethel with
-a smile.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the thought that’s behind it that’s the vital
-thing,” said Laurence soulfully. “It’s that that
-matters. Ethel ... you’re in all my waking dreams.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I’m not,” said Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“You are.... Has anyone told you before
-that you’re a perfect Botticelli?”</p>
-
-<p>“Heaps of people,” said Ethel calmly.</p>
-
-<p>“I was thinking about love last night,” said
-Laurence. “Love at first sight. That’s the only
-sort of love.... When first I saw you my heart
-leapt at the sight of you.” Laurence was a great
-reader of romances. “I think that we’re predestined
-for each other. We must have known each other in
-former existences. We&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Do speak up,” said William irritably. “You’re
-speaking so low that I can’t hear what you’re
-saying.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>What!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>The young man turned a flaming face of fury on to
-him. William returned his gaze quite unabashed.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’ mean I want you to <i>shout</i>,” said William,
-“but just speak so’s I can hear.”</p>
-
-<p>The young man turned to Ethel.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you get a wrap and come into the garden?”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes.... I’ve got one in the hall,” said Ethel,
-rising.</p>
-
-<p>William fetched his coat and patiently accompanied
-them round the garden.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>“What do people mean by sayin’ they’ll send a
-Valentine, Mother?” said William that evening.
-“I thought he was a sort of saint. I don’ see how you
-can send a saint to anyone, specially when he’s dead ’n
-in the Prayer Book.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it’s just a figure of speech, William,” said Mrs.
-Brown vaguely.</p>
-
-<p>“A figure of what?” said William blankly.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean, its a kind of Christmas card only it’s a
-Valentine, I mean.... Well, it had gone out in my
-day, but I remember your grandmother showing me
-some that had been sent to her ... dried ferns and
-flowers pasted on cardboard ... very pretty.”</p>
-
-<p>“Seems sort of silly to me,” said William after
-silent consideration.</p>
-
-<p>“People were more romantic in those days,” said
-Mrs. Brown with a sigh.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’m romantic,” said William, “if that means
-bein’ in love. I’m that all right. But I don’ see
-any sense in sendin’ pasted ferns an’ dead saints and
-things.... But still,” determinedly, “I’m goin’
-to do all the sort of things they do.”</p>
-
-<p>“What <i>are</i> you talking about, William?” said
-Mrs. Brown.</p>
-
-<p>Then Ethel came in. She looked angrily at
-William.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother, William behaved abominably this afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought he was rather good, dear,” said Mrs.
-Brown mildly.</p>
-
-<p>“What did I do wrong?” said William with
-interest.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Followed us round everywhere listening to everything
-we said.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I jus’ listened, din’ I?” said William rather
-indignantly. “I din’ interrupt ’cept when I couldn’t
-hear or couldn’t understand. There’s nothing wrong
-with jus’ <i>listenin’</i>, is there?”</p>
-
-<p>“But we didn’t <i>want</i> you,” said Ethel furiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh ... that!” said William. “Well, I can’t
-help people not <i>wanting</i> me, can I? That’s not <i>my</i>
-fault.”</p>
-
-<p>Interest in Saint Valentine’s Day seemed to have
-infected the whole household. On February 13th
-William came upon his brother Robert wrapping up
-a large box of chocolates.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that?” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“A Valentine,” said Robert shortly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Miss Lomas said it was a dead Saint, and
-Mother said it was a pasted fern, an’ now you start
-sayin’ it’s a box of chocolates! No one seems to
-know what it is. Who’s it for, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>“Doreen Dobson,” said Robert, answering without
-thinking and with a glorifying blush.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I <i>say!</i>” said William indignantly. “You
-can’t. I’ve bagged her. I’m going to do a fern for
-her. I’ve had her ever since the Bible Class.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shut up and get out,” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>Robert was twice William’s size.</p>
-
-<p>William shut up and got out.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Lomas family was giving a party on Saint
-Valentine’s Day, and William had been invited with
-Robert and Ethel. William spent two hours on his
-Valentine. He could not find a fern, so he picked a
-large spray of yew-tree instead. There was no time
-to dry it, so he tried to affix it to paper as it was. At
-first he tried with a piece of note-paper and flour and
-water, but except for a generous coating of himself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</span>
-with the paste there was no result. The yew refused
-to yield to treatment. It was too strong and too
-large for its paper. Fortunately, however, he found a
-large piece of thick cardboard, about the size of a
-drawing-board, and a bottle of glue, in the cupboard
-of his father’s writing desk. It took the whole bottle
-of glue to fix the spray of yew-tree on to the cardboard,
-and the glue mingled freely with the flour and water
-on William’s clothing and person. Finally he surveyed
-his handiwork.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’ see much <i>in</i> it now it’s done,” he said,
-“but I’m jolly well going to do all the things they do
-do.”</p>
-
-<p>He went to put on his overcoat to hide the ravages
-beneath, and met Mrs. Brown in the hall.</p>
-
-<p>“Why are you wearing your coat, dear?” she said
-solicitously. “Are you feeling cold?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I’m just getting ready to go out to tea.
-That’s all,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“But you aren’t going out to tea for half an hour
-or so yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, but you always say that I ought to start
-gettin’ ready in good time,” said William virtuously.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, of course, dear. That’s very thoughtful of
-you,” said Mrs. Brown, touched.</p>
-
-<p>William spent the time before he started to the
-party inspecting his insect collection. He found that
-the spider had escaped and the earwig was stuck fast
-in the raspberry jam. He freed it, washed it, and
-christened it “Fred.” It was beginning to take
-Albert’s place in his affections.</p>
-
-<p>Then he set off to Miss Lomas’ carrying his Valentine
-under his arm. He started out before Ethel
-and Robert because he wanted to begin his courtship
-of Miss Dobson before anyone else was in the field.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img src="images/fig38.jpg" alt="" />
-<p class="caption">“WHAT IS IT, WILLIAM?” ASKED MISS DOBSON.<br />
-“A VALENTINE,” REPEATED WILLIAM. “<span class="large"><i>MY</i></span> valentine.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Miss Lomas opened the door. She paled slightly
-as she saw William.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh ... William,” she said without enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve come to tea,” William said, and added hastily,
-“I’ve been invited.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re rather early,” said Miss Lomas.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I thought I’d come early so’s to be sure to
-be in time,” said William, entering and wiping his
-feet on the mat. “Which room’re we goin’ to have
-tea in?”</p>
-
-<p>With a gesture of hopelessness Miss Lomas showed
-him into the empty drawing-room.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s Miss Dobson I’ve really come for,” explained
-William obligingly as he sat down.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Lomas fled, but Miss Dobson did not
-appear.</p>
-
-<p>William spent the interval wrestling with his Valentine.
-He had carried it sticky side towards his coat,
-and it now adhered closely to him. He managed at
-last to tear it away, leaving a good deal of glue and
-bits of yew-tree still attached to his coat.... No
-one came.... He resisted the temptation to sample
-a plate of cakes on a side table, and amused himself
-by pulling sticky bits of yew off his coat and throwing
-them into the fire from where he sat. A good many
-landed on the hearthrug. One attached itself to a
-priceless Chinese vase on the mantelpiece. William
-looked at what was left of his Valentine with a certain
-dismay. Well ... he didn’t call it pretty, but if it
-was the sort of thing they did he was jolly well going
-to do it.... That was all.... Then the guests
-began to arrive, Robert and Ethel among the first.
-Miss Dobson came in with Robert. He handed her a
-large box of chocolates.</p>
-
-<p>“A Valentine,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh ... thank you,” said Miss Dobson,
-blushing.</p>
-
-<p>William took up his enormous piece of gluey cardboard
-with bits of battered yew adhering at intervals.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</span></p>
-
-<p>“A Valentine,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Dobson looked at it in silence. Then:</p>
-
-<p>“W-what is it, William?” she said faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“A Valentine,” repeated William shortly, annoyed
-at its reception.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said Miss Dobson.</p>
-
-<p>Robert led her over to the recess by the window
-which contained two chairs. William followed, carrying
-his chair. He sat down beside them. Both ignored him.</p>
-
-<p>“Quite a nice day, isn’t it?” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t it?” said Miss Dobson.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Dobson,” said William, “I’m always
-dreamin’ of you when I’m awake.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a pretty idea of yours to have a Valentine’s
-Day party,” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think so?” said Miss Dobson coyly.</p>
-
-<p>“Has anyone ever told you that you’re like a bottled
-cherry?” said William doggedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know ... this is the first Valentine I’ve
-ever given anyone?” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Dobson lowered her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh ... is it?” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been thinkin’ about love at first sight,” said
-William monotonously. “I got such a fright when I
-saw you first. I think we’re pre-existed for each other.
-I&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you allow me to take you out in my side-car
-to-morrow?” said Robert.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how lovely!” said Miss Dobson.</p>
-
-<p>“No ... pre-destinated ... that’s it,” said
-William.</p>
-
-<p>Neither of them took any notice of him. He felt
-depressed and disillusioned. She wasn’t much catch
-anyway. He didn’t know why he’d ever bothered
-about her.</p>
-
-<p>“Quite a lady-killer, William,” said General Moult
-from the hearth-rug.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Beg pardon?” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“I say you’re a lady-killer.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not,” said William, indignant at the aspersion.
-“I’ve never killed no ladies.”</p>
-
-<p>“I mean you’re fond of ladies.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think insects is nicer,” said William dispiritedly.</p>
-
-<p>He was quiet for a minute or two. No one was
-taking any notice of him. Then he took up his
-Valentine, which was lying on the floor, and walked
-out.</p>
-
-<p class="gtb">******</p>
-
-<p>The Outlaws were in the old barn. They greeted
-William joyfully. Joan, the only girl member, was
-there with them. William handed her his cardboard.</p>
-
-<p>“A Valentine,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s a Valentine?” said Joan who did not
-attend Miss Lomas’ class.</p>
-
-<p>“Some say it’s a Saint what wrote soppy letters to
-girls ’stead of gettin’ martyred prop’ly, like Peter an’
-the others, an’ some say it’s a bit of fern like this, an’
-some say it’s a box of chocolates.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I never!” said Joan, surprised, “but it’s
-beautiful of you to give it to me, William.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a jolly good piece of cardboard,” said
-Ginger, ’f we scrape way these messy leaves an’
-stuff.”</p>
-
-<p>William joined with zest in the scraping.</p>
-
-<p>“How’s Albert?” said Joan.</p>
-
-<p>After all there was no one quite like Joan. He’d
-never contemplate marrying anyone else ever again.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s been took off me,” said William.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what a <i>shame</i>, William!”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’ve got another ... an earwig ...
-called Fred.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m so glad.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I like you better than <i>any</i> insect, Joan,”
-he said generously.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, William, do you <i>really?</i>” said Joan, deeply
-touched.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes&mdash;an’ I’m goin’ to marry you when I grow up
-if you won’t want me to talk a lot of soppy stuff
-that no one can understand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, thank you, William.... No, I won’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right.... Now come on an’ let’s play Red
-Indians.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="c large p2"><span class="smcap">The End</span></p>
-
-<div class="transnote">
-
-<p class="c">Transcriber’s Notes:</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation are retained.</p>
-
-<p>Perceived typographical errors have been changed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STILL--WILLIAM ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 355995f..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig1.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index dbddc68..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig10.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 21a470d..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig11.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7e0beba..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig12.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 487f123..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig13.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig13.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2f91dd0..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig13.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig14.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c24c760..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig15.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ddde2a..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig16.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig16.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9d4f224..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig16.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig17.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig17.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a41f82b..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig17.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig18.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig18.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index de51483..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig18.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig19.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig19.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8574c93..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig19.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig2.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8e3338b..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig20.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig20.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2a3d241..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig20.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig21.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig21.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b5cb783..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig21.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig22.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig22.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bba4e79..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig22.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig23.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig23.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1f6da60..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig23.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig24.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig24.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ce341a1..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig24.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig25.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig25.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0b0a872..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig25.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig26.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig26.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e6f21bb..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig26.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig27.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig27.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e67e627..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig27.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig28.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig28.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d78efc6..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig28.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig29.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig29.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8b81269..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig29.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig3.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig3.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4ea2529..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig3.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig30.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig30.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index eac314e..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig30.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig31.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig31.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5e2d2e2..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig31.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig32.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig32.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2fd7275..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig32.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig33.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig33.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 19b6377..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig33.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig34.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig34.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 00d0661..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig34.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig35.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig35.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6327b63..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig35.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig36.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig36.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index acba962..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig36.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig37.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig37.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c39f317..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig37.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig38.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig38.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1344707..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig38.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig4.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig4.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ce53589..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig4.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig5.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig5.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 06da809..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig5.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig6.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig6.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 15c217f..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig6.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig7.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig7.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0027122..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig7.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig8.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig8.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 113853f..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig8.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67238-h/images/fig9.jpg b/old/67238-h/images/fig9.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f5a9a58..0000000
--- a/old/67238-h/images/fig9.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ